NJAC Judgment
NJAC Judgment
NJAC Judgment
Petitioner(s)
Respondent(s)
JUDGMENT
Jagdish Singh Khehar, J.
Index
Sl.No.
Contents
1.
The Recusal Order
2.
I
II.
III.
IV.
V.
VI.
3.
I.
II.
III.
IV.
V.
VI.
VII.
Paragraphs
1 - 18
Pages
1 - 15
16
16
19
61
- 169
- 19
- 61
115
115 124
124 168
168 - 169
170
170
171
253
326
419
439
- 171
- 252
- 325
- 419
- 436
436 - 438
438 - 439
1.
In this Court one gets used to writing common orders, for orders
matters.
Madan B. Lokur, JJ.. At that juncture, Anil R. Dave, J. was a part of the
1+2 collegium, as also, the 1+4 collegium. The above combination heard
Petition (C) No.70 of 2015), representing the petitioners were heard. Mr.
Mukul Rohatgi, Attorney General for India, advanced submissions in
response. The matter was shown as part-heard, and posted for further
hearing on 18.3.2015.
(iii)
Mr. Santosh Paul, (in Writ Petition (C) No.70 of 2015) was heard again on
18.3.2015, whereupon, Mr. Mukul Rohatgi and Mr. Ranjit Kumar,
Solicitor General of India, also made their submissions. Thereafter, Mr.
Dushyant A. Dave, Senior Advocate and the President of Supreme
Court
Bar
Association,
addressed
the
Bench,
as
an
intervener.
Whereafter, the Court rose for the day. On 18.3.2015, the matter was
adjourned for hearing to the following day, i.e., for 19.3.2015.
(iv)
T.R.
Andhyarujina,
Senior
Advocate,
and
Mr.
Mathews
J.
Nedumpara. When Mr. Fali S. Nariman was still addressing the Bench,
the Court rose for the day, by recording inter alia, The matters remained
Part-heard. Further hearing in the cases, was deferred to 24.3.2015.
(v)
Article 145(3) of the Constitution of India for the reason that substantial
questions of law with regard to interpretation of the Constitution of India
are involved in these petitions. It has been further submitted that till all
these petitions are finally disposed of, by way of an interim relief it
should be directed that the Act should not be brought into force and the
present system with regard to appointment of Judges should be
continued.
4. Sum and substance of the submissions of the counsel opposing the
petition is that all these petitions are premature for the reason that the
Act has not come into force till today and till the Act comes into force,
cause of action can not be said to have arisen. In the circumstances,
according to the learned counsel, the petitions should be rejected.
5. The learned counsel as well as parties in-person have relied upon
several judgments to substantiate their cases.
6. Looking at the facts of the case, we are of the view that these petitions
involve substantial questions of law as to the interpretation of the
Constitution of India and therefore, we direct the Registry to place all the
matters of this group before Honble the Chief Justice of India so that
they can be placed before a larger Bench for its consideration.
7. As we are not deciding the cases on merits, we do not think it
appropriate to discuss the submissions made by the learned counsel and
the parties in-person.
8. It would be open to the petitioners to make a prayer for interim relief
before the larger bench as we do not think it appropriate to grant any
interim relief at this stage.
4.
During the hearing of the cases, Anil R. Dave, J. did not participate
When the matter came up for hearing for the first time, before the
Mr. Fali S. Nariman made a prayer for my recusal from the Bench, which
was seconded by Mr. Mathews J. Nedumpara (petitioner-in-person in
Writ Petition (C) No.124 of 2015), the latter advanced submissions, even
though he had been barred from doing so, by an earlier order dated
24.3.2015 (extracted above). For me, to preside over the Bench seemed
to be imprudent, when some of the stakeholders desired otherwise.
Strong views were however expressed by quite a few learned counsel, who
opposed the prayer.
earlier been made, with reference to Anil R. Dave, J. It was pointed out,
that the above prayer had resulted in his having exercised the option to
step aside ( on 15.4.2015). Some learned counsel went to the extent of
asserting, that the recusal of Anil R. Dave, J. was not only unfair, but
was also motivated. It was also suggested, that the Bench should be
.. VI. Though Honble Shri Justice Anil R. Dave, who heads the
Three-Judge Bench in the instant case, is a Judge revered and respected
by the legal fraternity and the public at large, a Judge of the highest
integrity, ability and impartiality, still the doctrine of nemo iudex in sua
causa or nemo debet esse judex in propria causa no one can be judge in
his own cause would require His Lordship to recuse himself even at this
stage since in the eye of the 120 billion ordinary citizens of this country,
the instant case is all about a law whereunder the exclusive power of
appointment invested in the Judges case is taken away and is invested in
the fair body which could lead to displeasure of the Judges and,
therefore, the Supreme Court itself deciding a case involving the power of
appointment of Judges of the Supreme Court will not evince public
credibility. The question then arises is as to who could decide it. The
doctrine of necessity leaves no other option then the Supreme Court itself
deciding the question. But in that case, it could be by Judges who are
not part of the collegium as of today or, if an NJAC is to be constituted
today, could be a member thereof. With utmost respect, Honble Shri
Justice Dave is a member of the collegium; His Lordship will be a
member of the NJAC if it is constituted today. Therefore, there is a
manifest conflict of interest.
VII. Referendum.
In Australia, a Constitutional Amendment was
brought in, limiting the retirement age of Judges to 70 years. Instead of
the Judges deciding the correctness of the said decision, the validity of
the amendment was left to be decided by a referendum, and 80% of the
population supported the amendment. Therefore, the only body who
could decide whether the NJAC as envisaged is acceptable or not is the
people of this country upon a referendum.
VIII. The judgment in Judges-2, which made the rewriting of the
Constitution, is void ab initio. The said case was decided without notice
to the pubic at large. Only the views of the government and Advocates on
record and a few others were heard. In the instant case, the public at
large ought to be afforded an opportunity to be heard; at least the major
political parties, and the case should be referred to Constitutional Bench.
The constitutionality of the Acts ought to be decided, brushing aside the
feeble, nay, apologetical plea of the learned Attorney General that the
Acts have been brought into force and their validity cannot be challenged,
and failing to come forward and state in candid terms that the Acts are
the will of the people, spoken through their elected representatives and
that too without any division, unanimous. The plea of the Advocates on
Record Association that the notification bringing into force the said Acts
be stayed be rejected forthwith; so too its demand that the collegium
system, which has ceased to be in existence, be allowed to be continued
and appointments to the august office of Judges of High Courts and
Supreme Court on its recommendation, for to do so would mean that
Judges of the High Courts who are currently Chief Justices because they
were appointed at a young age in preference over others will be appointed
as Judges of the Supreme Court and if that is allowed to happen, it may
10
It was, and still is, my personal view, which I do not wish to thrust
11
12. The prayer for my recusal from the Bench was pressed by Mr. Fali S.
Nariman, Senior Advocate, in writing, as under:
8. In the present case the Presiding Judge, (the Honble Mr. Justice J.S.
Khehar) by reason of judgments reported in the Second Judges case
Supreme Court Advocates-on-Record Assn. v. Union of India, (1993) 4
SCC 441, (reaffirmed by unanimously by a Bench of 9 Judges in the
Third Judges case Special Reference No.1 of 1998, Re. (1998 7 SCC 739),
is at present a member of the Collegium of five Honble Judges which
recommends judicial appointments to the Higher Judiciary, which will
now come under the ambit of the National Judicial Appointments
Commission set up under the aegis of the Constitution (Ninety-ninth
Amendment) Act, 2014 read with National Judicial Appointments
Commission Act No.40 of 2014 if valid; but the constitutional validity of
these enactments has been directly challenged in these proceedings.
The position of the Presiding Judge on this Bench hearing these cases of
constitutional challenge is not consistent with (and apparently conflicts
with) his position as a member of the collegium; and is likely to be seen
as such; always bearing in mind that if the Constitution Amendment and
the statute pertaining thereto are held constitutionally valid and are
upheld, the present presiding Judge would no longer be part of the
Collegium the Collegium it must be acknowledged exercises significant
constitutional power.
9.
In other words would it be inappropriate for the Honble Presiding
Judge to continue to sit on a Bench that adjudicates whether the
Collegium system, (as it is in place for the past two decades and is stated
(in the writ petitions) to be a part of the basic structure of the
Constitution), should continue or not continue. The impression in
peoples mind would be that it is inappropriate if not unfair if a sitting
member of a Collegium sits in judgment over a scheme that seeks to
replace it. This is apart from a consideration as to whether or not the
judgment is (or is not) ultimately declared invalid or void: whether in the
first instance or by Review or in a Curative Petition.
The above prayer for my recusal was supported by Mr. Mathews J.
Nedumpara, petitioner-in-person, in writing, as under:
..Honble Shri Justice J.S. Khehar, the presiding Judge, a Judge
whom the Petitioner holds in high esteem and respect, a Judge known for
his uprightness, impartiality and erudition, the Petitioner is afraid to say,
ought not to preside over the Constitution Bench deciding the
constitutional validity or otherwise of the Constitution (Ninety-ninth
Amendment) Act, 2014 and the National Judicial Appointments
Commission Act, 2014 (the said Acts, for short). His Lordship will be a
member of the collegium if this Honble Court were to hold that the said
12
Acts are unconstitutional or to stay the operation of the said Acts, for, if
the operation of the Acts is stayed, it is likely to be construed that the
collegium system continues to be in force by virtue of such stay order.
Though Honble Shri Justice J.S. Khehar is not a member of the National
Judicial Appointments Commission, for, if the NJAC is to be constituted
today, it will be consisting of the Honble Chief Justice of India and two
seniormost Judges of this Honble Court. With the retirement of Honble
Shri H.L. Dattu, Chief Justice of India, His Lordship Honble Shri Justice
J.S. Khehar will become a member of the collegium. Therefore, an
ordinary man, nay, an informed onlooker, an expression found
acceptance at the hands of this Honble Court on the question of judicial
recusal, will consider that justice would not have been done if a Bench of
this Honble Court headed by Honble Shri Justice J.S. Khehar were to
hear the above case. For a not so informed onlooker, the layman, the
aam aadmi, this Honble Court hearing the Writ Petitions challenging the
aforesaid Acts is nothing but a fox being on the jury at a gooses trial.
The Petitioner believes that the Noble heart of his Lordships Justice
Khehar could unwittingly be influenced by the nonconscious,
subconscious, unconscious bias, his Lordships having been placed
himself in a position of conflict of interest.
3.
This Honble Court itself hearing the case involving the power of
appointment of Judges between the collegium and the Government, nay,
the executive, will not evince any public confidence, except the
designated senior lawyers who seem to be supporting the collegium
system. The collegium system does not have any confidence in the
ordinary lawyers who are often unfairly treated nor the ordinary litigants,
the Daridra Narayanas, to borrow an expression from legendary Justice
Krishna Iyer, who considered that the higher judiciary, and the Supreme
Court in particular, is beyond the reach of the ordinary man. An
ordinary lawyer finds it difficult to get even an entry into the Supreme
Court premises. This is the stark reality, though many prefer to pretend
not to notice it. Therefore, the Petitioner with utmost respect, while
literally worshipping the majesty of this Honble Court, so too the Honble
presiding Judge of this Honble Court, in all humility, with an apology, if
the Petitioner has erred in making this plea, seeks recusal by Honble
Shri Justice J.S. Khehar from hearing the above case.
13.
13
esteem, did not need a second thought. It is not as if the prayer made by
Mr. Mathews J. Nedumpara, was inconsequential.
14.
matter would have been deferred, just because, Honble the Chief Justice
of India, in the first instance, had nominated Anil R. Dave, J. on the
Bench, and thereafter, had substituted him by nominating me to the
Bench.
hearing learned counsel, at least for the guidance of Honble the Chief
Justice of India, so that His Lordship may not make another nomination
to the Bench, which may be similarly objected to. This, coupled with the
submissions advanced by Mr. Mukul Rohatgi, Mr. Harish N. Salve and
Mr. K.K. Venugopal, that parameters should be laid down, led to a
hearing, on the issue of recusal.
15.
14
Bench, that I was still undecided whether I should remain on the Bench,
for I was toying with the idea of recusal, because a prayer to that effect,
had been made in the face of the Court. My colleagues on the Bench,
would have nothing of it. They were unequivocal in their protestation.
17.
the
prayer
for
recusal
is
found
to
be
unjustified
and
The reason that was pointed out against me, for seeking my recusal
was, that I was a part of the 1+4 collegium. But that, should have been a
disqualification for Anil R. Dave, J. as well. When he commenced hearing
of the matters, and till 7.4.2015, he suffered the same alleged
disqualification. Yet, the objection raised against me, was not raised
against him. When confronted, Mr. Fali S. Nariman vociferously
contested, that he had not sought the recusal of Anil R. Dave, J.. He
supported his assertion with proof. One wonders, why did he not seek
15
the recusal of Anil R. Dave, J.? There is no doubt about the fact, that I
have been a member of the 1+4 collegium, and it is likely that I would
also shortly become a Member of the NJAC, if the present challenge
raised by the petitioners was not to succeed. I would therefore remain a
part of the selection procedure, irrespective of the process which prevails.
That however is the position with reference to four of us (on the instant
five-Judge Bench). Besides me, my colleagues on the Bench J.
Chelameswar, Madan B. Lokur and Kurian Joseph, JJ. would in due
course be a part of the collegium (if the writ-petitioners before this Court
were to succeed), or alternatively, would be a part of the NJAC (if the
writ-petitioners were to fail). In such eventuality, the averment of conflict
of interest, ought to have been raised not only against me, but also
against my three colleagues. But, that was not the manner in which the
issue has been canvassed.
recusal is not well founded.
16
17
THE CHALLENGE:
1.
The question which has arisen for consideration, in the present set
Per se, the stance adopted by learned counsel for the respondents
in placing reliance on the judgment in the First Judges case, was not
1
18
open to them. This, for the simple reason, that the judgment rendered in
the First Judges case, had been overruled by a larger Bench, in the
Second Judges case. And furthermore, the exposition of law declared in
the Second Judges case, was reaffirmed by the Third Judges case.
4.
legally permissible, the Attorney General, the Solicitor General, and other
learned counsel representing the respondents, adopted the only course
open to them, namely, to seek reconsideration of the decisions rendered
by this Court in the Second and Third Judges cases. For the above
objective it was asserted, that various vital aspects of the matter, had not
been brought to the notice of this Court, when the controversy raised in
the Second Judges case was canvassed. It was contended that, had the
controversy raised in the Second Judges case, been examined in the right
perspective, this Court would not have recorded the conclusions
expressed therein, by the majority. It was submitted, that till the
respondents were not permitted to air their submissions, with reference
to the unacceptability of the judgments rendered in the Second and Third
Judges cases, it would not be in the fitness of matters, for this Court to
dispose of the present controversy, by placing reliance on the said
judgments.
5.
19
the judgments rendered by this Court, in the Second and Third Judges
cases, we permitted them, to detail the basis of their assertions.
6.
rendered by this Court in the Second and Third Judges cases, needed to
be revisited, we propose first of all, to determine whether or not it would
be justified for us, in the peculiar facts and circumstances of this case,
keeping in view the technical parameters laid down by this Court, to
undertake the task. In case, we conclude negatively, and hold that the
prayer seeking a review of the two judgments was not justified, that
would render a quietus to the matter. However, even if the proposition
canvassed at the behest of the respondents is not accepted, we would
still examine the submissions canvassed at their behest, as in a matter of
such extreme importance and sensitivity, it may not be proper to reject a
prayer for review, on a mere technicality. We shall then endeavour to
determine, whether the submissions canvassed at the hands of the
respondents, demonstrate clear and compelling reasons, for a review of
the conclusions recorded in the Second and Third Judges cases.
We
shall also venture to examine, whether the respondents have been able to
prima facie show, that the earlier judgments could be seen as manifestly
incorrect. For such preliminary adjudication, we are satisfied, that the
present bench-strength satisfies the postulated requirement, expressed
in the proviso under Article 145(3).
7.
in the Second and Third Judges cases, are shown to prima facie require a
20
the petitioners on merits, with reference to the main controversy, that too
in a sense would conclude the matter, as the earlier regime governed by
the Second and Third Judges cases, would become a historical event, of
the past, as the new scheme contemplated under the impugned
Constitution (99th Amendment) Act, along with the NJAC Act, would
replace the earlier dispensation. In the above eventuality, the question of
re-examination of the Second and Third Judges cases would be only
academic, and therefore uncalled for.
9.
the learned counsel for the petitioners, resulting in the revival of the
earlier
process,
and
simultaneously
conclude
in
favour
of
the
respondents, that the Second and Third Judges cases need a re-look, we
would be obliged to refer this matter to a nine-Judge Bench (or even, to a
larger Bench), for re-examining the judgments rendered in the Second
and Third Judges cases.
II.
10.
are appointed under Articles 124 and 217 respectively. Additional Judges
and acting Judges for High Courts are appointed under Articles 224 and
224A. The transfer of High Court Judges and Chief Justices, of one High
21
22
(5) Parliament may by law regulate the procedure for the presentation of
an address and for the investigation and proof of the misbehaviour or
incapacity of a Judge under clause (4).
(6) Every person appointed to be a Judge of the Supreme Court shall,
before he enters upon his office, make and subscribe before the
President, or some person appointed in that behalf by him, an oath or
affirmation according to the form set out for the purpose in the Third
Schedule.
(7) No person who has held office as a Judge of the Supreme Court shall
plead or act in any court or before any authority within the territory of
India.
217. Appointment and conditions of the office of a Judge of a High
Court. (1) Every Judge of a High Court shall be appointed by the
President by warrant under his hand and seal after consultation with the
Chief Justice of India, the Governor of the State, and, in the case of
appointment of a Judge other than the Chief Justice, the Chief Justice of
the High Court, and shall hold office, in the case of an additional or
acting Judge, as provided in article 224, and in any other case, until he
attains the age of sixty-two years:
Provided that
(a) a Judge may, by writing under his hand addressed to the President,
resign his office;
(b) a Judge may be removed from his office by the President in the
manner provided in clause (4) of article 124 for the removal of a Judge of
the Supreme Court;
(c) the office of a Judge shall be vacated by his being appointed by the
President to be a Judge of the Supreme Court or by his being transferred
by the President to any other High Court within the territory of India.
(2) A person shall not be qualified for appointment as a Judge of a High
Court unless he is a citizen of India and
(a) has for at least ten years held a judicial office in the territory of India;
or
(b) has for at least ten years been an advocate of a High Court or of two
or more such courts in succession;
Explanation. For the purposes of this clause
(a) in computing the period during which a person has held judicial office
in the territory of India, there shall be included any period, after he has
held any judicial office, during which the person has been an advocate of
a High Court or has held the office of a member of a tribunal or any post,
under the Union or a State, requiring special knowledge of law;
(aa) in computing the period during which a person has been an advocate
of a High Court, there shall be included any period during which the
person has held judicial office or the office of a member of a tribunal or
any post, under the Union or a State, requiring special knowledge of law
after he became an advocate;
23
(b) in computing the period during which a person has held judicial office
in the territory of India or been an advocate of High Court, there shall be
included any period before the commencement of this Constitution
during which he has held judicial office in any area which was comprised
before the fifteenth day of August, 1947, within India as defined by the
Government of India Act, 1935, or has been an advocate of any High
Court in any such area, as the case may be.
(3) If any question arises as to the age of a Judge of a High Court, the
question shall be decided by the President after consultation with the
Chief Justice of India and the decision of the President shall be final.
11.
The true effect and intent of the provisions of the Constitution, and
all other legislative enactments made by the Parliament, and the State
legislatures, are understood in the manner they are interpreted and
declared by the Supreme Court, under Article 141. The manner in which
Articles 124 and 217 were interpreted by this Court, emerges principally
from three-Constitution Bench judgments of this Court, which are now
under pointed consideration. The first judgment was rendered, by a
seven-Judge Bench, by a majority of 4:3, in the First Judges case on
30.12.1981. The correctness of the First Judges case was doubted by a
three-Judge Bench in Subhash Sharma v. Union of India4, which opined
that the majority view, in the First Judges case, should be considered by
a larger Bench. The Chief Justice of India constituted a nine-Judge
Bench, to examine two questions.
24
After the judgment of this Court in the Second Judges case was
rendered in 1993, and the advisory opinion of this Court was tendered to
the President of India in 1998, the term consultation in Articles 124(2)
and 217(1), relating to appointment (as well as, transfer) of Judges of the
higher judiciary, commenced to be interpreted as vesting primacy in the
matter, with the judiciary. This according to the respondents, had
resulted in the term consultation being understood as concurrence (in
matters governed by Articles 124, 217 and 222).
And
25
To achieve the purported objective, Articles 124 and 217 were inter
alia amended, and Articles 124A, 124B and 124C were inserted in the
Constitution, through the Constitution (99th Amendment) Act, by
following the procedure contemplated under Article 368(2), more
particularly, the proviso thereunder. The amendment, received the assent
of the President on 31.12.2014. It was however given effect to, with effect
from 13.4.2015 (consequent upon its notification in the Gazette of India
(Extraordinary) Part II, Section 1). Simultaneously therewith, the
Parliament enacted the NJAC Act, which also received the assent of the
President on 31.12.2014.
26
case, upon which reliance has been placed by the learned counsel for the
respondents, in their attempt to seek a review of the Second and Third
Judges cases.
The First Judges case - 1981 Supp SCC 87.
15.
The
addressees were inter alia informed, that one third of the Judges of
High Court, should as far as possible be from outside the State in which
the High Court is situated. Through the above letter, the addressees
were requested to (a) obtain from all additional Judges working in the
High Courts their consent to be appointed as permanent Judges in any
other High Court in the country The above noted letter required, that
the concerned appointees be required to name three High Courts, in
order of preference, to which they would prefer to be appointed as
permanent Judges; and (b) obtain from persons who have already been
or may in the future be proposed by you for initial appointment their
consent to be appointed to any other High Court in the country along
with a similar preference for three High Courts. The Union Law
Minister, in the above letter clarified, that furnishing of their consent or
indication of their preference, would not imply any commitment, at the
behest of the Government, to accommodate them in accordance with
their preferences. In response, quite a few additional Judges, gave their
consent to be appointed outside their parent State.
27
(i)
Iqbal Chagla (and the other petitioners) felt, that the letter dated
of
Advocates
Associations
in
Bombay
passed
resolutions,
before this Court, the Union Law Minister and the Government of India,
filed a transfer petition under Article 139A.
allowed, and the writ petition filed in the Bombay High Court, was
transferred to the Supreme Court.
(ii)
Delhi.
dated 18.3.1981. One additional ground was raised with reference to the
three additional Judges of the Delhi High Court, namely, O.N. Vohra,
S.N. Kumar and S.B. Wad, JJ., whose term was expiring on 6.3.1981.
Rather than being appointed for a further term of two years, their
appointment was extended for three months, from 7.3.1981. These short
28
A third writ petition, was filed by J.L. Kalra and others, who
were practicing Advocates, in the Delhi High Court. And a fourth writ
petition was filed by S.P. Gupta, a practicing Advocate, of the Allahabad
High Court. The third and fourth writ petitions were for substantially the
same reliefs, as the earlier two petitions.
(v)
transfer order dated 19.1.1981, whereby the Chief Justice of the High
Court of Madras was transferred as the Chief Justice of the High Court of
Kerala. The above order had been passed by the President, under Article
222(1), after consultation with the Chief Justice of India. Likewise, the
transfer of the Chief Justice of the High Court of Patna to the Madras
High Court was challenged by asserting, that the power of transfer under
Article 222(1) was limited to Judges of the High Courts, and did not
29
challenging the order dated 19.1.1981, whereby some Chief Justices had
been transferred. One additional submission was raised in this petition,
namely, that the transfer of the Chief Justices had been made without
the prior consultation of the Governors of the concerned States, and
further, that the said transfers were not in public interest, and therefore,
violated the procedural requirements contained in Article 217(1).
The
30
The opinions recorded in the First Judges case, insofar as they are
31
that just like Supreme Court Judges, who are appointed under Article
124 by the President (which in effect and substance meant the Central
Government), likewise, the power of appointment of High Court Judges
under Article 217, was to be exercised by the Central Government. Such
power, it was held, was exercisable only after consultation with the
Chief Justice of India, the Governor of the State, and, the Chief Justice of
the High Court It was concluded, that it was clear on a plain reading
of the above two Articles, that the Chief Justice of India, the Chief Justice
of the High Court, and such other Judges of the High Court and of the
Supreme Court (as the Central Government may deem necessary to
consult), were constitutional functionaries, having a consultative role,
and the power of appointments rested solely and exclusively in the
decision of the Central Government. It was pointed out, that the above
power was not an unfettered power, in the sense, that the Central
Government
could
not
act
arbitrarily,
without
consulting
the
32
he
possesses
and
proceed
in
the
interests
of
the
33
In case
of
difference
of
opinion
amongst
the
rested
with
the
Central
Government (paragraph
34
(iv).
was concluded, that consultation with the Chief Justice of India was a
mandatory requirement. But while making an appointment, consultation
could extend to such other Judges of the Supreme Court, and of the High
Courts, as the Central Government may deem necessary. In response to
the submission, where only the Chief Justice of India was consulted (i.e.,
when consultation did not extend to other Judges of the Supreme Court,
or of the High Courts), whether the opinion tendered by the Chief Justice
of India should be treated as binding, it was opined, that there was
bound to be consultation, with one or more of the Judges of the Supreme
Court and of the High Courts, before exercising the power of appointment
conferred under Article 124(2).
35
(v)
made
following
the
procedure
postulated
in
Article
217(1).
dated 18.3.1981, it was opined, that the same did not violate any legal or
constitutional provision. It was felt, that the advance consent sought to
be obtained through the letter dated 18.3.1981, from additional Judges
or Judges prior to their permanent appointment, would have no
meaning, so far as the Chief Justice of India was concerned, because
irrespective of the fact, whether the additional Judge had given his
consent or not, the Chief Justice of India would have to consider,
whether it would be in public interest to allow the additional Judge to be
appointed as a permanent Judge in another High Court (paragraph 54).
(vii)
S.N. Kumar, J., (who was discontinued by the Central Government, while
he was holding the position of additional Judge), it was concluded, that it
would be proper if the Union of India could find a way, to place the letter
dated 7.5.1981 addressed by the Chief Justice of Delhi High Court to the
Law Minister, before the Chief Justice of India, and elicit his opinion with
36
that the same did not mean freedom of Judges to act arbitrarily. It only
meant, that Judges must be free, while discharging their judicial
functions. In order to maintain independence of the judiciary, it was
felt, that Judges had to be protected against interference, direct or
indirect. It was concluded, that the constitutional provisions should not
be construed in a manner, that would tend to undermine the concept of
independence of the judiciary (paragraph 119).
(ii)
37
38
(iv).
additional Judge of the Delhi High Court, it was observed, that the letter
of the Chief Justice of the Delhi High Court dated 7.5.1981, addressed to
the Law Minister, was not disclosed to the Chief Justice of India. As the
relevant material was withheld from the Chief Justice of India, it was
concluded, that there was no full and effective consultation, as
contemplated by Article 217(1). And therefore, the decision not to extend
the term of office of S.N. Kumar, J., as additional Judge of the Delhi High
Court, though the volume of pending work in the High Court required the
services of an additional Judge, was invalid.
(v).
And
that, the President could not act as an umpire, and choose between the
two opinions (paragraph 134).
(vi).
39
(vii). With reference to the transfer of K.B.N. Singh, CJ., from the Patna
High Court to the Madras High Court, it was opined, that even if the
above transfer had been made for administrative reasons, and in public
interest, it was likely to cause some injury to the transferee, and it would
only be fair to consider the possibility of transferring him, where he
would face least difficulties, namely, where the language difficulty would
not be acute.
S. Murtaza Fazal Ali, J.:
(i)
outside the State, and for having 1/3rd Judges in every High Court from
outside the State, it was expressed, that Article 222 conferred an express
power with the President, to transfer a Judge (which includes, Chief
Justice) from one State to another. In determining as to how this power
had to be exercised, it was felt, that the President undoubtedly possessed
an implied power to lay down the norms, the principles, the conditions
and the circumstances, under which the said power was to be exercised.
A declaration by the President regarding the nature and terms of the
policy (which virtually meant a declaration by the Council of Ministers)
40
opinion of P.N. Bhagwati and D.A. Desai, JJ. were accepted, (paragraph
537). And accordingly, their conclusion about the continuation of S.N.
Kumar, J., as an additional Judge, after the expiry of his term of
appointment, was endorsed.
(vi).
41
effective. It was felt, that the Chief Justice of India owed a duty, both to
the President and to the Judge proposed to be transferred, to consider
every relevant fact, before tendering his opinion to the President. Before
giving his opinion the Chief Justice of India, could informally ascertain
from the Judge, if there was any personal difficulty, or any humanitarian
ground, on which his transfer should not be made. And only after having
done so, the Chief Justice of India, could forward his opinion to the
President. Applying the above facets of the consultation process, with
respect to the validity of the order dated 19.1.1981, by which K.B.N.
Singh, CJ., was transferred, it was held, that the consultation process
contemplated under Article 222, had been breached, rendering the order
passed by the President invalid (paragraph 589).
V.D. Tulzapurkar, J.:
(i).
concerned, it was asserted that all the Judges, who had expressed their
opinions in the matter, had emphasized, that the framers of the
Constitution had taken the utmost pains, to secure the independence of
the Judges of the higher judiciary.
It was also
pointed out, that the Attorney General representing the Union of India,
had not dispute the above proposition (paragraph 639).
(ii).
taken
from
them
at
the
time
of
their initial
42
43
additional Judge (on the expiry of a Judges initial term), it was opined,
that the consultative process should be confined only to see, whether the
preconditions mentioned in Article 224(1) existed or not, or whether,
pendency of work justified continuation or not. It was held, that the test
of suitability contemplated within the consultative process under Article
217(1), could not and should not, be resorted to (paragraph 629).
(vi).
reference to Article 217(1), the view expressed was, that the scheme
envisaged therein, by implication and intent, clearly gave primacy to the
advice tendered by the Chief Justice of India. It was however sought to
be clarified, that giving primacy to the advice of the Chief Justice of India,
in the matter of appointment of Judges of the High Court, should not be
construed as a power to veto any proposal. And that, if the advice of the
Chief Justice of India, had proceeded on extraneous or non germane
considerations, the same would be subject to judicial review, just as the
Presidents final decision, if he were to disregard the advice of the Chief
Justice of India, but for justified and cogent reasons. Interpreting Article
44
217(1) in the above manner, it was felt, would go a long way in preserving
the independence of the judiciary (paragraph 632).
(vii)
With reference to the letter written by the Union Law Minister dated
18.3.1981, it was asserted, that even a policy transfer, without fixing the
requisite mechanism or modality of procedure, would not ensure
complete insulation against executive interference. Conversely it was felt,
that a selective transfer in an appropriate case, for strictly objective
reasons, and in public interest, could be non-punitive.
It was therefore
give his consent for being appointed to another High Court, virtually
amounted to seeking his consent for his transfer from his own High
45
Court to another High Court, falling within the ambit of Article 222(1).
Referring to the judgment rendered in the Sankalchand Himatlal Sheth
case5, it was felt, that the circular letter dated 18.3.1981 was an attempt
to circumvent the safeguards and the stringent conditions expressed in
the above judgment (paragraph 652). And further, that the circular letter
clearly exuded an odour of executive dominance and arrogance, intended
to have coercive effects on the minds of sitting additional Judges, by
implying a threat to them, that if they did not furnish their consent to be
shifted elsewhere, they would neither be continued nor made permanent.
The above letter, was held to be amounting to, executive interference with
the independence of the judiciary, and thus illegal, unconstitutional
and void.
(paragraph 654).
(xi)
It was also concluded that, the advice of the Chief Justice of India,
violative of Article 14, since invidious discrimination was writ large on the
face of the circular letter.
46
Union Law Minister dated 18.3.1981, it was felt, was liable to be struck
down (paragraphs 659 and 660).
(xiii) On the subject of non-continuation of S.N. Kumar, J., it was held,
that it was abundantly clear from the correspondence and notings, that
further details and concrete facts and materials relating to his integrity,
though specifically asked for by the Chief Justice of India, were not
furnished, and the letter dated 7.5.1981, which contained such details
and concrete facts and materials, were kept away from him, leading to
the inference, that facts which were taken into consideration by the
Union Law Minister and the Chief Justice of Delhi High Court (which
provided the basis to the appointing authority, not to extend the
appointment of S.N. Kumar, J.), were not placed before the Chief Justice
of India, and therefore, there was neither full nor effective consultation,
between the President and the Chief Justice of India, as required by
Article 217(1). It was accordingly concluded, that the decision against
S.N. Kumar, J., stood vitiated by legal mala fides, and as such, was liable
to be held void and non est, and his case had to be sent back to the
President, for reconsideration and passing appropriate orders, after the
requisite consultation was undertaken afresh (paragraphs 664 and 666
to 668).
(xiv) With respect to the validity of the transfer of K.B.N. Singh, CJ., it
was felt, that in the absence of any connivance or complicity, since no
unfair play was involved in the procedure followed by the Chief Justice of
India, it was liable to be concluded, that the impugned transfer had been
47
The above
After noticing, that the President under Article 74, acts on the
advice of the Council of Ministers, and that, while acting under Article
217(3), the President performs functions of grave importance. It was felt,
that it could not be said that while exercising the power of appointment
of Judges to the higher judiciary, the President was performing either
judicial or quasi judicial functions. The function of appointment of
Judges was declared as an executive function, and as such, it was held,
that Article 74 would come into operation. And therefore concluded, that
the President would have to act, on the advice of the Council of Ministers,
in the matter of appointment of Judges under Article 217 (paragraph
715). And therefore it came to be held, that the ultimate power of
appointment under Article 217, unquestionably rested with the
President.
(ii)
of a Judge (other than the Chief Justice of a High Court), the President
was under a constitutional obligation, to consult the three constitutional
functionaries, mentioned in Article 217 (paragraphs 718 and 719). And
that the aforementioned three constitutional functionaries were at par
with one another. They were coordinate authorities, without any relative
hierarchy, and as such, the opinion of the Chief Justice of India could
48
It was felt, that there was no gainsaying, that a practice which had
been followed for over 25 years, namely, that an additional Judge was
always considered for a fresh tenure, if there was no permanent vacancy,
and if there was such a vacancy, he was considered for appointment as a
permanent Judge.
not be extended for three months or six months, since such short term
appointments, were wholly inconsistent and contrary to the clear
49
was felt, that it was not open to the constitutional functionaries, to sit
tight over a proposal, without expressing their opinion on the merits of
the proposal, and by sheer inaction, to kill a proposal. It was accordingly
opined, that when the term of an additional Judge was about to expire, it
was obligatory on the Chief Justice of the High Court, to initiate the
proposal for completing the process of consultation, before the period of
initial appointment expired (paragraph 772).
(vii)
it was felt, that when two high constitutional functionaries, namely, the
Chief Justice of the Delhi High Court and the Chief Justice of India, had
met with a specific reference to his doubtful integrity, the act of not
showing the letter dated 7.5.1981 to the Chief Justice of India, would not
detract from the fullness of the consultation, as required by Article 217.
Accordingly, it was held, that there was a full and effective consultation,
on all relevant points, including those set out in the letter dated
7.5.1981. And the claim of the concerned Judge for continuation, was
liable to be rejected. It was however suggested, that the Government of
India could even now, show the letter dated 7.5.1981 to the Chief Justice
of India, and request him to give his comments.
50
51
(x)
On the question of transfer of K.B.N. Singh, CJ., it was felt, that his
order of transfer was vitiated for want of effective consultation, and his
selective transfer would cast a slur or stigma on him. It was felt, that the
transfer did not appear to be in public interest. The order of transfer
dated 20.12.1980 was accordingly, considered to be vitiated, and as
such, was declared void.
R.S. Pathak, J. (as he then was):
(i)
was observed, that while the administration of justice drew its legal
sanction from the Constitution, its credibility rested in the faith of the
people. Indispensable to such faith, was the independence of the
judiciary. An independent and impartial judiciary, it was felt, gives
character and content to the constitutional milieu (paragraph 874).
(ii)
essential for the President, to consult the Governor of the State, the Chief
Justice of India and the Chief Justice of the concerned High Court. It was
pointed out, that three distinct constitutional functionaries were involved
in the consultative process, and each had a distinct role to play
(paragraph 887). In a case where the Chief Justice of the High Court and
the Chief Justice of India, were agreed on a recommendation, it was
within reason to hold, that the President would ordinarily accept the
recommendation, unless there were strong and cogent reasons, for not
doing so (paragraph 889). It was however pointed out, that the President
was not always obliged to agree, with a recommendation, wherein the
52
Chief Justice of the High Court and the Chief Justice of India, had
concurred. In this behalf, it was observed, that even though, during the
Constituent
Assembly
debates,
proposal
was
made,
that
the
primacy, over the recommendation made by the Chief Justice of the High
Court, it was felt, that the Chief Justice of India did not sit in appellate
judgment, over the advice tendered by the Chief Justice of the High
Court. It was pointed out, that the advice tendered by the Chief Justice
of India, emerged after taking into account, not only the primary material
before him, but also, the assessment made by the Chief Justice of the
High Court. And therefore, when he rendered his advice, the assessment
of the Chief Justice of the High Court, must be deemed to have been
considered by him. It was pointed out, that from the constitutional
scheme, it appeared, that in matters concerning the High Courts, there
was a close consultative relationship, between the President and the
Chief Justice of India. In that capacity, the Chief Justice of India
functioned, as a constitutional check, on the exercise of arbitrary power,
and was the protector of the independence of the judiciary (paragraph
891).
53
(iv)
It was also opined, that the judiciary by judicial verdict, could not
decide, how many permanent Judges were required for a High Court.
And if a Court was not competent to do that, it could not issue a
direction to the Government, that additional Judges should be appointed
as permanent Judges (paragraph 895). Accordingly it was felt, that there
was no doubt whatever, that the provision of Article 217(1) would come
into play, when an additional Judge was to be considered for further
appointment as an additional Judge, or was to be considered for
appointment as a permanent Judge (paragraph 897).
(vi)
pointed out, that the allegations contained in the letter dated 7.5.1981
strongly influenced the decision of the Government. Since the aforesaid
letter was not brought to the notice of the Chief Justice of India, it was
inevitable to conclude, that the process of consultation with the Chief
Justice of India was not full and effective, and the withholding of
important and relevant material from the Chief Justice of India, vitiated
54
concluded, that the consent of the concerned Judge was not one of the
mandated requirements (paragraph 913).
55
(viii) It was held that, it was open to the Judge, who was subjected to
transfer, to seek judicial review, by contesting his transfer on the ground
that it violated Article 222(1) (paragraph 920).
(ix)
It was also felt, that the power to transfer a Judge from one High
concluded, that the considerations on which the transfer had been made,
could be regarded as falling within the expression public interest, and
therefore, the order of transfer did not violate Article 222(1).
(xi)
Insofar as the validity of the letter of the Union Law Minister dated
that the same was one of the central values on which the Constitution
was based. It was pointed out, that in all countries, where the rule of law
prevailed, and the power to adjudicate upon disputes between a man and
a man, and a man and the State, and a State and another State, and a
State and the Centre, was entrusted to a judicial body, it was natural
56
Accordingly,
57
and such appointments may not fit into the scheme of popular
democracy (paragraph 1042).
(iv)
It was held, that the Constitution did not prescribe different modes
It
was held, that having regard to the high office, to which the appointment
was made, and the association of high dignitaries, who had to be
consulted before any such appointment was made, the application of
principles of natural justice, as of right, was ruled out (paragraph 1087).
58
(vi)
With reference to Article 222, it was opined, that the consent of the
59
(ix)
The letter of the Union Minister of Law dated 18.3.1981, was found
The transfer of K.B.N. Singh, CJ., was held to have been made
whether the judgment rendered by this Court in the Second Judges case
needs to be re-examined, it is not necessary to delineate the views
expressed by the individual Judges, as the conclusions drawn by them
are per se not subject matter of challenge. The limited challenge being,
that vital aspects of the matter, which needed to have been considered
were not canvassed, and therefore, could not be taken into consideration
in the process of decision making. In the above perspective, we consider
60
61
For exactly the same reasons as have been noticed with reference to
the Second Judges case, it is not necessary to dwell into the unanimous
view expressed in the Third Judges case. The concession of the Attorney
General for India, as was expressly recorded in paragraph 11 of the Third
Judges case, needs to be extracted to highlight the fact, that the then
Attorney General had conceded, that the opinion recorded by the
majority in the Second Judges case, had been accepted by the Union of
India and, as such, would be binding on it. Paragraph 11 is accordingly
reproduced hereunder:
11. We record at the outset the statements of the Attorney General that
(1) the Union of India is not seeking a review or reconsideration of the
judgment in the Second Judges case (1993) 4 SCC 441 and that (2) the
Union of India shall accept and treat as binding the answers of this Court
to the questions set out in the Reference.
19.
conclusions expressed in the Third Judges case, which are placed below:
1. The expression "consultation with the Chief justice of India" in
Articles 217(1) of the Constitution of India requires consultation with a
62
20.
63
the
independence
of
the
judiciary
would
not
stand
Despite the
64
First and foremost, our attention was drawn to Article 124 of the
65
the Judges of the High Courts of the States, as the President may choose
to consult.
Chief Justice of India, had been altered by the judgment in the Second
Judges case, into an all pervasive decision taken by the Chief Justice of
India, in consultation with a collegium of Judges. It was pointed out, that
the term consultation expressed in Article 124 with reference to the
Chief Justice of India, had been interpreted to mean concurrence.
And
66
make up his mind, after consulting the other Judges of the Supreme
Court and the Judges of the High Courts, as he may choose.
23.
Court, recommend a name, to which the Chief Justice of India alone, was
not agreeable, the said recommendee could not be appointed as a Judge.
This illustration, it was submitted, placed absolute power in the hands of
one person the Chief Justice of India.
24.
Article 125, so as to contend, that the salary payable to the Judges of the
Supreme Court has to be determined by the Parliament by law, and until
such determination was made, the emoluments payable to a Judge would
be such, as were specified in the Second Schedule. It was submitted,
that the Parliament was given an express role to determine even the
salary of Judges, which is a condition of service of the Judges of the
Supreme Court. He also pointed to Article 126, which contemplates, the
appointment of one of the Judges of the Supreme Court, to discharge the
functions of Chief Justice of India, on account of his absence or
otherwise, or when the Chief Justice of India, was unable to perform the
duties of his office. The Courts attention was also drawn to Article 127,
to point out, that in a situation where the available Judges of the
Supreme Court, could not satisfy the quorum of the Bench, required to
67
68
Pointing to Article
140, it was submitted, that the Parliament could by law confer upon the
Supreme Court supplemental powers, in addition to the powers vested
with it by the Constitution, as may appear to the Parliament to be
necessary or desirable, to enable the Supreme Court to exercise its
jurisdiction more effectively. It was submitted, that one Article after the
other, including Article 140, indicated a collective and participatory role
of the President and the Parliament, in the activities of the Supreme
69
Court. Having read out Article 142(2), it was asserted, that even on the
subject of securing the attendance of any person, and the discovery or
production of any documents, or the investigation or punishment of any
contempt of itself, the jurisdiction of the Supreme Court was subject to
the law made by the Parliament.
and/or
the
President
were
assigned
role
by
the
In the absence of a
70
The rules
framed by the Chief Justice, are subject to the approval by the President,
with reference to salaries, allowances, leave and pension.
25.
71
the States, it was asserted, that the role of the President, and also, that of
the Parliament was thoughtfully interwoven in various salient aspects,
pertaining to the higher judiciary. Exclusion of the executive and the
legislature, in the manner expressed through the Second Judges case, in
the matter of appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary, as also,
transfer of Judges and Chief Justices of one High Court to another, was
clearly against the spirit of the Constitution.
26.
higher judiciary, was not the be all or the end all, of the independence
of the judiciary.
The following
72
privilege that extends only for six months, during which period the
member must get elected, otherwise he would cease to be a Minister. It is
a settled position that debates in the Constituent Assembly may be relied
upon as an aid to interpret a constitutional provision because it is the
function of the court to find out the intention of the framers of the
Constitution. We must remember that a Constitution is not just a
document in solemn form, but a living framework for the Government of
the people exhibiting a sufficient degree of cohesion and its successful
working depends upon the democratic spirit underlying it being respected
in letter and in spirit. The debates clearly indicate the privilege to
extend only for six months.
For the same purpose, he referred to Indra Sawhney v. Union of India 9,
and drew the Courts attention to the opinion expressed therein:
217. Further, it is clear for the afore-mentioned reasons that the
executive while making the division or sub-classification has not properly
applied its mind to various factors, indicated above which may ultimately
defeat the very purpose of the division or sub-classification. In that view,
para 2(i) not only becomes constitutionally invalid but also suffers from
the vice of non-application of mind and arbitrariness.
xxx
xxx
xxx
772. We may now turn to Constituent Assembly debates with a view to
ascertain the original intent underlying the use of words backward class
of citizens. At the outset we must clarify that we are not taking these
debates or even the speeches of Dr Ambedkar as conclusive on the
meaning of the expression backward classes. We are referring to these
debates as furnishing the context in which and the objective to achieve
which this phrase was put in clause (4). We are aware that what is said
during these debates is not conclusive or binding upon the Court
because several members may have expressed several views, all of which
may not be reflected in the provision finally enacted. The speech of Dr
Ambedkar on this aspect, however, stands on a different footing. He was
not only the Chairman of the Drafting Committee which inserted the
expression backward in draft Article 10(3) [it was not there in the
original draft Article 10(3)], he was virtually piloting the draft Article. In
his speech, he explains the reason behind draft clause (3) as also the
reason for which the Drafting Committee added the expression
backward in the clause. In this situation, we fail to understand how can
anyone ignore his speech while trying to ascertain the meaning of the
said expression. That the debates in Constituent Assembly can be relied
upon as an aid to interpretation of a constitutional provision is borne out
by a series of decisions of this Court. [See Madhu Limaye, in re, AIR 1969
SC 1014, Golak Nath v. State of Punjab, AIR 1967 SC 1643 (Subba Rao,
9
73
CJ); opinion of Sikri, CJ, in Union of India v. H.S. Dhillon (1971) 2 SCC
779 and the several opinions in Kesavananda Bharati (1973) 4 SCC 225,
where the relevance of these debates is pointed out, emphasing at the
same time, the extent to which and the purpose for which they can be
referred to.] Since the expression backward or backward class of
citizens is not defined in the Constitution, reference to such debates is
permissible to ascertain, at any rate, the context, background and
objective behind them. Particularly, where the Court wants to ascertain
the original intent such reference may be unavoidable.
Reliance was also placed on Kesavananda Bharati v. State of Kerala 10,
and this Courts attention was invited to the following:
1088. Before I refer to the proceedings of the Constituent Assembly, I
must first consider the question whether the Constituent Assembly
Debates can be looked into by the Court for construing these provisions.
The Advocate-General of Maharashtra says until the decision of this
Court in H.H. Maharajadhiraja Madhav Rao Jiwaji Rao Scindia Bahadur
and others v. Union of India, (1971) 1 SCC 85 - commonly known as
Privy Purses case - debates and proceedings were held not to be
admissible. Nonetheless counsel on either side made copious reference to
them. In dealing with the interpretation of ordinary legislation, the widely
held view is that while it is not permissible to refer to the debates as an
aid to construction, the various stages through which the draft passed,
the amendments proposed to it either to add or delete any part of it, the
purpose for which the attempt was made and the reason for its rejection
may throw light on the intention of the framers or draftsmen. The
speeches in the legislatures are said to afford no guide because members
who speak in favour or against a particular provision or amendment only
indicate their understanding of the provision which would not be
admissible as an aid for construing the provision. The members speak
and express views which differ from one another, and there is no way of
ascertaining what views are held by those who do not speak. It is,
therefore, difficult to get a resultant of the views in a debate except for
the ultimate result that a particular provision or its amendment has been
adopted or rejected, and in any case none of these can be looked into as
an aid to construction except that the legislative history of the provision
can be referred to for finding out the mischief sought to be remedied or
the purpose for which it is enacted, if they are relevant. But in
Travancore Cochin and others v. Bombay Company Ltd., AIR 1952 SC
366, the Golaknath case (supra), the Privy Purses case (supra), and
Union of India v. H.S. Dhillon, (1971) 2 SCC 779, there are dicta against
referring to the speeches in the Constituent Assembly and in the last
mentioned case they were referred to as supporting the conclusion
10
74
already arrived at. In Golaknath case (supra), as well as Privy Purses case
(supra), the speeches were referred to though it was said not for
interpreting a provision but for either examining the transcendental
character of Fundamental Rights or for the circumstances which
necessitated the giving of guarantees to the rulers. For whatever purpose
speeches in the Constituent Assembly were looked at though it was
always claimed that these are not admissible except when the meaning
was ambiguous or where the meaning was clear for further support of the
conclusion arrived at. In either case they were looked into. Speaking for
myself, why should we not look into them boldly for ascertaining what
was the intention of our framers and how they translated that intention?
What is the rationale for treating them as forbidden or forbidding
material. The Court in a constitutional matter, where the intent of the
framers of the Constitution as embodied in the written document is to be
ascertained, should look into the proceedings, the relevant data including
any speech which may throw light on ascertaining it. It can reject them
as unhelpful, if they throw no light or throw only dim light in which
nothing can be discerned. Unlike a statute, a Constitution is a working
instrument of Government, it is drafted by people who wanted it to be a
national instrument to subserve successive generations. The Assembly
constituted Committees of able men of high calibre, learning and wide
experience, and it had an able adviser, Shri B.N. Rau to assist it. A
memorandum was prepared by Shri B.N. Rau which was circulated to the
public of every shade of opinion, to professional bodies, to legislators, to
public bodies and a host of others and was given the widest publicity.
When criticism, comments and suggestions were received, a draft was
prepared in the light of these which was submitted to the Constituent
Assembly, and introduced with a speech by the sponsor Dr Ambedkar.
The assembly thereupon constituted three Committees: (1) Union Powers
Committee; (2) Provincial Powers Committee; and (3) Committee on the
Fundamental Rights and Minorities Committee. The deliberations and
the recommendations of these Committees, the proceedings of the
Drafting Committee, and the speech of Dr Ambedkar introducing the
draft so prepared along with the report of these Committees are all
valuable material. The objectives of the Assembly, the manner in which
they met any criticism, the resultant decisions taken thereupon,
amendments proposed, speeches in favour or against them and their
ultimate adoption or rejection will be helpful in throwing light on the
particular matter in issue. In proceedings of a legislature on an ordinary
draft bill, as I said earlier, there may be a partisan and heated debate,
which often times may not throw any light on the issues which come
before the Court but the proceedings in a Constituent Assembly have no
such partisan nuances and their only concern is to give the national a
working instrument with its basic structure and human values
sufficiently balanced and stable enough to allow an interplay of forces
which will subserve the needs of future generations. The highest Court
created under it and charged with the duty of understanding and
75
expounding it, should not, if it has to catch the objectives of the framers,
deny itself the benefit of the guidance derivable from the records of the
proceedings and the deliberations of the Assembly. Be that as it may, all I
intend to do for the present is to examine the stages through which the
draft passed and whether and what attempts were made to introduce
words or expressions or delete any that were already there and for what
purpose. If these proceedings are examined from this point of view, do
they throw any light on or support the view taken by me?
For the same proposition, reliance was also placed on Samsher Singh v.
State of Punjab11, and on Manoj Narula v. Union of India12.
27.
The
Assembly
on
21.5.1947.
With
reference
to
judicial
76
To ensure
77
78
served with a statement of the charges alleged for his removal or the
grounds for his retirement, and shall have had an opportunity to be
heard
(3) The trial of charges for the removal of a judicial officer or of the
grounds for his retirement shall be held before a court on the judiciary
(4) The chief judge of the court of appeals may convene the court on the
judiciary upon his own motion and shall convene the court upon written
request by the governor or by the presiding justice of any appellate
division
It was submitted, that the above suggestion of vesting the power of
impeachment, in-house by the judiciary itself, as recommended by
Justice Frankfurter, was rejected. It was pointed out, that the second
draft of the Constitution was placed before the Constituent Assembly on
21.2.1948. Articles 103 and 193 of the above draft, pertained to
appointments of Judges to the Supreme Court and High Courts. It was
submitted, that several public comments were received, with reference to
the second draft. In this behalf, a memorandum was also received, from
the Judges of the Federal Court and the Chief Justices of the High Courts
which, inter alia, expressed as under:
It seems desirable to insert a provision in these articles (Draft Articles
103(2) and 193(2) to the effect that no person should be appointed a
judge of the Supreme Court or of a High Court who has at any time
accepted the post of a Minister in the Union of India or in any State. This
is intended to prevent a person who has accepted office of a Minister from
exercising his influence in order to become a judge at any time. It is the
unanimous view of the judges that a member of the Indian Civil Service
should not be a permanent Chief Justice of any High Court. Suitable
provision should be made in the article for this.
It was submitted, that in response to the above memorandum, B.N. Rau
made the following observations:
It is unnecessary to put these prohibitions into the Constitution. The
Attorney-General in England is invariably one of the Ministers of the
Crown and often even a Cabinet Minister; he is often appointed a judge
79
80
It was pointed out, that the second draft of the Constitution, was
81
The proposals and the decision taken thereon, were brought to our
Husain,
Alladi
Krishnaswami
Aayar,
Ananthasayanam
Ayyangar, and finally Dr. B.R. Ambedkar. Dr. B.R. Ambedkar had stated
thus:
Finally, BR Ambedkar said:
Mr. President, Sir, I would just like to make a few observations in order
to clear the position. Sir, there is no doubt that the House in general, has
agreed that the independence of the Judiciary from the Executive should
be made as clear and definite as we could make it by law. At the same
82
time, there is the fear that in the name of the independence of the
Judiciary,
we
might
be
creating,
what
my
Friend
Mr.
T.T. Krishnamachari very aptly called an "Imperium in Imperio". We do not
want to create an Imperium in Imperio, and at the same time we want to
give the Judiciary ample independence so that it can act without fear or
favour of the Executive. My friends, if they will carefully examine the
provisions of the new amendment which I have proposed in place of the
original article 122, will find that the new article proposes to steer a
middle course. It refuses to create an Imperium in Imperio, and I think it
gives the Judiciary as much independence as is necessary for the
purpose of administering justice without fear or favour.
31.
before the Constituent Assembly, and the decisions taken thereon, the
learned Attorney General ventured to demonstrate, that the participation
of the executive in the matter of appointment of high constitutional
functionaries,
could
not
and
did
not,
impinge
upon
their
Illustratively, reliance
83
Court,
neither
the
salary
of
the
Comptroller
and
84
It was
85
33.
constitutional
functionaries
did
not
exceed,
the
86
and 32 is one of the features upon which hinges the system of checks
and balances. Apart from that, as already stated, the necessity for
judicial decision on the competence or otherwise of an Act arises from
the very federal nature of a Constitution (per Haldane, L.C. in
Attorney-General for the Commonwealth of Australia v. Colonial Sugar
Refining Co. 1914 AC 237 and Ex Parte Walsh & Johnson; In re Yates,
(1925) 37 CLR 36 at p.58. The function of interpretation of a Constitution
being thus assigned to the judicial power of the State, the question
whether the subject of a law is within the ambit of one or more powers of
the Legislature conferred by the Constitution would always be a question
of interpretation of the Constitution. It may be added that at no stage the
respondents have contested the proposition that the validity of a
constitutional amendment can be the subject of review by this Court.
The Advocate-General of Maharashtra has characterised judicial review
as undemocratic. That cannot, however, be so in our Constitution
because of the provisions relating to the appointment of judges, the
specific restriction to which the fundamental rights are made subject, the
deliberate exclusion of the due process clause in Article 21 and the
affirmation in Article 141 that judges declare but not make law. To this
may be added the none too rigid amendatory process which authorises
amendment by means of 2/3 majority and the additional requirement of
ratification.
The Courts attention was also invited to the observations recorded in
Bhim Singh v. Union of India13:
77. Another contention raised by the petitioners is that the Scheme
violates the principle of separation of powers under the Constitution. The
concept of separation of powers, even though not found in any particular
constitutional provision, is inherent in the polity the Constitution has
adopted. The aim of separation of powers is to achieve the maximum
extent of accountability of each branch of the Government.
78. While understanding this concept, two aspects must be borne in
mind. One, that separation of powers is an essential feature of the
Constitution. Two, that in modern governance, a strict separation is
neither possible, nor desirable. Nevertheless, till this principle of
accountability is preserved, there is no violation of separation of powers.
We arrive at the same conclusion when we assess the position within the
constitutional text. The Constitution does not prohibit overlap of
functions, but in fact provides for some overlap as a parliamentary
democracy. But what it prohibits is such exercise of function of the other
branch which results in wresting away of the regime of constitutional
accountability.
13
87
79. In Ram Jawaya Kapur v. State of Punjab, AIR 1955 SC 549, this
Court held that: (AIR p. 556, para 12)
12. The Indian Constitution has not indeed recognised the doctrine of
separation of powers in its absolute rigidity but the functions of the
different parts or branches of the Government have been sufficiently
differentiated and consequently it can very well be said that our
Constitution does not contemplate assumption, by one organ or part of
the State, of functions that essentially belong to another. The executive
indeed can exercise the powers of departmental or subordinate legislation
when such powers are delegated to it by the legislature.
It can also, when so empowered, exercise judicial functions in a limited
way. The executive Government, however, can never go against the
provisions of the Constitution or of any law.
80. In Kesavananda Bharati v. State of Kerala (1973) 4 SCC 225, and
later in Indira Nehru Gandhi v. Raj Narain (1976) 3 SCC 321, this Court
declared separation of powers to be a part of the basic structure of the
Constitution. In Kesavananda Bharati case Shelat and Grover, JJs. in
SCC para 577 observed the precise nature of the concept as follows: (SCC
p. 452)
577. There is ample evidence in the Constitution itself to indicate that
it creates a system of checks and balances by reason of which powers are
so distributed that none of the three organs it sets up can become so
predominant as to disable the others from exercising and discharging
powers and functions entrusted to them. Though the Constitution does
not lay down the principle of separation of powers in all its rigidity as is
the case in the United States Constitution yet it envisages such a
separation to a degree as was found in Ranasinghe case. The judicial
review provided expressly in our Constitution by means of Articles 226
and 32 is one of the features upon which hinges the system of checks
and balances.
and conclusion no.5, which is reproduced as under:
..
(5) Indian Constitution does not recognise strict separation of powers.
The constitutional principle of separation of powers will only be violated
if an essential function of one branch is taken over by another branch,
leading to a removal of checks and balances.
Last of all, the learned Attorney General placed reliance on State of U.P.
v. Jeet S. Bisht14, wherein this Court held:
78. Separation of powers in one sense is a limit on active jurisdiction of
each organ. But it has another deeper and more relevant purpose: to act
14
88
as check and balance over the activities of other organs. Thereby the
active jurisdiction of the organ is not challenged; nevertheless there are
methods of prodding to communicate the institution of its excesses and
shortfall in duty. Constitutional mandate sets the dynamics of this
communication between the organs of polity. Therefore, it is suggested to
not understand separation of powers as operating in vacuum. Separation
of powers doctrine has been reinvented in modern times.
34.
89
should be accepted by the Government of India and the Court will have
an opportunity to examine if any other extraneous circumstances have
entered into the verdict of the Minister, if he departs from the counsel
given by the Chief Justice of India. In practice the last word in such a
sensitive subject must belong to the Chief Justice of India, the rejection
of his advice being ordinarily regarded as prompted by oblique
considerations vitiating the order. In this view it is immaterial whether
the President or the Prime Minister or the Minister for Justice formally
decides the issue.
35.
in the Samsher Singh case11, were relied upon in the Second Judges
case. This Court, it was pointed out, had clarified that the observations
recorded in paragraph 149 in the Samsher Singh case 11, were merely in
the nature of an obiter. It was submitted, that the aforesaid observations
in the Samsher Singh case11, were also noticed in paragraph 383 (at page
665), wherein it was sought to be concluded, that the President, for all
practical purposes, should be construed, as the concerned Minister or
the Council of Ministers. Having noticed the constitutional provisions
regarding consultation with the judiciary, this Court had expressed,
that the Government was bound by such counsel. Reference was then
made to the judgment of this Court in the First Judges case, wherein it
was held, that consultation did not include concurrence, and further,
that the power of appointment of Judges under Article 124, was vested
with the President, and also, that the President could override the views
of the consultees.
90
Court, had held, with reference to the power of amendment under Article
368, that the concept of basic structure, was a limitation, to the
otherwise plenary power of amendment of the Constitution.
36.
91
92
(d) A Bench of two Judges cannot refer the matter to the larger Bench of
nine Judges or more, directly.
xxxx
xxxx
xxxx
11. However, Mr Ganguli dealing with the issue of locus standi of the
Trust has submitted that the petition may not be maintainable but it
should be entertained because it raises a large number of substantial
questions of law. In order to fortify his submission he places reliance
upon a recent Constitution Bench judgment of this Court in B.P. Singhal
v. Union of India (2010) 6 SCC 331 wherein while dealing with the issue
of removal of Governors, this Court held as under: (SCC p. 346, para 15)
15. The petitioner has no locus to maintain the petition in regard to the
prayers claiming relief for the benefit of the individual Governors. At all
events, such prayers no longer survive on account of passage of time.
However, with regard to the general question of public importance
referred to the Constitution Bench, touching upon the scope of Article
156(1) and the limitations upon the doctrine of pleasure, the petitioner
has the necessary locus.
Thus, Mr Ganguli submits that considering the gravity of the issues
involved herein, the matter should be entertained.
12. While dealing with the issue of reference to the larger Bench, Mr
Ganguli has placed a very heavy reliance on the recent order of this
Court dated 30-3-2011 in Mineral Area Development Authority v. SAIL
(2011) 4 SCC 450, wherein considering the issue of interpretation of the
constitutional provisions and validity of the Act involved therein, a
three-Judge Bench presided over by the Honble Chief Justice has
referred the matter to a nine-Judge Bench.
13. At this juncture, Mr Ganguli as well as Mr Vahanvati have submitted
that even at the stage of preliminary hearing for admission of the
petition, the matter requires to be heard by a larger Bench as this matter
has earlier been dealt with by a three-Judge Bench and involves very
complicated legal issues.
14. In view of the above, we place the matter before the Honble the Chief
Justice for appropriate directions.
It was pointed out, that when the above matter was placed before a
three-Judge Bench of this Court, the same was dismissed on the ground
of locus standi. Yet, since the above order was passed in the absence of
the petitioner trust, an application had been moved for recall of the
above order. It was his assertion, that whether or not a recall order was
passed with reference to the questions raised, it was apparent, that a
93
Bench of this Court has already expressed the view, that the conclusions
drawn in the Second and Third Judges cases, need a relook.
37.
For
16
94
India concluded his address, for the review of the judgments in the
Second and Third Judges cases.
40.
95
96
headed by the Chief Justice of India, has been vested with the final
determinative authority for making appointments to the higher judiciary.
And the President is liable to concur, with the recommendations made.
Based on the above assertions, it was the submission of the learned
97
It was also contended, that the judiciary had taken upon itself, the
98
the old system, all the above stakeholders, had an opportunity to make
representations to the executive, in the matter of appointments to the
higher judiciary. But, that role has now been totally excluded, by the
interpretation placed on Article 124, by the Second Judges case. The
Courts attention was drawn to conclusion no.14 drawn in the summary
of conclusions (recorded in paragraph 486, in the Second Judges case)
that the majority opinion in the First Judges case, insofar as, it had
taken a contrary view, relating to primacy of the role of the Chief Justice
of India, in matters of appointments and transfers, and the justiciability
of these matters, as well as, in relation to judge-strength, did not
commend itself as being the correct view. Accordingly it was concluded,
that
the
relevant
constitutional
provisions
scheme
must
of
the
Constitution
including
the
now
be
construed,
understood
and
99
Parasaran, Senior Advocate, who also supported the prayer made by the
learned Attorney General. It was submitted, that the appointment of
Judges had nothing to do with independence of the Judge concerned,
or the judicial institution as a whole. It was submitted, that subsequent
to their appointment to the higher judiciary, the conditions of service of
Judges of the High Court and the Supreme Court were securely
protected. Thereafter, the independence of the Judges depended on their
judicial conscience, and the executive has no role to play therein.
43.
It was asserted, that the Judges who expressed the majority view,
100
It was
101
It was
It was
102
wherein it was held, that an order passed by the Supreme Court, could
be reviewed only when its jurisdiction was invoked under Article 137 of
the Constitution (read with Rule 1 of Order 40 of the Supreme Court
Rules, 1946). And that, a review of the judgment rendered by the
Supreme Court, in the Second Judges case, could not be sought through
a Presidential Reference made under Article 143. In fact, this Court in
the above judgment, had gone on to conclude, that if the power of review
was to be read in Article 143, it would be a serious inroad into the
independence of the judiciary. It was therefore submitted, that the
statement of the then Attorney General, during the course of hearing of
the Third Judges case, could not be treated as binding, for all times to
come, so as to deprive the executive and the legislature from even seeking
a review of the judgments rendered. It was therefore contended, that it
was implicit while discharging its duty, that this Court was obliged to
correct the errors of law, which may have been committed in the past.
Learned counsel contended, that a perusal of the judgment of this Court
in the Subhash Sharma case4, clearly brought out, that no formal request
was made to this Court for reconsideration of the legal position declared
by this Court in the First Judges case.
motion, examined the correctness of the First Judges case, and suo motu,
made a reference of the matter, to a nine-Judge Bench, to reconsider the
law declared in the First Judges case.
46.
down by this Court in the Second Judges case (read with the Third
Judges case), learned senior counsel, asserted, that the essence of Article
124, had been completely ignored by the majority view. Learned senior
counsel, accordingly, invited our attention to the scheme of Article 124(2)
and canvassed and summarized the following salient features emerging
therefrom:
i.
The authority to appoint Judges of the higher judiciary was vested
in the President.
ii.
The above power of appointment by the President, was subject to
only one condition, namely, consultation.
iii.
The above consultation was a two-fold one which in the opinion of
the President may be deemed necessary, and the other which was
mandatory.
iv.
The mandatory consultation was with the Chief Justice of India.
The consultation which the President may have if deemed necessary for
the purpose, was with judges of the Supreme Court and also of the High
Courts in the states, as may be felt appropriate.
v.
There was no limitation on the power, scope and ambit of the
President to engage in consultation, he may not only with the judges of
the Supreme Court, but may also consult judges of High Courts as he
may deem necessary, for this purpose.
vi.
There was also no limitation on the Presidents power of
consultation. He could consult as many judges of the Supreme Court
and High Courts which he deemed necessary for the purpose.
vii. Having regard to the object and purpose of the appointment of a
judge of the Supreme Court, and that, such appointment was to the
highest judicial office in the Republic, was clearly intended to be
broad-based, interactive, informative and meaningful, so that, the
appointment was made of the most suitable candidate.
viii. This aspect of the power of consultation of the President, as had
been provided had been completely ignored in the majority judgment in
Second Judges case. And the focus has been confined only to the
consultation, with the Chief Justice of India.
ix.
The interpretation of the consultative process, and the procedure
laid down, in the majority judgement in the Second Judges case, that the
Presidents power of consultation, was all-pervasive had been
circumscribed, having been so held expressly in paragraph 458 (by
Justice J.S. Verma) in the Second Judges case.
x.
The majority judgment has focused only on the requirement of
consultation by the President with the Chief Justice of India which is
requirement of proviso, ignoring the substantive part.
xi.
The collegium system had been evolved, for consultation with the
Chief Justice of India on the interpretation, that for purposes of
consultation with the Chief Justice of India, the CJI alone as an
individual would not matter, but would mean in plurality i.e. his
collegium. But this is an interpretation only of the proviso and not of the
substantive part of Article 124(2).
xii
The collegium system was evolved for consultation with the CJI and
his colleagues in particular in fixed numbers as laid down in the
judgment.
xiii. The whole provision for consultation by the President of India with
the judges of the Supreme Court and the High Court, had thus been
stultified, in ignorance of the substantive part of Article 124(2), and as
such, one was constrained to question the majority judgment as being
per incuriam.
47.
It was asserted, that there was no scope or occasion for the Bench
hearing the Second Judges case, to rewrite the Constitution, on the
subject of appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary.
It was
18
India. This, according to learned counsel, was against the plain meaning
and text of Article 124. Learned counsel, went on to add, that this Court
in the Second Judges case, had laid down an inviolable rule of seniority,
for appointment of Chief Justice of India. It also laid down, the rules and
the norms, for transfer of Judges and Chief Justices, from one High
Court to another. It also concluded, that any transfer of a Judge or Chief
Justice of a High Court, made on the recommendation of the Chief
Justice of India, would be deemed to be non-punitive.
In sum and
substance, learned counsel contended, that the Second Judges case, laid
down a new structure, in substitution to the role assigned to the Chief
Justice of India. The conclusions recorded in the Second Judges case,
according to learned counsel, could not be described as a mere judicial
interpretation. It was asserted, that the same was nothing short of
judicial activism (or, judicial legislation).
49.
19
(1955)
(1974)
21
(1989)
22
(2002)
20
6 SCR 603
2 SCC 402
2 SCC 754
5 SCC 111
320. It is no doubt correct that the rule of stare decisis brings about
consistency and uniformity but at the same time it is not inflexible.
Whether it is to be followed in a given case or not is a question entirely
within the discretion of this Court. On a number of occasions this Court
has been called upon to reconsider a question already decided. The Court
has in appropriate cases overruled its earlier decisions. The process of
trial and error, lessons of experience and force of better reasoning make
this Court wiser in its judicial functioning. In cases involving vital
constitutional issues this Court must feel to bring its opinions into
agreement with experience and with the facts newly ascertained. Stare
decisis has less relevance in constitutional cases where, save for
constitutional amendments, this Court is the only body able to make
needed changes. Re-examination and reconsideration are among the
normal processes of intelligent living. We have not refrained from
reconsideration of a prior construction of the Constitution that has
proved "unsound in principle and unworkable in practice."
Based on the above, learned counsel summarized his assertions as
follows.
Firstly,
the
real
constitutional
question,
requiring
This, according to
It was
submissions made in the different petitions filed before this Court, were
not supported by the text of any constitutional provision, but only relied
on the legal position declared by this Court, in the above two cases. In
such an important controversy, according to learned counsel, this Court
should
not
be
hesitant
in
revisiting
its
earlier
judgments.
Mr.
The
nine-Judge
Bench.
Learned
counsel,
then
placed
reliance
on
(1992) 4 SCC 97
(1953) SCR 1069
"Within sixty days of the date upon which he is served with notice of an
order under sub-section (4) of section 33, the assessee or the
Commissioner may, by application in the prescribed form, accompanied
where application is made by the assessee by a fee of one hundred
rupees, require the appellate Tribunal to refer to the High Court any
question of law arising out of such order, and the Appellate Tribunal
shall within ninety days of the receipt of such application draw up a
statement of the case and refer it to the High Court." ..
Based on the above, it was asserted, on the basis of the factual and legal
position projected by the learned Attorney General, that the position
declared by this Court in the Second Judges case, as also, in the Third
Judges case, was clearly erroneous. It was submitted, that the procedure
evolved by this Court for appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary
having miserably failed, not because of any defect in the independence of
the procedure prescribed, but because of the intra-dependence of the
Judges, who took part in discharging the responsibilities vested in the
collegium of Judges, certainly required a re-examination.
53.
learned counsel representing the Union of India and the different State
Governments, that rather than choosing to respond to the assertions
made with reference to the constitutional validity of the Constitution
(99th Amendment) Act, 2014 and the NJAC Act, had collectively
canvassed, that the present five-Judge Bench should refer the present
controversy for adjudication to a Bench of nine or more Judges, which
could effectively revisit, if necessary, the judgments rendered by this
Court in the Second and Third Judges cases. In view of the aforesaid
consideration, we are of the view, that the observations recorded by this
Court, in the Suraz India Trust case 15, as also, the fact that the same is
pending before this Court, is immaterial. Consequent upon the instant
determination by us, the above matter will be liable to be disposed of, in
terms of the instant judgment.
IV.
54.
the
respondents
had
overlooked
the
fact,
that
the
It was
pointed out, that the law declared by this Court in the First Judges case,
having been doubted, the matter was referred for reconsideration, before
the nine-Judge Bench, which delivered the judgment in the Second
Judges case. It was pointed out, that the prayer for revisitation, which is
being made at the behest of the learned counsel representing the Union
of India and the different participating States, was clearly unacceptable,
because the legal position declared by this Court in the First Judges case
had already been revisited in the Second Judges case by a larger
Constitution Bench.
It was
asserted, that just because such a prayer seems to be the only way out,
for those representing the respondents, the same need not be accepted.
55.
Learned senior counsel pointed out, that the legal position with
It was
submitted, that the position declared by this Court in the First Judges
case needed to be revisited, was realized during the hearing of the case in
the Subhash Sharma case4.
conclusions drawn by this Court, in the First Judges case, the matter
was placed for consideration, before a nine-Judge Bench.
It was
submitted, that all the issues, which have now been raised at the hands
of learned senior counsel representing the respondents, were canvassed
before the Bench hearing the Second Judges case.
Second Judges case, clearly arrived at the conclusion, that the earlier
judgment rendered in the First Judges case, did not lay down the correct
law. It was submitted, that the legal position had been declared in the
Second Judges case, by a majority of 7:2.
56.
case, was expressed by A.M. Ahmadi and M.M. Punchhi, JJ., (as they
then were). Learned senior counsel, referred to the observations recorded
in the Second Judges case by M.M. Punchhi, J.:
500. Thus S.P. Gupta case, as I view it, in so far as it goes to permit the
Executive
trudging
the
express
views
of
disapproval
or
non-recommendation made by the Chief Justice of India, and for that
matter when appointing a High Court Judge the views of the Chief
Justice of the High Court, is an act of impermissible deprival, violating
the spirit of the Constitution, which cannot he approved, as it gives an
unjust and unwarranted additional power to the Executive, not originally
conceived of. Resting of such power with the Executive would be wholly
inappropriate and in the nature of arbitrary power. The constitutional
provisions conceives, as it does, plurality and mutuality, but only
amongst the constitutional functionaries and not at all in the
extra-constitutional ones in replacement of the legitimate ones. The two
functionaries can be likened to the children of the cradle, intimately
connected to their common mother the Constitution. They recognise
each other through that connection. There is thus more an obligation
towards the tree which bore the fruit rather than to the fruit directly.
Watering the fruit alone is pointless ignoring the roots of the tree. The
view that the two functionaries must keep distances from each other is
counter-productive. The relationship between the two needs to be
maintained with more consideration.
xxx
xxx
xxx
give an unjust and unwarranted power to the executive, which was not
intended by the framers of the Constitution. The Court went on to hold,
that the vesting of such power with the executive, would be wholly
inappropriate, and in the nature of arbitrary power. It was also noted,
that after this Court rendered its decision in the First Judges case, the
Law Minister and the Prime Minister were found to be in such a
dominant position, that they could appoint a Judge to the higher
judiciary, despite his being disapproved (or, even when he was not
recommended at all) by the Chief Justice of India (and likewise, by the
Chief Justice of the High Court). Thus, in the view of M.M. Punchhi, J.,
these details had escaped the notice of the authors of the First Judges
case, and corrections were required, in that regard, in the said judgment.
Accordingly, it was the contention of the learned senior counsel, that one
of the minority Judges had also expressed the same sentiments as had
been recorded by the majority, on the subject of primacy of the judiciary
in matters regulated under Articles 124, 217 and 222.
57.
by revisiting the judgment rendered in the First Judges case, when this
Court reviewed the matter through the Second Judges case. It was
submitted, that during the determination of the Third Judges case, the
then Attorney General for India had made a statement to the Bench, that
the Union of India, was not seeking a review or reconsideration of the
judgment in the Second Judges case. Even though, the opinion tendered
by this Court, consequent upon a reference made to the Supreme Court
by the President of India under Article 143, is not binding, yet a
statement was made by Attorney General for India, that the Union of
India had accepted as binding, the answers of this Court to the questions
set out in the reference. All this, according to learned counsel, stands
recorded in paragraph 11 of the judgment rendered in the Third Judges
case.
purview of the Union of India, to seek a revisit of the Second and Third
Judges cases.
58.
according to the legal position declared by this Court, it was not open to
the Union of India and the State Governments, to require this Court to
examine the correctness of the judgments rendered in the Second and
Third Judges cases. It was submitted, that such a course could only be
adopted, when it was established beyond all reasonable doubt, that the
previous judgments were erroneous. Insofar as the instant aspect of the
matter is concerned, learned counsel placed reliance on Lt. Col. Khajoor
Singh v. Union of India29 (Bench of 7 Judges),
wherefrom learned
ever since the decision of this Court in the New Jehangir Mills, (1960) 1
SCR 249, was pronounced on May 12, 1959. Besides, it is somewhat
remarkable that no reported decision has been cited before us where the
question about the construction of s. 66(4) was considered and decided
in favour of the Attorney-General's contention. Having carefully weighed
the pros and cons of the controversy which have been pressed before us
on the present occasion, we are not satisfied that a case has been made
out to review and revise our decisions in the case of the New Jehangir
Mills and the case of the Petlad Co. Ltd. (1963) Supp. 1 SCR 871. That is
why we think that the contention raised by Mr. Palkhivala must be
upheld. In the result, the order passed by the High Court is set aside and
the matter is sent back to the High Court with a direction that the High
Court should deal with it in the light of the two relevant decisions in the
New Jehangir Mills and the Petlad Co. Ltd.
While referring to Ganga Sugar Corporation Ltd. v. State of Uttar
Pradesh30, our attention was drawn to the following observations
recorded by the five-Judge Bench:
28. We are somewhat surprised that the argument about the invalidity
of the Act on the score that it is with respect to a controlled industry' dies
hard, despite the lethal decision of this Court in Ch. Tika Ramji
case [1956] SCR 393. Enlightened litigative policy in the country must
accept as final the pronouncements of this Court by a Constitution
Bench unless the subject be of such fundamental importance to national
life or the reasoning is so plainly erroneous in the light of later thought
that it is wiser to be ultimately right rather than to be consistently
wrong. Stare decisis is not a ritual of convenience but a rule with limited
exceptions, Pronouncements by Constitution Benches should not be
treated so cavalierly as to be revised frequently. We cannot devalue the
decisions of this Court to brief ephemerality which recalls the opinion
expressed by Justice Roberts of the U.S. Supreme Court in Smith v.
Allwright 321 U.S. 649 at 669 (1944) "that adjudications of the Court
were rapidly gravitating 'into the same class as a restricted railroad
ticket, good for this day and train only."
Learned counsel while relying upon Gannon Dunkerley and Co. v. State
of Rajasthan31 (Bench of 5 Judges), referred to the following:
28. ..We are not inclined to agree. The principles governing
reconsideration of an earlier decision are settled by the various decisions
of this Court. It has been laid down: This Court should not, accept when
30
31
Yet another basis for asserting, that the prayer made at the behest
The
reasons expressed by the learned senior counsel on the above issue were
as follows:
(i) In the other case relating to the independence of the judiciary (re
transfer of High Court Judges) UOI vs. Sankal Chand Seth, (1977) 4
SCC 193 (5J) as to whether a Judge of a High Court can be transferred
to another High Court without his consent, it was decided by majority
that he could be: the majority consisted of Justice Chandrachud, Justice
Krishna Iyer and Justice Murtaza Fazal Ali.
(ii) The judgment of Justice Krishna Iyer (on behalf of himself and Justice
Murtaza Fazal Ali in Sankal Chand Seth [with which Bhagwati, J. said
he was entirely in agreement] reads as follows (paras 115-116):
115. The next point for consideration in this appeal is as to the nature,
ambit and scope of consultation, as appearing in Article 222(1) of the
Constitution, with the Chief Justice of India. The consultation, in order to
fulfil its normative function in Article 222(1), must be a real, substantial
and effective consultation based on full and proper materials placed
before the Chief Justice by the Government. Before giving his opinion the
Chief Justice of India would naturally take into consideration all relevant
factors and may informally ascertain from the Judge concerned if he has
any real personal difficulty or any humanitarian ground on which his
transfer may not be directed. Such grounds may be of a wide range
including his health or extreme family factors. It is not necessary for the
Chief Justice to issue formal notice to the Judge concerned but it is
sufficient although it is not obligatory if he ascertains these facts
either from the Chief Justice of the High Court or from his own
colleagues or through any other means which the Chief Justice thinks
safe, fair and reasonable. Where a proposal of transfer of a Judge is made
the Government must forward every possible material to the Chief Justice
so that he is in a position to give an effective opinion. Secondly, although
the opinion of the Chief Justice of India may not be binding on the
Government it is entitled to great weight and is normally to be accepted
by the Government because the power under Article 222 cannot be
exercised whimsically or arbitrarily. In the case of Chandramouleshwar
Prasad v. Patna High Court, (1969) 3 SCC 36, while interpreting the word
"consultation" as appearing in Article 233 of the Constitution this Court
observed as follows:
Consultation with the High Court under Article 233 is not an empty
formality. So far as promotion of officers to the cadre of District Judges is
concerned the High Court is best fitted to adjudge the claims and merits
of persons to be considered for promotion....We cannot accept this.
Consultation or deliberation is not complete or effective before the parties
thereto make their respective points of view known to the other or others
and discuss and examine the relative merits of their views. If one party
makes a proposal to the other who has a counter proposal in his mind
which is not communicated to the prosper the direction to give effect to
the counter proposal without anything more, cannot be said to have been
issued after consultation.
In Samsher Singh's case, AIR 1974 SC 2192, one of us has struck the
same chord. It must also be borne in mind that if the Government
departs from the opinion of the Chief Justice of India it has to justify its
action by giving cogent and convincing reasons for the same and, if
challenged, to prove to the satisfaction of the Court that a case was made
out for not accepting the advice of the Chief Justice of India. It seems to
us that the word, 'consultation' has been used in Article 222 as a matter
of constitutional courtesy in view of the fact that two very high dignitaries
are concerned in the matter, namely, the President and the Chief Justice
of India. Of course, the Chief Justice has no power of veto, as Dr.
Ambedkar explained in the Constituent Assembly.
(iii) Justice Chandrachud (in the course of his judgment) agreeing in
paragraph 41 of Sankalchand Seth followed Shamsher Singh (para 149).
Based on the aforesaid, it was the assertion of the learned senior counsel
that even if the contention advanced by the counsel for the respondents
was to be accepted, namely, that the decisions rendered by this Court in
the above two cases were required to be re-examined, by a reference to a
larger Bench, still the observations recorded in paragraph 149 in the
Samsher Singh case11 would continue to hold the field, as the review of
the same had not been sought.
V.
THE CONSIDERATION:
60.
I.
dealt in Chapter IV of Part V, and the High Courts in the States, as well
as, the Subordinate-courts have been dealt with in Chapters V and VI
respectively, of Part VI. The provisions of Parts V and VI of the
Constitution, with reference to the Union and the States judiciaries
including
Subordinate-courts,
determination
by
this
Court,
have
on
arisen
several
for
interpretative
occasions.
We
may
This Court
accordingly concluded, that in practice, the last word must belong to the
Chief Justice of India. The above position was also further clarified, that
rejection of the advice tendered by the Chief Justice of India, would
ordinarily be regarded as prompted by oblique considerations, vitiating
the order. In a sense of understanding, this Court in the Samsher Singh
case4, which led to the matter being re-examined in the Second Judges
case, at the hands of a nine-Judge Bench, which while setting aside the
judgment rendered in the First Judges case, expressed its opinion in
consonance with the judgments rendered in the Samsher Singh case 11
and the Sankalchand Himatlal Sheth case 5. This Court expressly
concluded, in the Second Judges case, that the term consultation
expressed in Articles 124, 217 and 222 had to be read as vesting primacy
with the opinion expressed by the Chief Justice of India, based on a
participatory consultative process. In other words, in matters involving
Articles 124, 217 and 222, primacy with reference to the ultimate power
of appointment (or transfer) was held, to be vesting with the judiciary.
The above position came to be reconsidered in the Third Judges case, by
a nine-Judge Bench, wherein the then learned Attorney General for India,
made a statement, that the Union of India was not seeking a review, or
reconsideration of the judgment in the Second Judges case, and further,
that the Union of India had accepted the said judgment, and would treat
the decision of this Court in the Second Judges case as binding. It is
therefore apparent, that the judiciary would have primacy in matters
regulated by Articles 124, 217 and 222, was conceded, by the Union of
India, in the Third Judges case.
61.
canvassed before the Court. The primary reason for recording the view of
each of the Judges in the First Judges case hereinbefore, was to
demonstrate differences in the deductions, inferences and the eventual
outcome. As against the above, on a reconsideration of the matters by a
larger Bench in the Second Judges case, the decision was rendered by a
majority of 7:2. Not only was the position clearly expressed, there was
hardly any variance, on the issues canvassed. So was the position with
the Third Judges case, which was a unanimous and unambiguous
exposition of the controversy. We, therefore, find ourselves not inclined to
accept the prayer for a review of the Second and Third Judges cases.
62.
Having
given
pointed
and
thoughtful
consideration
to
the
case was reviewed by a larger Bench in the Second Judges case. And for
sure, it was wholly unjustified for the Union of India, which had
conceded during the course of hearing of the Third Judges case, that it
had accepted as binding, the decision rendered in the Second Judges
case, to try and reagitate the matter all over again. The matter having
been revisited, and the position having been conceded by the Union of
India, it does not lie in the mouth of the Union of India, to seek
reconsideration of the judicial declaration, in the Second and Third
Judges cases. Therefore, as a proposition of law, we are not inclined to
accept the prayer of the Union of India and the other respondents, for a
re-look or review of the judgments rendered in the Second and Third
Judges cases. All the same, as we have indicated at the beginning of this
order, because the matter is of extreme importance and sensitivity, we
will still examine the merits of the submissions advanced by learned
counsel.
II.
63.
In this
behalf, our attention was invited to the views expressed by K.T. Shah,
K.M.
Munshi,
Tajamul
Husain,
Alladi
Krishnaswami
Aayar,
the clear intent expressed during the Constituent Assembly debates, not
to create an Imperium in Imperio, the Second and Third Judges cases had
done just that. It was submitted, that in the process of selection and
appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary, being followed since 1993,
Judges alone had been appointing Judges. It was also contended, that
the Constitution contemplates a system of checks and balances, where
each pillar of governance is controlled by checks and balances, exercised
by the other two pillars. It was repeatedly emphasized, that in the present
system of selection and appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary,
the executive has no role whatsoever. It was accordingly the contention of
the respondents, that the manner in which Articles 124, 217 and 222
had been interpreted in the Second and Third Judges cases, fell foul of
the intent of the Constituent Assembly. This, according to the learned
counsel for the respondents, was reason enough, to revisit and correct,
the view expressed in the Second and Third Judges cases.
65.
hands of the learned counsel for the respondents. Consequent upon the
pronouncement of the judgments in the Second and Third Judges cases,
a Memorandum of Procedure for Appointment of Judges and Chief
Justices to the Higher Judiciary was drawn by the Ministry of Law,
Justice and Company Affairs on 30.6.1999.
The Memorandum of
that the same contemplates inter alia the following steps for selection of
High Court Judges:
Step 1:
the Chief Justice must consult his senior colleagues comprised in the
High Court collegium, regarding the suitability of the names proposed.
The entire consultation must be in writing, and these opinions must be
sent to the Chief Minister along with the Chief Justices recommendation.
Step 3:
the Chief Justice, the Governor of the concerned State, as advised by the
Chief Minister, would forward his recommendation along with the entire
set of papers, to the Union Minister for Law and Justice.
Step 5:
The Union Minister for Law and Justice would, at his own,
Step 6:
Law and Justice, would then be forwarded to the Chief Justice of India
for his advice. The Chief Justice of India would, in consultation with his
senior colleagues comprised in the Supreme Court collegium, form his
opinion with regard to the persons recommended for appointment.
Step 7:
views of Judges of the Supreme Court (who were conversant with the
affairs of the concerned High Court), the Chief Justice of India in
consultation
with
his
collegium
of
Judges,
would
forward
his
recommendation, to the Union Minister for Law and Justice. The above
noted views of Judges of the Supreme Court, conversant with the affairs
of the High Court, were to be obtained in writing, and are to be part of
the compilation incorporating the recommendation.
Step 8:
The Union Minister for Law and Justice would then put up
On receipt of the
The
participation
of
the
executive,
with
reference
to
the
Law and Justice has a standard procedure of seeking inputs through the
Union Ministry of Home Affairs. Such inputs are made available by the
Union Ministry for Home Affairs, by having the integrity, social
behaviour, political involvement and the like, examined through the
Intelligence
Bureau.
After
the
receipt
of
such
inputs,
and
the
examination of the proposal at the hands of the Union Minister for Law
and Justice, the file proceeds to the Chief Justice of India, along with the
details received from the quarters referred to above.
69.
is open to the executive, to yet again return the file to the Chief Justice of
India, for a reconsideration of the proposal, by enclosing material which
may have escaped the notice of the Chief Justice of India and his
collegium of Judges. There have been occasions, when the file returned
to the Chief Justice of India for reconsideration, has resulted in a
revision of the view earlier taken, by the Chief Justice of India and his
collegium of Judges. It is therefore clear, that there is a complete comity
of purpose between the judiciary and the political-executive in the matter
of selection and appointment of High Court Judges. And between them,
there is clear transparency also. As views are exchanged in writing, views
Judges, provides for a similar participatory role to the judiciary and the
political-executive. The same is not being analysed herein, for reasons of
brevity. Suffice it to state, that the same is also a joint exercise, with a
similar approach.
72.
And
We are of the view, that it would suffice, for examining the above
With regard to this matter, I quite agree that the point raised is of the
greatest importance. There can be no difference of opinion in the House
that our judiciary must both be independent of the executive and must
also be competent in itself. And the question is how these two objects
could be secured. There are two different ways in which this matter is
governed in other countries. In Great Britain the appointments are made
by the Crown, without any kind of limitation whatsoever, which means
by the executive of the day. There is the opposite system in the United
States where, for instance, offices of the Supreme Court as well as other
offices of the State shall be made only with the concurrence of the Senate
in the United States. It seems to me, in the circumstances in which we
live today, where the sense of responsibility has not grown to the same
extent to which we find it in the United States, it would be dangerous to
leave the appointments to be made by the President, without any kind of
reservation or limitation, that is to say, merely on the advice of the
executive of the day. Similarly, it seems to me that to make every
appointment which the executive wishes to make subject to the
concurrence of the Legislature is also not a very suitable provision. Apart
from its being cumbrous, it also involves the possibility of the
appointment being influenced by political pressure and political
considerations. The draft article, therefore, steers a middle course. It
does not make the President the supreme and the absolute authority in
the matter of making appointments. It does not also import the influence
of the Legislature. The provision in the article is that there should be
consultation of persons who are ex hypothesi, well qualified to give
proper advice in matters of this sort, and my judgment is that this sort of
provision may be regarded as sufficient for the moment.
With regard to the question of the concurrence of the Chief Justice, it
seems to me that those who advocate that proposition seem to rely
implicitly both on the impartiality of the Chief Justice and the soundness
of his judgment. I personally feel no doubt that the Chief Justice is a very
eminent, person. But after all the Chief Justice is a man with all the
failings, all the sentiments and all the prejudices which we as common
people have; and I think, to allow the Chief Justice practically a veto
upon the appointment of judges is really to transfer the authority to the
Chief Justice which we are not prepared to vest in the President or the
Government of the day. I therefore, think that that is also a dangerous
proposition.
The first paragraph extracted hereinabove reveals, that there were three
proposals on the issue of appointment of Judges to the Supreme Court.
The first proposal was, that the Judges of the Supreme Court should not
be appointed by the President in consultation with the Chief Justice of
very close examination, inasmuch as, even though rightfully pointed out
by the Attorney General, and the learned counsel representing the
respondents, all the issues which arise for consideration in the present
controversy, were touched upon in the above response. Before dwelling
upon the issue, which strictly pertained to the appointment of Judges,
Dr. B.R. Ambedkar expressed in unequivocal terms, that the unanimous
opinion of the Constituent Assembly was, that our judiciary must be
independent of the executive. The same sentiment was expressed by Dr.
B.R. Ambedkar while responding to K.T. Shah, K.M. Munshi, Tajamul
Husain, Alladi Krishnaswami Aayar and Anathasayanam Ayyangar
(extracted in paragraph 30 above) wherein he emphasized, that there
is no doubt that the House in general, has agreed that the independence
of the Judiciary, from the Executive should be made as clear and definite
as we could make it by law The above assertion made while debating
the issue of appointment of Judges to the Supreme Court, effectively
acknowledges, that the appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary,
It
therefore, does not lie in the mouth of the respondents to assert, that the
subject of appointment would not fall within the domain/realm of
independence of the judiciary.
77.
above provisions, its intent was to limit the participatory role of the
political-executive in the matter of appointments of Judges to the higher
judiciary.
78.
It was the view of Dr. B.R. Ambedkar, that the draft article had
supreme and
absolute
appointments of Judges.
authority
in
the matter
of making
view, that the judgments in the Second and Third Judges cases cannot
be blamed, for not assigning a dictionary meaning to the term
consultation.
paragraph (extracted above), leaves no room for any doubt that Article
124, in the manner it was debated, was clearly meant to propound, that
the matter of appointments of Judges was an integral part of the
independence
of
the
judiciary.
The
process
contemplated
for
The paragraph following the one, that has been interpreted in the
foregoing paragraphs, also leaves no room for any doubt, that the
Constituent Assembly did not desire to confer the Chief Justice of India,
with a veto power to make appointments of Judges. It is therefore that a
consultative process was contemplated under Article 124, as it was
originally drafted.
Chief Justice of India, but with other Judges of the Supreme Court and
the High Courts. Viewed closely, the judgments in the Second and Third
Judges cases, were rendered in a manner as would give complete effect
to the observations made by Dr. B.R. Ambedkar with reference to Article
124 (as originally incorporated). It is clearly erroneous for the
respondents to contend, that the consultative process postulated
between the President with the other Judges of the Supreme Court or the
High Courts in the States, at the discretion of the President, had been
done away with by the Second and Third Judges cases. Nothing of the
sort. It has been, and is still open to the President, in his unfettered
wisdom, to the consultation indicated in Article 124. Additionally, it is
open to the President, to rely on the same, during the course of the
mandatory consultation with the Chief Justice of India. The above,
further demonstrates the executive role in the selection of Judges to the
would venture to examine the same, from experiences gained, after the
Constitution became operational i.e., after the people of this country
came to govern themselves, in terms of the defined lines, and the
distinctiveness of functioning, set forth by the arrangement and
allocation of responsibilities, expressed in the Constitution.
In this
against. We should have expected in all fairness that these facts ought
to have been dealt with. Unfortunately, no facts are set out so that it is
impossible to deal with. If it was said that this had been the case with A,
this had been the case with B or C, it would have been easy for us to deal
with them. Especially when we had given all the facts concerning the
appointment of each and every Judge since 1950.
82.
indicated in the statements of the Home Minister and the Law Minister,
and the inferences drawn therefrom, it is more than apparent, that the
understanding of those in-charge of working the provisions of the
Constitution, relating to the appointment of Judges to the higher
judiciary, was that, the advice of the Chief Justice of India was to be, and
was actually invariably accepted, by the President (or whosoever,
exercised the power of appointment).
83.
Ever since 1974, when the above judgment was rendered, the
above declaration, has held the field, as the above judgment has neither
been reviewed nor set aside.
observations extracted from the Samsher Singh case 11, were reaffirmed
by another five-Judge Bench, in the Sankalchand Himatlal Sheth case 5,
as under:
This then, in my judgment, is the true meaning and content of
consultation as envisaged by Article 222(1) of the Constitution. After an
effective consultation with the Chief Justice of India, it is open to the
President to arrive at a proper decision of the question whether a Judge
should be transferred to another High Court because, what the
Constitution requires is consultation with the Chief Justice, not his
concurrence with the proposed transfer. But it is necessary to reiterate
what Bhagwati and Krishna Iyer, JJ., said in Shamsher Singh (supra)
that in all conceivable cases, consultation with the Chief Justice of India
should be accepted by the Government of India and that the Court will
have an opportunity to examine if any other extraneous circumstances
have entered into the verdict of the executive if it departs from the
counsel given by the Chief Justice of India: "In practice the last word in
such a sensitive subject must belong to the Chief Justice of India, the
rejection of his advice being ordinarily regarded as prompted by oblique
considerations vitiating the order." (page 873). It is hoped that these
words will not fall on deaf ears and since normalcy has now been
restored, the differences, if any, between the executive and the judiciary
will be resolved by mutual deliberation, each party treating the views of
the other with respect and consideration.
85.
Even in the First Judges case, P.N. Bhagwati, J., corrected his own
The above sequence reveals, that the executive while giving effect to
have
uniformally
maintained,
that
while
making
of
powers.
Relevant
extracts
are
being
reproduced
hereunder:
The Honourable Pandit Jawaharlal Nehru (United Provinces: General):
..Coming to this particular matter, the honourable speaker, Pandit
Kunzru, who has just spoken and opposed the amendment of Dr.
Ambedkar seems to me; if I may say so with all respect to him, to have
gone off the track completely, and to suspect a sinister motive on the part
of Government about this business. Government as such is not
concerned with this business, but it is true that some members of
Government do feel rather strongly about it and would like this House
fully to consider the particular view point that Dr. Ambedkar has placed
before the House today. I may say straight off that so far as the
Government is concerned, it is entirely in favour of the separation of
judicial and executive functions (Cheers). I may further say that the
sooner it is brought about the better (Hear, hear) and I am told that some
of our Provincial Governments are actually taking steps to that end now.
If anyone asked me, if anyone suggested the period of three years or some
other period, my first reaction would have been that this period is too
long. Why should we wait so long for this? It might be brought about, if
not all over India, in a large part of India, much sooner than that. At the
same time, it is obvious that India at the present moment, specially
during the transitional period, is a very mixed country politically,
judicially, economically and in many ways, and any fixed rule of thumb
the matter and lent their support to it. I very well remember the Lucknow
Congress of 1899 when Romesh Chunder Dutt, who had just retired from
the Indian Civil Service, presided. He devoted a large part of his
presidential address to this subject and created a good deal of
enthusiasm for it. Not only that: even retired High Court Judges and
Englishmen like Sir Arthur Hobhouse and Sir Arthur Wilson, both of
whom subsequently became members of the Judicial Committee of the
Privy Council, lent their support to this and they jointly with many
eminent Indians submitted a representation to the Secretary of State for
India to give immediate effect to this reform.
In the year 1912, when the Public Service Commission was appointed,
Mr. Abdur Rahim, who was a Judge of the Madras High Court and was
for many years the President of the Central Legislature, appended a long
Minute of Dissent and therein he devoted several pages to this question.
Therefore, Sir, the matter has been before the country for nearly a
century and it is time that it is given effect to immediately. One of the
Honourable Members who spoke yesterday, observed that this matter
was of great importance when we had a foreign Government but now the
position has changed, and it may not be necessary to give effect to it.
Well, an effective reply to this has been given by the Honourable the
Prime Minister today. He has expressly stated that it is the policy of the
Government, and it is their intention to see that this reform is given
immediate effect to.
xxxx
xxxx
xxxx
I am glad to hear that he confirms it. This gives the quietus to these two
objections which have been raised, that because of the changed
circumstances, because we have attained freedom, it is no longer
necessary and that the financial burden will be so heavy that it might
crush provincial Governments. Both these objections are hollow.
One word more I have to say in this connection and that is, that with the
advent of democracy and freedom, the necessity of this reform has
become all the greater. Formerly it was only the district magistrate and a
few members of the bureaucratic Government from whom interference
with the judiciary was apprehended, but now, I am very sorry to say that
even the Ministers in some provinces and members of political parties
have begun to interfere with the free administration of justice. Those of
you, who may be reading news paper reports of judicial decisions lately,
must have been struck with this type of interference which has been
under review in the various High Courts lately. In one province we found
that in a case pending in a Criminal Court, the Ministry sent for the
record and passed an order directing the trying Magistrate to stay
proceedings in the case. This was something absolutely unheard of. The
matter eventually went up to the High Court and the learned Chief
Justice and another Judge had to pass very strong remarks against such
executive interference with the administration of justice.
In another province a case was being tried against a member of the
Legislative Assembly and a directive went from the District Magistrate to
the Magistrate trying the case not to proceed with it further and to
release the man. The Magistrate who was a member of the Judicial
Service and was officiating as a Magistrate had the strength to resist this
demand. He had all those letters put on the record and eventually the
matter went up to the High Court and the Chief Justice of the Calcutta
High Court made very strong remarks about this matter.
Again in the Punjab, a case has recently occurred in which a Judge of the
High Court, Mr. Justice Achu Ram, heard a habeas corpus petition and
delivered a judgment of 164 pages at the conclusion of which he observed
that the action taken by the District Magistrate and the Superintendent
of Police against a member of the Congress Party was mala fide and was
the result of a personal vendetta. These were his remarks.
In these circumstances, I submit that with the change of circumstances
and with the advent of freedom and the introduction of democracy, it has
become all the more necessary to bring about the separation of the
judiciary from the executive at the earliest possible opportunity.
88.
Thereafter, not only the politicians of all schools of thought, but even
retired officers, who had actually spent their lives in administration, had
supported the issue of separation of powers. He also highlighted, that
in 1899, Romesh Chunder Dutt had devoted a large part of his
presidential address to the issue. And that, retired High Court Judges
and Englishmen like Sir Arthur Hobhouse and Sir Arthur Wilson (both of
whom, subsequently became Members of the Judicial Committee of the
Privy Council), also supported the above reform.
since 1985, a conference of Supreme Court Chief Justices from the Asia
Pacific region, has been held by the Judicial Section of the Law
Association for Asia and the Pacific. Since its inception, the conference
this Court in the Second and Third Judges cases, had actually dealt with
the issue, whether appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary, was
(or, was not) an essential component of the principle of independence of
the judiciary? Insofar as the instant aspect of the matter is concerned,
reference in the first instance, may be made to the Second Judges case,
wherein S. Ratnavel Pandian, J., while recording his concurring opinion,
supporting the majority view, observed as under:
47. The above arguments, that the independence of judiciary is
satisfactorily secured by the constitutional safeguard of the office that a
judge holds and guarantees of the service conditions alone and not
beyond that, are in our considered opinion, untenable. In fact we are
unable even to conceive such an argument for the reason to be presently
stated.
In addition to the above extract, it is necessary to refer to the following
observations of Kuldip Singh, J.:
335. Then the question which comes up for consideration is, can there
be an independent judiciary when the power of appointment of judges
vests in the executive? To say yes, would be illogical....
From the above it is clear, that the issue canvassed by the learned
Attorney General, was finally answered by the nine-Judge Bench, which
disposed of the Second Judges case by holding, that if the power of
appointment of Judges, was left to the executive, the same would
breach the principle of the independence of the judiciary. And also
conversely, that providing safeguards after the appointment of a Judge to
the higher judiciary, would not be sufficient to secure independence of
the judiciary.
The
President is also vested with the authority, to appoint the Chairman and
four Members of the Finance Commission, under Article 280.
Herein
also, the power is exclusively vested with the President, without any
consultative process. The power of appointment of Chairman and other
Members of the Union Public Service Commission, is also vested with the
President under Article 316. The aforesaid appointment also does not
contemplate any deliberation, with any other authority. Under Article
324, the power of appointment of Chief Election Commissioner and
Election Commissioners is vested with the President exclusively.
Likewise, is the case of appointment of Chairperson, Vice-Chairperson
and Members of the National Commission for Scheduled Castes under
Article 338, and Chairperson, Vice-Chairperson and other Members of
the National Commission for Scheduled Tribes under Article 338A.
Under the above stated provisions, the President has the exclusive
authority to make appointments, without any deliberation with any other
authority. Under Article 344, the President is also vested with the
authority to appoint Chairman and other Members to the Commission of
Parliament on Official Languages.
provide for any consultative process before such appointment. The same
position emerges from Article 350B, whereunder the President is to
appoint a Special Officer for Linguistic Minorities. Herein too, there is no
contemplation of any prior consultation.
96.
as its head, is to aid and advise the President in the exercise of his
to
the
the
respondents.
learned
Interpreted
Attorney
in
General,
the
in
above
manner,
exercising
his
responsibilities under Articles 124, 217, 148, 155, 280, 316, 324, 338,
338A, 344 and 350B, the President is only a figurative authority, whereas
truthfully, the authority actually vests in the Council of Ministers headed
by the Prime Minister. And as such, for all intents and purposes, the
authority vested in the President for appointing different constitutional
authorities, truly means that the power of such appointment is vested in
the executive.
97.
In common
If aid and advice can be binding and mandatory, surely also, the
term consultation, referred to in Articles 124 and 217, could lead to the
same exposition.
of
Judges
to
the
Supreme
Court.
The
process
of
Commission,
Chief
Election
Commissioner
and
Election
opinion tendered by the Chief Justice of India, on the issues for which
the President was obliged to seek such consultation. The submission
advanced on behalf of the respondents, cannot be accepted, also for the
reason,
that
the
interpretation
placed
by
them
on
the
term
VIII.
100. In continuation with the conclusions drawn in the foregoing
analysis, the matter can be examined from another perspective as well.
The term consultation (in connection with, appointments of Judges to
the higher judiciary) has also been adopted in Article 233 on the subject
of appointment of District Judges. Under Article 233, the power of
appointment is vested with the Governor of the concerned State, who is
empowered to make appointments (including promotions) of District
Judges. This Court, through a five-Judge Bench, in Registrar (Admn.),
High Court of Orissa, Cuttack v. Sisir Kanta Satapathy 32, has held, that
recommendations made by the High Court in the consultative process
envisaged under Article 233, is binding on the Governor. In the face of
the aforestated binding precedent, on a controversy, which is startlingly
similar to the one in hand, and has never been questioned, it is quite
ununderstandable how the Union of India, desires to persuade this
Court, to now examine the term consultation differently with reference
to Articles 124 and 217, without assailing the meaning given to the
aforesaid term, with reference to a matter also governing the judiciary.
VI.
CONCLUSION:
the prayer made at the hands of the learned counsel for the respondents,
for revisiting or reviewing the judgments rendered by this Court, in the
Second and Third Judges cases, cannot be acceded to. The prayer is,
accordingly, hereby declined.
.J.
(Jagdish Singh Khehar)
New Delhi;
October 16, 2015.
PREFACE:
1.
of an explanation. For, it would reduce the bulk of the instant order, and
obviate the necessity to deal with issues which have been considered and
dealt with, while hearing the present set of cases.
2.
cases
to
the
constitutional
validity
of
the
Constitution
This is the third order in the series of orders passed by us, while
adjudicating upon the present controversy. The first order, dealt with the
prayer made at the Bar, for the recusal of one of us (J.S. Khehar, J.)
from hearing the present set of cases. As and when a reference is made
to the above first order, it would be adverted to as the Recusal Order.
The second order, considered the prayer made by the learned Attorney
General and some learned counsel representing the respondents, seeking
a reference of the present controversy, to a nine-Judge Bench (or even,
Recusal Order and/or in the Reference Order, even though they may
arise for consideration yet again, in the process of disposal of the present
controversy on merits. As and when a reference is made to the instant
third order, examining the merits of the controversy, it would be
adverted to as the Order on Merits.
II.
5.
It was
submitted, that any action which would have the result of making
appointment of the Judges to the Supreme Court, and to the High
Courts, subservient to an agency other than the judiciary itself, namely,
by allowing the executive or the legislature to participate in their
34
54. Having regard to the importance of this concept the Framers of our
Constitution having before them the views of the Federal Court and of the
High Court have said in a memorandum:
We have assumed that it is recognised on all hands that the
independence and integrity of the judiciary in a democratic system of
government is of the highest importance and interest not only to the
judges but to the citizens at large who may have to seek redress in the
last resort in courts of law against any illegal acts or the high-handed
exercise of power by the executive in making the following proposals
and suggestions, the paramount importance of securing the fearless
functioning of an independent and efficient judiciary has been steadily
kept in view. (vide B. Shiva Rao: The Framing of Indias Constitution,
Volume I-B, p. 196)
55. In this context, we may make it clear by borrowing the inimitable
words of Justice Krishna Iyer, Independence of the judiciary is not
genuflexion, nor is it opposition of Government. Vide Mainstream
November 22, 1980 and at one point of time Justice Krishna Iyer
characterised this concept as a Constitutional Religion.
56. Indisputably, this concept of independence of judiciary which is
inextricably linked and connected with the constitutional process related
to the functioning of judiciary is a fixed-star in our constitutional
consultation and its voice centres around the philosophy of the
Constitution. The basic postulate of this concept is to have a more
effective judicial system with its full vigour and vitality so as to secure
and strengthen the imperative confidence of the people in the
administration of justice. It is only with the object of successfully
achieving this principle and salvaging much of the problems concerning
the present judicial system, it is inter alia, contended that in the matter
of appointment of Judges to the High Courts and Supreme Court
primacy to the opinion of the CJI which is only a facet of this concept,
should be accorded so that the independence of judiciary is firmly
secured and protected and the hyperbolic executive intrusion to impose
its own selectee on the superior judiciary is effectively controlled and
curbed.
And from the same judgment, reference was made to the following
observations of Kuldip Singh, J.:
335. Then the question which comes up for consideration is, can there
be an independent judiciary when the power of appointment of judges
vests in the executive? To say yes, would be illogical. The independence of
judiciary is inextricably linked and connected with the constitutional
process of appointment of judges of the higher judiciary. Independence of
Judiciary is the basic feature of our Constitution and if it means what we
have discussed above, then the Framers of the Constitution could have
never intended to give this power to the executive. Even otherwise the
Governments - Central or the State - are parties before the Courts in
large number of cases. The Union Executive have vital interests in
various important matters which come for adjudication before the Apex
Court. The executive in one form or the other - is the largest single
litigant before the courts. In this view of the matter the judiciary being
the mediator - between the people and the executive - the Framers of the
Constitution could not have left the final authority to appoint the Judges
of the Supreme Court and of the High Courts in the hands of the
executive. This Court in S.P. Gupta v. Union of India, 1981 Supp SCC 87
proceeded on the assumption that the independence of judiciary is the
basic feature of the Constitution but failed to appreciate that the
interpretation, it gave, was not in conformity with broader facets of the
two concepts - independence of judiciary and judicial review - which are
interlinked.
Based on the above conclusions, it was submitted, that independence of
the judiciary could be maintained, only if appointments of Judges to the
higher judiciary, were made by according primacy to the opinion of the
Chief Justice, based on the decision of a collegium of Judges. Only then,
the executive and legislative intrusion, could be effectively controlled and
curbed.
9.
Article 217(1) talks of Chief Justice of India and the Chief Justice of the
High Court. Plurality of consultations has been clearly indicated by the
Framers of the Constitution. On first reading one gets the impression as
if the Judges of the Supreme Court and High Courts have not been
included in the process of consultation under Article 217(1) but on a
closer scrutiny of the constitutional scheme one finds that this was not
the intention of the Framers of the Constitution. There is no justification,
whatsoever, for excluding the puisne Judges of the Supreme Court and of
the High Court from the consultee zone under Article 217(1) of the
Constitution.
391. According to Mr Nariman it would not be a strained construction to
construe the expressions Chief Justice of India and Chief Justice of the
High Courts in the sense of the collectivity of Judges, the Supreme Court
as represented by the Chief Justice of India and all the High Courts (of
the States concerned) as represented by the Chief Justice of the High
Court. A bare reading of Articles 124(2) and 217(1) makes it clear that the
Framers of the Constitution did not intend to leave the final word, in the
matter of appointment of Judges to the superior Courts, in the hands of
any individual howsoever high he is placed in the constitutional
hierarchy. Collective wisdom of the consultees is the sine qua non for
such appointments. Dr B.R. Ambedkar in his speech dated May 24, 1949
in the Constituent Assembly explaining the scope of the draft articles
pertaining to the appointment of Judges to the Supreme Court
xxx
xxx
xxx
392. Dr Ambedkar did not see any difficulty in the smooth operation of
the constitutional provisions concerning the appointment of Judges to
the superior Courts. Having entrusted the work to high constitutional
functionaries the Framers of the Constitution felt assured that such
appointments would always be made by consensus. It is the functioning
of the Constitution during the past more than four decades which has
brought the necessity of considering the question of primacy in the
matter of such appointments. Once we hold that the primacy lies with
the judiciary, then it is the judiciary as collectivity which has the primal
say and not any individual, not even the Chief Justice of India. If we
interpret the expression the Chief Justice of India as a persona
designata then it would amount to allow the Chief Justice practically
veto upon the appointment of Judges which the Framers of the
Constitution in the words of Dr Ambedkar never intended to do. We are,
therefore, of the view that the expressions the Chief Justice of India and
the Chief Justice of the High Court in Articles 124(2) and 217(1) of the
Constitution mean the said judicial functionaries as representatives of
their respective courts.
In conjunction with the observations extracted hereinabove, the Courts
attention was also invited to the following further conclusions:
10.
conclusions recorded by this Court in the Second Judges case, had been
accepted by the executive and the legislature. It was acknowledged, that
in the matter of appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary, primacy
would vest with the judiciary, and further that, the opinion of the
judiciary would have an element of plurality. This assertion was sought
to be further established, by placing reliance on the Third Judges case.
It was submitted, that the conclusions of the majority judgment, in the
Second Judges case, were reproduced in paragraph 9 of the Third Judges
case, and thereupon, this Court recorded the statement of the then
Attorney General, that through the Presidential Reference, the Union of
India was not seeking, a review or reconsideration, of the judgment in the
Second Judges case. And that, the Union of India had accepted the above
majority judgment, as binding. In this context, paragraphs 10 to 12 of
the Third Judges case, which were relied upon, are being reproduced
below:
10. We have heard the learned Attorney General, learned counsel for the
interveners and some of the High Courts and the Advocates General of
some States.
11. We record at the outset the statements of the Attorney General that
(1) the Union of India is not seeking a review or reconsideration of the
judgment in the Second Judges case (1993) 4 SCC 441 and that (2) the
Union of India shall accept and treat as binding the answers of this Court
to the questions set out in the Reference.
12. The majority view in the Second Judges case (1993) 4 SCC 441 is
that in the matter of appointments to the Supreme Court and the High
Courts, the opinion of the Chief Justice of India has primacy. The opinion
of the Chief Justice of India is reflective of the opinion of the judiciary,
which means that it must necessarily have the element of plurality in its
formation. It is to be formed after taking into account the view of some
other Judges who are traditionally associated with this function. The
opinion of the Chief Justice of India so given has primacy in the matter
of all appointments. For an appointment to be made, it has to be in
conformity with the final opinion of the Chief Justice of India formed in
the manner indicated. It must follow that an opinion formed by the Chief
Justice of India in any manner other than that indicated has no primacy
in the matter of appointments to the Supreme Court and the High Courts
and the Government is not obliged to act thereon.
11.
(2014) 10 SCC 1
the Second Judges case in 1993, and finally endorsed in 1998 by the
Third Judges case. It was submitted, that four Constitution Benches of
the Supreme Court, had only affirmed the practice followed by the
executive since 1950 (when the people of this country, agreed to be
governed by the Constitution). It was pointed out, that the process of
appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary, had continued to remain a
participatory consultative process, wherein the initiation of the proposal
for appointment of a Judge to the Supreme Court, was by the Chief
Justice of India; and in the case of appointment of Judges to High
Courts, by the Chief Justice of the concerned High Court. And that, for
transfer of a Judge/Chief Justice of a High Court, to another High Court,
the proposal was initiated by the Chief Justice of India.
It was
This,
the NJAC now set up, had the same or similar characteristics, in the
matter
of
appointments/transfers,
which
would
preserve
the
India would be the Chairman of the NJAC, he has no casting vote, in the
event of a tie. It was submitted, that under the substituted procedure,
even if the Chief Justice of India, and the two other senior Judges of the
Supreme Court (next to the Chief Justice of India), supported the
appointment/transfer of an individual, the same could be negatived, by
any two Members of the NJAC. Even by the two eminent persons who
transfer of a Judge or the Chief Justice of a High Court, could only have
been initiated by the Chief Justice of India. And likewise, the proposal
for appointment of a Judge to a High Court, could only have been
initiated by the Chief Justice of the concerned High Court. In order to
demonstrate the changed position, learned counsel placed reliance on
Article 124B introduced by the Constitution (99th Amendment) Act,
whereunder, the authority to initiate the process, had now been vested
with the NJAC.
Judges, had to be dispensed with. Or for that matter, why the prevailing
procedure needed to be altered. It was further the contention of learned
counsel, that the non-disclosure of reasons, must inevitably lead to the
inference, that there were no such reasons.
14.
Dr.
Rajeev
Dhavan,
learned
senior
counsel,
also
advanced
36
submitted, had been laid down in the M. Nagaraj case 36, wherein this
Court held:
9. On behalf of the respondents, the following arguments were
advanced. The power of amendment under Article 368 is a constituent
power and not a constituted power; that, that there are no implied
limitations on the constituent power under Article 368; that, the power
under Article 368 has to keep the Constitution in repair as and when it
becomes necessary and thereby protect and preserve the basic structure.
In such process of amendment, if it destroys the basic feature of the
Constitution, the amendment will be unconstitutional. The Constitution,
according to the respondents, is not merely what it says. It is what the
last interpretation of the relevant provision of the Constitution given by
the Supreme Court which prevails as a law. The interpretation placed on
the Constitution by the Court becomes part of the Constitution and,
therefore, it is open to amendment under Article 368. An interpretation
placed by the Court on any provision of the Constitution gets inbuilt in
the provisions interpreted. Such articles are capable of amendment
under Article 368. Such change of the law so declared by the Supreme
Court will not merely for that reason alone violate the basic structure of
the Constitution or amount to usurpation of judicial power. This is how
the Constitution becomes dynamic. Law has to change. It requires
amendments to the Constitution according to the needs of time and
needs of society. It is an ongoing process of judicial and constituent
powers, both contributing to change of law with the final say in the
judiciary to pronounce on the validity of such change of law effected by
the constituent power by examining whether such amendments violate
the basic structure of the Constitution. On every occasion when a
constitutional matter comes before the Court, the meaning of the
provisions of the Constitution will call for interpretation, but every
interpretation of the article does not become a basic feature of the
Constitution. That, there are no implied limitations on the power of
Parliament under Article 368 when it seeks to amend the Constitution.
However, an amendment will be invalid, if it interferes with or
undermines the basic structure. The validity of the amendment is not to
be decided on the touchstone of Article 13 but only on the basis of
violation of the basic features of the Constitution.
16.
It was
submitted, that the term consultation with reference to Article 124, had
been understood as conferring primacy with the judiciary.
Therefore,
Chief Justice of India, but the executive was to accede to the view
expressed by the Chief Justice of India.
Justice of India is concerned, it was submitted, that the same had also
been understood to mean, not the individual opinion of the Chief Justice
of India, but the opinion of the judiciary symbolized through the Chief
Justice of India. Accordingly, it was emphasized, that the individual
opinion of the Chief Justice (with reference to Articles 124 and 217) was
understood as the institutional opinion of the judiciary.
Accordingly,
18. The key issue, which arises for determination in this case iswhether
by virtue of the impugned constitutional amendments, the power of
Parliament is so enlarged so as to obliterate any or all of the
constitutional limitations and requirements?
Standards of judicial review of constitutional amendments
19. The Constitution is not an ephemeral legal document embodying a
set of legal rules for the passing hour. It sets out principles for an
expanding future and is intended to endure for ages to come and
consequently to be adapted to the various crises of human affairs.
Therefore, a purposive rather than a strict literal approach to the
interpretation should be adopted. A constitutional provision must be
construed not in a narrow and constricted sense but in a wide and liberal
manner so as to anticipate and take account of changing conditions and
purposes so that a constitutional provision does not get fossilised but
remains flexible enough to meet the newly emerging problems and
challenges.
Learned senior counsel, also drew the Courts attention to similar
observations recorded in the Second Judges case.
19.
The provisions of Article 124, it was pointed out, as it existed prior to the
impugned amendment, had provided for a system of trusteeship, wherein
institutional predominance of the judiciary was the hallmark.
It was
changing the basis of the legislation, would not be the correct test to
evaluate the actions of the Parliament, in the present controversy. It was
likewise submitted, that reasonableness and proportionality were also
not the correct test(s) to be applied.
order
to
determine
the
validity
the
impugned
constitutional
amendment (and the NJAC Act), the Union of India and the ratifying
States will have to bear the onus of satisfactorily establishing, that the
amended provisions, could under no circumstances, be used (actually
misused) to subvert the independence of the judiciary. Placing reliance
on the M. Nagaraj case36, the Courts attention was invited to the
following observations:
22. The question which arises before us is regarding the nature of the
standards of judicial review required to be applied in judging the validity
of the constitutional amendments in the context of the doctrine of basic
structure. The concept of a basic structure giving coherence and
durability to a Constitution has a certain intrinsic force. This doctrine
submitted, that the overarching principle for this Court, was to first keep
in its mind, the exact nature of the amendment contemplated through
the Constitution (99th Amendment) Act.
excessive. For the above, reference was made to the Madras Bar
Association case35, wherein this Court recorded the following conclusions:
134.(i) Parliament has the power to enact legislation and to vest
adjudicatory functions earlier vested in the High Court with an
alternative court/tribunal. Exercise of such power by Parliament would
not per se violate the basic structure of the Constitution.
135.(ii) Recognised constitutional conventions pertaining to the
Westminster model do not debar the legislating authority from enacting
legislation to vest adjudicatory functions earlier vested in a superior
court with an alternative court/tribunal. Exercise of such power by
Parliament would per se not violate any constitutional convention.
136.(iii) The basic structure of the Constitution will stand violated if
while enacting legislation pertaining to transfer of judicial power,
Parliament does not ensure that the newly created court/tribunal
conforms with the salient characteristics and standards of the court
sought to be substituted.
137.(iv) Constitutional conventions pertaining to the Constitutions styled
on the Westminster model will also stand breached, if while enacting
legislation, pertaining to transfer of judicial power, conventions and
salient characteristics of the court sought to be replaced are not
incorporated in the court/tribunal sought to be created.
138.(v) The prayer made in Writ Petition (C) No. 621 of 2007 is declined.
Company Secretaries are held ineligible for representing a party to an
appeal before NTT.
139.(vi) Examined on the touchstone of Conclusions (iii) and (iv)
(contained in paras 136 and 137, above) Sections 5, 6, 7, 8 and 13 of the
NTT Act (to the extent indicated hereinabove), are held to be
unconstitutional. Since the aforesaid provisions constitute the edifice of
the NTT Act, and without these provisions the remaining provisions are
rendered ineffective and inconsequential, the entire enactment is
declared unconstitutional.
Based on the above, it was asserted, that this Court had now clearly laid
down, that on issues pertaining to the transfer of judicial power, the
salient characteristics, standards and conventions of judicial power,
could not be breached.
23.
Advocate, that the defect in the judgment rendered by this Court in the
First Judges case, was that, Article 50 of the Constitution had not been
appropriately highlighted, for consideration. It was submitted, that
importance of Article 50 read with Articles 12 and 36, came to be
examined in the Second Judges case, wherein the majority view, was as
follows:
80. From the above deliberation, it is clear that Article 50 was referred to
in various decisions by the eminent Judges of this Court while discussing
the principle of independence of the judiciary. We may cite Article 36
which falls under Part IV (Directive Principles of State Policy) and which
reads thus:
36. In this Part, unless the context otherwise requires, the State has
the same meaning as in Part III.
81. According to this article, the definition of the expression the State in
Article 12 shall apply throughout Part IV, wherever that word is used.
Therefore, it follows that the expression the State used in Article 50 has
to be construed in the distributive sense as including the Government
and Parliament of India and the Government and the legislature of each
State and all local or other authorities within the territory of India or
under the control of the Government of India. When the concept of
separation of the judiciary from the executive is assayed and assessed
that concept cannot be confined only to the subordinate judiciary, totally
discarding the higher judiciary. If such a narrow and pedantic or
syllogistic approach is made and a constricted construction is given, it
would lead to an anomalous position that the Constitution does not
emphasise the separation of higher judiciary from the executive. Indeed,
the distinguished Judges of this Court, as pointed out earlier, in various
decisions have referred to Article 50 while discussing the concept of
independence of higher or superior judiciary and thereby highlighted and
laid stress on the basic principle and values underlying Article 50 in
safeguarding the independence of the judiciary.
xxx
xxx
xxx
85. Regrettably, there are some intractable problems concerned with
judicial administration starting from the initial stage of selection of
candidates to man the Supreme Court and the High Courts leading to the
present malaise. Therefore, it has become inevitable that effective steps
have to be taken to improve or retrieve the situation. After taking note of
these problems and realising the devastating consequences that may
181. It cannot be gainsaid that the CJI being the head of the Indian
Judiciary and paterfamilias of the judicial fraternity has to keep a vigilant
watch in protecting the integrity and guarding the independence of the
judiciary and he in that capacity evaluates the merit of the candidate
with regard to his/her professional attainments, legal ability etc. and
offers his opinion. Therefore, there cannot be any justification in
scanning that opinion of the CJI by applying a superimposition test
under the guise of overguarding the judiciary.
xxx
xxx
xxx
183. One should not lose sight of the important fact that appointment to
the judicial office cannot be equated with the appointment to the
executive or other services. In a recent judgment in All India Judges
Association v. Union of India (1993) 4 SCC 288... rendered by a
three-Judge Bench presided over by M.N. Venkatachaliah, C.J. and
consisting of A.M. Ahmadi and P.B. Sawant, JJ., the following
observations are made: (SCC pp. 295 e-h, 296 a and c-d, 297 b, paras 7
and 9)
The judicial service is not service in the sense of employment. The
judges are not employees. As members of the judiciary, they exercise the
sovereign judicial power of the State. They are holders of public offices in
the same way as the members of the Council of Ministers and the
members of the legislature. When it is said that in a democracy such as
ours, the executive, the legislature and the judiciary constitute the three
pillars of the State, what is intended to be conveyed is that the three
essential functions of the State are entrusted to the three organs of the
State and each one of them in turn represents the authority of the State.
However, those who exercise the State power are the ministers, the
legislators and the judges, and not the members of the their staff who
implement or assist in implementing their decisions. The Council of
Ministers or the political executive is different from the secretarial staff or
the administrative executive which carries out the decisions of the
political executive. Similarly, the legislators are different from the
legislative staff. So also the judges from the judicial staff. The parity is
between the political executive, the legislators and the judges and not
between the judges and the administrative executive. In some
democracies like the USA, members of some State judiciaries are elected
as much as the members of the legislature and the heads of the State.
The judges, at whatever level they may be, represent the State and its
authority unlike the administrative executive or the members of other
services. The members of the other services, therefore, cannot be placed
on a par with the members of the judiciary, either constitutionally or
functionally.
Whereupon,
this
Court
recorded
its
conclusions.
The
relevant
(1) The consultation with the CJI by the President is relatable to the
judiciary and not to any other service.
(2) In the process of various constitutional appointments, consultation is
required only to the judicial office in contrast to the other high-ranking
constitutional offices. The prior consultation envisaged in the first
proviso to Article 124(2) and Article 217(1) in respect of judicial offices is
a reservation or limitation on the power of the President to appoint the
Judges to the superior courts.
xxx
xxx
xxx
(4) The context in which the expression shall always be consulted used
in the first proviso of Article 124(2) and the expression shall be
appointed after consultation deployed in Article 217(1) denote the
mandatory character of consultation, which has to be and is of a binding
character.
(5) Articles 124 and 217 do not speak in specific terms requiring the
President to consult the executive as such, but the executive comes into
play in the process of appointment of Judges to the higher echelons of
judicial service by the operation of Articles 74 and 163 of the
Constitution. In other words, in the case of appointment of Judges, the
President is not obliged to consult the executive as there is no specific
provision for such consultation.
(6) The President is constitutionally obliged to consult the CJI alone in
the case of appointment of a Judge to the Supreme Court as per the
mandatory proviso to Article 124(2) and in the case of appointment of a
Judge to the High Court, the President is obliged to consult the CJI and
the Governor of the State and in addition the Chief Justice of the High
Court concerned, in case the appointment relates to a Judge other than
the Chief Justice of that High Court. Therefore, to place the opinion of
the CJI on a par with the other constitutional functionaries is not in
consonance with the spirit of the Constitution, but against the very
nature of the subject-matter concerning the judiciary and in opposition
to the context in which consultation is required. After the observation of
Bhagwati, J. in Gupta case that the consultation must be full and
effective there is no conceivable reason to hold that such consultation
need not be given primary consideration.
xxx
xxx
xxx
196. In the background of the above factual and legal position, the
meaning of the word consultation cannot be confined to its ordinary
lexical definition. Its contents greatly vary according to the circumstances
and context in which the word is used as in our Constitution.
xxx
xxx
xxx
207. No one can deny that the State in the present day has become the
major litigant and the superior courts particularly the Supreme Court,
have become centres for turbulent controversies, some of which with a
flavour of political repercussions and the Courts have to face tempest and
counsel invited our attention to the preamble of the NJAC Act, which is
reproduced below:
commencement
of
the
Constitution,
whenever
changes
were
It
was pointed out, that the judgment rendered in the Second Judges case,
had not become irrelevant. This Court, in the above judgment, provided
for the preservation of the independence of the judiciary. The aforesaid
judgment, as also, the later judgment in the Third Judges case,
was attacked as one reached by the Home Minister only and not by the
President personally, the Court observed:
The alternative stand which the appellant took was that the Executive
was not entitled to determine his age, and it must be remembered that
this stand was taken before Article 217(3) was inserted in the
Constitution; the appellant was undoubtedly justified in contending that
the Executive was not competent to determine the question about his age
because that is a matter which would have to be tried normally, in
judicial proceedings instituted before High Courts of competent
jurisdiction. There is considerable force in the plea which the appellant
took at the initial stages of this controversy that if the Executive is
allowed to determine the age of a sitting Judge of a High Court, that
would seriously affect the independence of the Judiciary itself.
Based on this reasoning, the Court quashed the order, the ratio of the
case being that the President himself should decide the age of the Judge,
uninfluenced by the Executive, i.e. by the Minister in charge of the
portfolio dealing with justice.
148. This decision was reiterated in Union of India v. Jyoti Prakash
Mitter (1971) 1 SCC 396. Although an argument was made that the
President was guided in that case by the Minister of Home Affairs and by
the Prime Minister, it was repelled by the Court which, on the facts,
found the decision to be that of the President himself and not of the
Prime Minister or the Home Minister.
149. In the light of the scheme of the Constitution we have already
referred to, it is doubtful whether such an interpretation as to the
personal satisfaction of the President is correct. We are of the view that
the President means, for all practical purposes, the Minister or the
Council of Ministers as the case may be, and his opinion, satisfaction or
decision is constitutionally secured when his Ministers arrive at such
opinion satisfaction or decision. The independence of the Judiciary,
which is a cardinal principle of the Constitution and has been relied on to
justify the deviation, is guarded by the relevant article-making
consultation with the Chief Justice of India obligatory. In all conceivable
cases consultation with that highest dignitary of Indian justice will and
should be accepted by the Government of India and the Court will have
an opportunity to examine if any other extraneous circumstances have
entered into the verdict of the Minister, if he departs from the counsel
given by the Chief Justice of India. In practice the last word in such a
sensitive subject must belong to the Chief Justice of India, the rejection
of his advice being ordinarily regarded as prompted by oblique
considerations vitiating the order. In this view it is immaterial whether
the President or the Prime Minister or the Minister for Justice formally
decides the issue.
27.
It was pointed out, that the decision in the Samsher Singh case 11,
came to be rendered well before the decision in the First Judges case,
wherein this Court felt, that Judges could be fearless only if, institutional
immunity was assured, and institutional autonomy was guaranteed. The
view expressed in the Samsher Singh case 11 in 1974 was, that the final
authority in the matter of appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary,
rested with the Chief Justice of India. It was pointed out, that the above
position had held the field, ever since. It was submitted, that
independence of the judiciary has always meant and included
independence in the matter of appointment of Judges to the higher
judiciary.
28.
One Hundred and Twenty-first Report also emphasised the need for a
change in the system.
2. The National Judicial Commission to make recommendations with
respect to the appointment of Judges of the Supreme Court will consist of
the Chief Justice of India and two other Judges of the Supreme Court
next in seniority to the Chief Justice of India. The Commission to make
recommendations with respect to the appointment of the Judges of the
High Courts will consist of the Chief Justice of India, one senior-most
Judge of the Supreme Court, the Chief Minister of the State concerned,
Chief Justice of the concerned High Court and one senior-most Judge of
that High Court.
3. The Bill seeks to achieve the above object.
NEW DELHI;
The 11th May, 1990;
The proposed National Judicial Commission in the above Bill, was to be
made a component of Part XIIIA of the Constitution, by including therein
Article 307A. The Chief Justice of India, and the next two senior most
Judges of the Supreme Court, were proposed to comprise of the
contemplated Commission, for making appointments of Judges to the
Supreme Court, Chief Justices and Judges to High Courts, and for
transfer of High Court Judges from one High Court to another. The above
Commission, omitted any executive and legislative participation. The
proposed composition of the Commission, for appointing High Court
Judges, included the Chief Justice of India, the Chief Minister or the
Governor of the concerned State, the senior most Judge of the Supreme
Court, the Chief Justice of the concerned High Court, and the senior
most Judge of that Court. The above Bill also provided for, an
independent
and
separate
secretarial
staff
for
the
contemplated
the legal position, expounded by this Court in the First Judges case. It
was submitted, that the necessity to give effect to the proposed
Constitution (67th Amendment) Bill, 1990, stood obviated when this
Court rendered its judgment in the Second Judges case. All this,
according to learned counsel for the petitioners, has been forgotten and
ignored.
30.
Amendment) Bill, 2003 was placed before the Parliament for its
consideration. In the above Bill, the executive participation in the process
of selection and appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary, was
introduced by making the Union Minister of Law and Justice, an ex
officio Member of the Commission. Two eminent citizens (either eminent
jurists, or eminent lawyers, or legal academicians of high repute) would
also be Members of the Commission. One of them was to be appointed by
the President in consultation with the Chief Justice of India, and the
other, in consultation with the Prime Minister. Yet another effort was
made (by the previous U.P.A. Government), in the same direction,
through the Constitution (120th Amendment) Bill, 2013, on similar lines
as the 2003 Bill. It was sought to be pointed out, that there was a
consensus amongst all the parties, that the aforesaid Bill should be
approved. And that, learned counsel personally, as a Member of the
Rajya Sabha, had strongly contested the above move. Learned counsel
invited this Courts attention to the objections raised by him, during the
course of the debate before the Rajya Sabha. He emphasized, that he had
complete honesty that what you are trying to demolish is the Collegium
System, which seems to be the object, and which is apparent to anyone.
Some of the persons who have spoken have spoken on the assumption
that that is the purpose of this particular piece of legislation.
Sir, the first point that I propose to make is that the 1993 judgment of
Nine Judges is a judgment based upon the discovery of the basic feature
of the Constitution, and upon devising a system to sustain that basic
feature. Madam, I have myself appeared in that litigation and I claim that
I had a tremendous contribution to make to the success of that
judgment. In a sense, I claim to be the founder of the Collegium System.
But that does not mean that I am an unmixed admirer of the Collegium
System. The Collegium System has, doubtless, some faults. But the
Collegium System came into existence on the basis of one main
argument. That one main argument that we advance, and advance with
great vigour and force, is that there is one article of the Constitution,
article 50 of the Constitution, which is the shortest article in the
Constitution, consisting of only one sentence. That article says that the
Government shall strive to keep the Judiciary separate from the
Executive.
Sir, we argued before the Supreme Court that this article does not mean
that Judges and Ministers should not socially meet. This does not mean
that they should live in separate towns, or that they should not live even
in adjoining bungalows. The purpose of this article is to ensure that in
the appointment of Judges, the Executive has no role to play, except the
advisory role. In other words, the doctrine of primacy of the Executive in
the appointment process was irksome to us because the whole nation of
India has been the victim of the Judges appointed in the earlier system. I
have been a refugee from my own country during the Emergency. Why
was it? It was because four Supreme Court Judges I am not talking of
the fifth who earned the New York Times praise that the Indian nation
will have to build a monument to his memory; I am talking of the other
four who disgraced the Judiciary, disgraced the Supreme Court and
were parties to the destruction of Indian democracy and the demolition
and the debasement of the whole Constitution of India. Sir, of which
system were they the product? They were the product of that system
which, in 1981, was ultimately supported by the Gupta Judgment but,
after some time, there were people, intellectuals, who spoke up that this
system would not work; the system requires change. Sir, the Indian
democracy has been saved not by intellectuals; Indian democracy at its
most crucial hour has been saved by the poor illiterates of this country.
In times of crises, it is only the brave hearted who matter. On those
which one had pride remained tongue tied (Two sentences translated).
That is the tragedy of our country. Sir, the intellectuals of this country
have continuously failed, and I regret to say that they are failing even
today. Collegium may be the creation of the Judiciary, it is the creation of
judicial interpretation, again, of the Constitution, but whatever be the
faults of the Collegium, the Collegium today represents some system
Amendment looks very innocent. All that it says is that we shall have a
new article 124(a) in the Constitution and article 124(a) merely says that
there shall be a Judicial Appointments Commission. It lays down that the
Judicial Appointments Commission will have these functions. It leaves at
that. But, kindly see that after the first sentence, every thing is left to a
Parliamentary will. After saying that there will be a Judicial
Appointments Commission, every thing will be left, according to the
second part of 124(a), to a parliamentary legislation which is capable of
being removed if the ruling party has one Member majority in both
Houses of Parliament. Not only that, I understand that Parliament is not
likely to do it, but it can do it and by a majority of one in both Houses,
you can demolish the whole thing and substitute it with a Judicial
Commission which will consist of only the Law Minister.
xxx
xxx
xxx
So, Sir, my first objection is that this Bill is a Bill which is intended to
deal with the basic structure of the Constitution and, therefore, this Bill
is void. (Time-bell) Second, if a Constitutional Amendment is not good
enough for this purpose, surely, an ordinary piece of legislation cannot
do it, which ordinary piece of legislation can be removed only by a
majority of one in each House. It can be removed like the 30th July Food
Security Ordinance and you can pass an Ordinance on that day and say
that the whole Act is repealed and now the system will be that Judges
will be appointed for the next six months by only the Law Minister of
India. If there was Mr. Kapil Sibal, ...(Interruptions)... If Mr. Kapil Sibal
becomes the Law Minister for ever, Sir, I will allow this Bill to go.
(Time-bell) But I am not prepared to accept it for the future Law
Ministers. ...(Interruptions)... Sir, let me take two more minutes and tell
all those Members that this Bill is not intended to ensure the judicial
character. This Bill has nothing to do with the improvement of the
judicial character. So long as the Judges are also human, there will be
some Judges who will go wrong, who may go wrong. But a great Bar can
control them. .
xxx
xxx
xxx
Sir, I hope, people will avoid this kind of a tragedy in the life of this
country. You are today digging the grave of the Constitution of India and
the freedom of this country. ...(Interruptions)... That's all I wished to
say. ...(Interruptions)...
It was submitted, that in the Rajya Sabha 131 votes were cast in
affirmation of the proposed Bill, as against the solitary vote of the learned
counsel, against the same on 5.9.2013. It was however pointed out, that
the effort did not bear fruit, on account of the intervening declaration for
elections to the Parliament.
31.
It
was
submitted,
that
the
Objects
and
Reasons
of
the
Sabha passed the above Bill on 5.9.2013, when 131 Members of the
Rajya Sabha supported the Bill (with only one Member opposing it).
Learned counsel submitted, that he alone had opposed the Bill. It was
asserted, that the above fraud was sought to be perpetuated, through the
passing of the Constitution (121st Amendment) Bill, 2014, by the Lok
Sabha on 13.8.2014, and by the Rajya Sabha on 14.8.2014.
It was
36.
NJAC, Mr. Arvind P. Datar, learned Senior Advocate, invited our attention
to Article 124A, whereunder, the above two eminent persons are to be
nominated by a committee comprising of the Prime Minister, the Chief
Justice of India and the Leader of Opposition in the House of People, or,
where there is no such Leader of Opposition, then, leader of the single
largest opposition party in the House of the People.
Learned counsel
submitted, that neither Article 124A, nor any other provision, and not
even the provisions of the NJAC Act, indicate the qualifications, of the
two eminent persons, who have been included amongst the six-Member
NJAC. It was sought to be asserted, that in approximately 70 Statutes
and Rules, the expression eminent person has been employed. Out of
the 70 Statutes, in 67, the field in which such persons must be eminent,
has been clearly expressed. Only in three statutes, the term eminent
person was used without any further qualification. It was asserted, that
the term eminent person had been left vague and undefined, in Article
124A. It was submitted, that the vagueness of the term eminent person
was itself, good enough to justify the striking down of the provision. It
was emphasized, that the determinative role assigned to the two eminent
persons, included amongst the six-Member NJAC, was so important,
that the same could not be left to the imagination of the nominating
committee, which comprised of just men with all the failings, all the
sentiments and all prejudices which we as common people have
(relying on the words of Dr. B.R. Ambedkar).
37.
(2010) 11 SCC 1
38.
constitutional validity of clauses (c) and (d) of Article 124A(1), but also
emphatically assailed the first proviso under Article 124A(1)(d), which
postulates, that one of the eminent persons should belong to the
Scheduled Castes, Scheduled Tribes, Other Backward Classes, Minorities
or Women.
It was also the contention of Mr. Arvind P. Datar, that Article 124C
the
Andhra
Pradesh
High
Court
Advocates
Association,
Hyderabad (Andhra Pradesh), the Delhi High Court Bar Association, New
Delhi, the Bar Association Mumbai (Maharashtra), the Gauhati High
Court Bar Association, Guwahati (Assam), the Punjab & Haryana High
Court Bar Association, Chandigarh (Punjab & Haryana), the Bombay
Incorporated Law Society, Mumbai (Maharashtra), the Madhya Pradesh
High Court Bar Association, Jabalpur (Madhya Pradesh), the Advocates
Association Bangalore (Karnataka), the Central Excise, Customs (Gold)
Control
Bar
Allahabad
Association,
(Uttar
New
Pradesh),
the
Delhi,
the
Karnataka
Advocates
Advocates
Association,
Federation,
43.
between the judiciary and the other two wings of governance, were
indicated in the observations recorded in State of Madras v. V.G. Row 40,
wherein, as far back as in 1952, the Supreme Court observed, that its
conclusions were recorded, not out of any desire to a tilt at the legislative
authority in a crusaders spirit, but in discharge of the duty plainly laid
upon the Courts, by the Constitution.
44.
Nath
case41,
that
by
way
of
constitutional
the judiciary and the other two wings of governance, it was submitted,
that from 1950 to 1973, there was virtually no attempt by the
political-executive, to undermine or influence or dominate over the
judiciary.
Jawaharlal Nehru (upto 27th May, 1964), Gulzari Lal Nanda (upto 9 th
40
41
June, 1964), Lal Bahadur Shastri (upto 11th January,1966), Gulzari Lal
Nanda (upto 24th January, 1966) and Indira Gandhi (upto 1972) were
running the executive and political governance in India, in their capacity
as Prime Minister, had not taken any steps to dominate over the
judiciary.
Thereafter,
two
facts
could
not be digested
by the
It was submitted, that in the recent past also, the exercise of the
(1971) 1 SCC 85
legislature can never appreciate that the power of judicial review has
been exercised by the higher judiciary, as a matter of public trust. As a
sequel to the above two judgments, it was pointed out, that an amount of
approximately Rupees two lakh crores (Rs. 20,00,00,00,00,000/-) was
gained by the public exchequer, for just a few coal block allocations (for
which reliance was placed on an article which had appeared in the Indian
Express dated 10.3.2015). And an additional amount of Rupees one lakh
ten thousand crores (Rs.11,00,00,00,00,000/-) was gained by the public
exchequer from the spectrum auction (for which reliance was placed on
an article in the Financial Express dated 25.03.2015). It was submitted,
that the embarrassment faced by the political-executive, has over
shadowed the monumental gains to the nation. It was contended, that
the Constitution (99th Amendment) Act, and the NJAC Act, were
truthfully a political-executive device, to rein in the power of judicial
review, to avoid such discomfiture.
47.
(2012) 3 SCC 1
(2014) 2 SCC 532
and bringing them to justice with high speed and early finality, is a
desideratum voiced in vain by Commissions and Committees in the past
and is a dimension of the dynamics of the Rule of Law. This Bill,
hopefully but partially, breaks new ground contrary to people's resigned
cynicism
that
all
high-powered
investigations,
reports
and
recommendations end in legislative and judicative futility, that all these
valiant exercises are but sound and fury signifying nothing, that
'business as usual' is the signature tune of public business, heretofore,
here and hereafter. So this social justice measure has my broad assent in
moral principle and in constitutional classification, subject to the serious
infirmities from which it suffers as the learned Chief Justice has tersely
sketched. Whether this remedy will effectively cure the malady of criminal
summitry is for the future to tell.
108. All this serves as a backdrop. Let me unfold in fuller argumentation
my thesis that the Bill, good so far as it goes, is bad so far as it does not
go-saved though by a pragmatic exception I will presently explain. Where
the proposed law excludes the pre-and post-emergency crime-doers in
the higher brackets and picks out only 'Emergency' offenders, its benign
purpose perhaps becomes a crypto cover up of like criminals before and
after. An 'ephemeral' measure to meet a perennial menace is neither a
logical step nor national fulfilment. The classification, if I may anticipate
my conclusion, is on the brink of constitutional break-down at that point
and becomes almost vulnerable to the attack of Article 14.
xxx
xxx
xxx
114. The crucial test is 'All power is a trust', its holders are 'accountable
for its exercise', for 'from the people, and for the people, all springs, and
all must exist'. By this high and only standard the Bill must fail morally if
it exempts non-Emergency criminals about whom prior Commission
Reports, now asleep in official pigeon holes, bear witness and future
Commission Reports (who knows?) may, in time, testify. In this larger
perspective, Emergency is not a substantial differentia and the Bill nearly
recognises this by ante-dating the operation to February 27, 1975 when
there was no 'Emergency'. Why ante-date if the 'emergency' was the
critical criterion?
xxx
xxx
xxx
117. Let us take a close look at the 'Emergency', the vices it bred and the
nexus they have to speedier justice, substantial enough to qualify for
reasonable sub-classification. Information flowing from the proceedings
and reports of a bunch of high-powered judicial commissions shows that
during that hushed spell, many suffered shocking treatment. In the
words of the Preamble, civil liberties were withdrawn to a great extent,
important fundamental rights of the people were suspended, strict
censorship on the press was placed and judicial powers were curtailed to
a large extent.
xxx
xxx
xxx
128. Let us view the problem slightly differently. Even if liberty had not
been curtailed, press not gagged or writ jurisdiction not cut down,
criminal trials and appeals and revisions would have taken their own
interminable delays. It is the forensic delay that has to be axed and that
has little to do with the vices of the Emergency. Such crimes were
exposed by judicial commissions before, involving Chief Ministers and
Cabinet Ministers at both levels and no criminal action followed except
now and that of a select group. It was lack of will-not Emergency-that
was the villain of the piece in non-prosecution of cases revealed by
several Commissions like the Commission of Enquiry appointed by the
Government of Orissa in 1967 (Mr. Justice Khanna), the Commission of
Enquiry appointed by the Government of J&K in 1965 (Mr. Justice
Rajagopala Ayyangar), the Mudholkar Commission against 14 ex-United
Front Ministers appointed by the Government of Bihar in 1968 and the
T.L. Venkatarama Aiyar Commission of Inquiry appointed by the
Government of Bihar, 1970-to mention but some. We need hardly say
that there is no law of limitation for criminal prosecutions. Somehow, a
few manage to be above the law and the many remain below the law.
How? I hesitate to state.
Last of all, reliance was placed on the decision of this Court in
Subramanian Swamy v. Director, Central Bureau of Investigation 47,
wherein this Court extensively referred to the conditions regarding
corruption which prevailed in the country. For the above purpose, it took
into consideration the view expressed by the N.N. Vohra Committee
Report, bringing out the nexus between the criminal syndicates and
mafia.
48.
the death of the first Chief Justice of India (after the promulgation of the
Constitution), when Patanjali Sastri, J., who was the senior most Judge,
was sought to be overlooked. Relying on recorded texts in this behalf, by
Granville Austin, George H. Gadbois Jr. and M.C. Chagla, it was
submitted, that all the six Judges, at that time, had threatened to resign,
47
if the senior most Judge was overlooked for appointment as Chief Justice
of India.
49.
appointing A.N. Ray, J., as the Chief Justice of India, it was submitted,
that the supersession led to public protest, including speeches by former
Judges, former Attorneys General, legal luminaries and members of the
Bar, throughout the country. M. Hidayatullah, CJ., in a public speech,
complimented the three Judges, who were superseded, for having
resigned from their office, immediately on the appointment of A.N. Ray,
as Chief Justice of India. In the speech delivered by M. Hidayatullah, CJ.,
he made a reference about rumors being afloat, that the senior most
Judge after him, namely, J.C. Shah, J., would not succeed him as the
Chief Justice of India. And that, an outsider was being brought to the
Supreme Court, as its Chief Justice. His speech highlighted the fact, that
all except one sitting Judge of the Supreme Court had agreed to resign in
the event of supersession of J.C. Shah, J.. He had also pointed out, in
his speech, that if the decision was taken by the executive, even a day
before his retirement, he too would join his colleagues in resigning from
his position as the Chief Justice of India. It was accordingly submitted,
that the constitutional convention, that the senior most Judge of the
Supreme Court would be appointed as the Chief Justice of India, was
truly and faithfully recognized as an impregnable convention. To support
the aforesaid contention, it was also pointed out, that even in situations
wherein the senior most puisne Judge would have a very short tenure,
It was also the contention of the learned senior counsel, that the
Additionally, it
was pointed out, that two eminent persons, who were to be essential
components of the NJAC, were to be selected by a Committee, wherein
the dominating voice was that of the political leadership. It was pointed
out, that in the three-Member Committee authorised to nominate
eminent persons included the Prime Minister and the Leader of the
Opposition in the Lok Sabha, besides the Chief Justice of India. It was
therefore submitted, that in the six-Member NJAC, three Members would
have political-executive lineage. This aspect of the matter, according to
51.
maintained. It was pointed out, that the intent behind Article 124C, in
the manner it had been framed, stood clearly exposed, by the aforesaid
provisions of the NJAC Act.
52.
highlight, that the NJAC had been authorized to notify in the Official
Gazette, regulations framed by it, with the overriding condition, that the
regulations so framed by the NJAC were to be consistent with the
provisions of the NJAC Act, as also, the rules made thereunder (i.e.,
under Section 11 of the NJAC Act). Having so empowered the NJAC
(under Sections 11 and 12 referred to above), and having delineated in
Section 12(2), the broad outlines with reference to which the regulations
could be framed, it was submitted, that the power to delegate the
authority to frame regulations clearly stood exhausted. In that, the
Parliament had no jurisdiction thereafter, to interfere in the matter of
framing
regulations.
In
fact,
according
to
the
learned
counsel,
It was also the contention of the learned counsel, that the NJAC
judiciary. The procedure which the NJAC could adopt for discharging its
functions, and the procedure it was liable to follow while holding its
meetings, and the ambit and scope with reference to which the NJAC was
authorized to frame its regulations, had to be left to the exclusive
independent will of an independent NJAC. That, according to learned
counsel, would have ensured the independence of the NJAC. It was
accordingly contended, that Article 124C breached the independence of
the judiciary, and also, undermined the independence of the NJAC.
54.
was with reference to clause (2) of Article 124A, whereby judicial review
was barred, with reference to actions or proceedings of the NJAC, on the
ground of the existence of a vacancy or defect in the constitution of the
NJAC. Learned counsel then invited this Courts attention to the
exclusion of the power of judicial review, contemplated under Articles
323A(2)(d) and 323B(3)(d), wherein the power of judicial review was
similarly excluded. It was submitted, that this Court struck down a
similar provision in the aforesaid Articles, holding that the same were
violative of the basic structure of the Constitution. In this behalf,
learned counsel placed reliance on the decision of this Court in the
Kihoto Hollohan case34, and referred to the following observations
recorded therein:
129. The unanimous opinion according to the majority as well as the
minority is that Paragraph 7 of the Tenth Schedule enacts a provision for
complete exclusion of judicial review including the jurisdiction of the
Supreme Court under Article 136 and of the High Courts under Articles
226 and 227 of the Constitution and, therefore, it makes in terms and in
effect a change in Articles 136, 226 and 227 of the Constitution which
attracts the proviso to clause (2) of Article 368 of the Constitution; and,
therefore, ratification by the specified number of State legislatures before
the Bill was presented to the President for his assent was necessary, in
accordance therewith. The majority view is that in the absence of such
ratification by the State legislatures, it is Paragraph 7 alone of the Tenth
Schedule which is unconstitutional; and it being severable from the
remaining part of the Tenth Schedule, Paragraph 7 alone is liable to be
struck down rendering the Speakers decision under Paragraph 6 that of
a judicial tribunal amenable to judicial review by the Supreme Court and
the High Courts under Articles 136, 226 and 227. The minority opinion is
that the effect of invalidity of Paragraph 7 of the Tenth Schedule is to
invalidate the entire Constitution (Fifty-second Amendment) Act, 1985
which inserted the Tenth Schedule since the Presidents assent to the Bill
without prior ratification by the State legislatures is non est. The
minority view also is that Paragraph 7 is not severable from the
remaining part of the Tenth Schedule and the Speaker not being an
independent adjudicatory authority for this purpose as contemplated by
a basic feature of democracy, the remaining part of the Tenth Schedule is
in excess of the amending powers being violative of a basic feature of the
Constitution. In the minority opinion, we have held that the entire
Constitution (Fifty-second Amendment) Act, 1985 is unconstitutional and
an abortive attempt to make the constitutional amendment indicated
therein.
Reliance was also placed on the following conclusions recorded by this
Court in Dr. Kashinath G. Jalmi v. The Speaker48.
43. In Kihoto Hollohan there was no difference between the majority
and minority opinions on the nature of finality attaching to the Speaker's
order of disqualification made under para 6 of the Tenth Schedule, and
also that para 7 therein was unconstitutional in view of the
non-compliance of the proviso to clause 2 of Article 368 of the
Constitution, by which judicial review was sought to be excluded. The
main difference in the two opinions was, that according to the majority
opinion this defect resulted in the constitution standing amended from
the inception with insertion of the Tenth Schedule minus para 7 therein,
while according to the minority the entire exercise of constitutional
amendment was futile and an abortive attempt to amend the
constitution, since Para 7 was not severable. According to the minority
view, all decisions rendered by the several Speakers under the Tenth
Schedule were, therefore, nullity and liable to be ignored. According to
the majority view, para 7 of the Tenth Schedule being unconstitutional
and severable, the Tenth Schedule minus para 7 was validly enacted and,
48
therefore, the orders made by the Speaker under the Tenth Schedule
were not nullity but subject to judicial review. On the basis of the
majority opinion, this Court has exercised the power of judicial review
over the orders of disqualification made by the speakers from the very
inception of the Tenth Schedule, and the exercise of judicial review has
not been confined merely to the orders of disqualification made after 12th
November, 1991 when the judgment in Kihoto Hollohan (1992 (1) SCC
309) was rendered. Venkatachaliah, J. (as he then was) wrote the
majority opinion and, thereafter, on this premise, exercised the power of
judicial review over orders of disqualification made prior to 12.11.1991.
The basic fallacy in the submission made on behalf of the respondents
that para 7 must be treated as existing till 12th November, 1991 is that
on that view there would be no power of judicial review against an order
of disqualification made by the Speaker prior to 12th November, 1991
since para 7 in express terms totally excludes judicial review.
It was, therefore, the vehement contention of the learned counsel, that
clause (2) of Article 124A should be struck down, as being violative of the
basic structure of the Constitution.
55.
It was
(99th
automatically. And that, the same would come into force in terms of the
mandate contained in Section 1(2), - on such date as the Central
Government may, by notification in the Official Gazette, appoint. It was
submitted, that the Central Government notified the Constitution (99th
Amendment) Act, in the Gazette of India Extraordinary on 13.4.2015.
Based
on
the
aforesaid
factual
position,
the
Constitution
(99th
paragraph, learned counsel pointed out, that the NJAC Bill, was also
introduced in the Lok Sabha on 11.8.2014. The Lok Sabha passed the
Bill on 13.8.2014, whereupon, it was passed by the Rajya Sabha on
14.8.2014. Thereafter, the NJAC Bill received the assent of the President
on 31.12.2014, and became the NJAC Act. It was contended, that the
enactment of the NJAC Act was based/founded on the Constitution (99th
Amendment) Act.
of the NJAC Bill and the passing of the NJAC Act prior to the coming into
force of the Constitution (99th Amendment) Act, would render it stillborn
and therefore nugatory. The Courts attention was also invited to the fact,
that the aforesaid legal infirmity, was noticed and raised during the
course of the parliamentary debate pertaining to the NJAC Bill, before the
Rajya Sabha.
following questions and answers, which are recorded on pages 442 to 533
with reference to the debates in the Rajya Sabha on 13.8.2014, and at
pages 229 to 375 on 14.8.2014 (Volume 232 No.26 and 27), as under:
that Mr. Sitaram Yechury, Member of Parliament, (Rajya Sabha) raised a
constitutional objection (on August 13, 2014) to the NJAC Bill saying:
.till the Constitution Amendment (121 st Bill) comes into effect, the
Legislature, I would like to humbly submit, does not have the right to
enact a Bill for the creation of a Judicial Commission for appointments.
(page 488)
..I am only asking you to seriously consider we are creating a
situation where this proposal for creation of a Judicial Appointments
Commission will become ultra vires of the Indian Constitution because
our right to bring about a Bill to enact such a provision comes only after
the Constitution Amendment Bill becomes effective. (page 489)
..Therefore, you please consider what I am saying with seriousness.
I want also the law Minister to consider it. Let it not be struck down later
as ultra vires. So, let us give it a proper consideration. (Page-490)
- The Leader of the Opposition (Shri Ghulam Nabi Azad) then said:
The leader of the opposition (Shri Ghulam Nabi Azad): Sir, I just want to
say that Mr. Yechury has given a totally different dimension to the entire
thing. It is quite an eye opener for all of us that the entire legislation will
become ultr vires. So, my suggestion is that before my colleague, Mr.
Anand Sharma, speaks, I would request one thing. Of course, we have
great lawyers from all sides here but I think one of the oldest luminaries
in the legal profession is Mr. Parasaran. Before we all decide what to do,
can we request him to throw light on what Mr. Yechury has said?
(Page-490)
- Mr. K. Parasaran (Nominated Member) then gave his views saying:
Shri K. Parasarn (contd.)...Before ratification, if you take up the Bill and
pass the Bill, today, it will be unconstitutional and ultra vires. Because
the power to make enactment, as we see, is only in the Articles. The
Article 368 gives the power to .
xxx
xxx
xxx
Mr. Deputy Chairman: What I want to know is this. You have mentioned
that there are two provisions. Number one, if it is amended in a
particular way, it can directly go to the President. If the amendment
involves Chapter IV, part 5, or Chapter V, etc., etc., it has to be ratified
by half in the Assemblies. Okay. I accept both of them. But do any of
these objections object us from considering this Bill now? That is my
question.
Shri K. Parasaran: No. We dont have the legislative competence.
(Page-492)
- The Minister of Law and Justice then said:
..This Bill will become effective after ratification but the separate Bill is
for guidance to the Legislatures as to how the entire structure has come
into existence. Therefore, it is not unconstitutional. We have got
summary power under Article 246 read with Entries 77 and 78, which is
not a limited power. It is a plenary power, exhaustive power. This
Parliament can pass any law with regard to composition and organization
of the Supreme Court; this Parliament can pass any law with regard to
High Court composition. That is not a limited power. .. (Page-495)
Mr. Deputy Chairman: Yes, I will come .(interruptions).
Now, Mr. Minister, the point is that you yourself admit that only after 50
per cent of the Assemblies have endorsed it by a Resolution can your Bill
come into force, and after the President has given assent. And then, you
are saying that the Bill was passed along with this only as a guideline, so
that Members of the Assemblies know what you are going to do.
Shri Ravi Shankar Prasad: But it would become effective after assent.
That is all.
Mr. Deputy Chairman: Thats what I am saying. It will become effective
after six months.
Now, I would like to know one thing from Mr. Parasaran. Article 246,
according to him, (the Minister) gives absolute powers to Parliament to
pass a legislation. Is there any provision in the Constitution, which
prevents passing of such a Bill before the Constitutional Amendment is
endorsed by the President? Is there any such provision? (interruptions)
. I will come to you. Yes, Mr. Parasaran. (Page-495)
- In response Mr. K. Parasaran then said:
Shri K. Parasaran: Sir, I would explain this. Now, we are concerned with
Article 124 and a legislation under Article 246 read with the relevant
entries in the Seventh Schedule, pointed out by the Hon. Minister. Now,
the Supreme Court has interpreted Article 124. We cannot pass an Act
contrary to that judgment and, therefore, the need for amendment to the
constitution. If the Constitution is not amended, then we lack the
legislative competence. There is no good of going to Article 246 and
reading the entries. Had we the legislative competence, under Article 246
read with the entries. (Emphasis supplied) page 495.
Mr. Deputy Chairman: Then, how do you explain Article 246?
In the
aforesaid context, it was submitted, that the NJAC Act could not have
been passed, till the unamended provisions of the Constitution were in
force. And that, the mere assent of the President to the NJAC Act on
31.12.2014, could not infuse validity thereon.
58.
placed reliance on A.K. Roy v. Union of India 49, and invited our attention
to the following:
45 The argument arising out of the provisions of Article 368(2) may be
considered first. It provides that when a Bill whereby the Constitution is
amended is passed by the requisite majority, it shall be presented to the
President who shall give his assent to the Bill, "and thereupon the
Constitution shall stand amended in accordance with the terms of the
Bill." This provision shows that a constitutional amendment cannot have
any effect unless the President gives his assent to it and secondly, that
nothing more than the President's assent to an amendment duly passed
by the Parliament is required, in order that the Constitution should stand
amended in accordance with the terms of the Bill. It must follow from
this that the Constitution stood amended in accordance with the terms of
the 44th Amendment Act when the President gave his assent to that Act
on April 30, 1979. We must then turn to that Act for seeing how and in
what manner the Constitution stood thus amended. The 44th
Amendment Act itself prescribes by Section 1(2) a pre-condition which
must be satisfied before any of its provisions can come into force. That
pre-condition is the issuance by the Central Government of a notification
in the official gazette, appointing the date from which the Act or any
particular provision thereof will come into force, with power to appoint
different dates for different provisions. Thus, according to the very terms
of the 44th Amendment, none of its provisions can come into force unless
and until the Central Government issues a notification as contemplated
by Section 1(2).
46. There is no internal contradiction between the provisions of
Article 368(2) and those of Section 1(2) of the 44th Amendment Act.
Article 368(2) lays down a rule of general application as to the date from
which the Constitution would stand amended in accordance with the Bill
assented to by the President. Section 1(2) of the Amendment Act specifies
the manner in which that Act or any of its provisions may be brought
into force. The distinction is between the Constitution standing amended
in accordance with the terms of the Bill assented to by the President and
the date of the coming into force of the Amendment thus introduced into
the Constitution. For determining the date with effect from which the
Constitution stands amended in accordance with the terms of the Bill,
one has to turn to the date on which the President gave, or was obliged to
give, his assent to the Amendment. For determining the date with effect
from which the Constitution, as amended, came or will come into force,
one has to turn to the notification, if any, issued by the Central
Government under Section 1(2) of the Amendment Act.
49
47. The Amendment Act may provide that the amendment introduced
by it shall come into force immediately upon the President giving his
assent to the Bill or it may provide that the amendment shall come into
force on a future date. Indeed, no objection can be taken to the
constituent body itself appointing a specific future date with effect from
which the Amendment Act will come into force; and if that be so, different
dates can be appointed by it for bringing into force different provisions of
the Amendment Act. The point of the matter is that the Constitution
standing amended in accordance with the terms of the Bill and the
amendment thus introduced into the Constitution coming into force are
two distinct things. Just as a law duly passed by the legislature can have
no effect unless it comes or is brought into force, similarly, an
amendment of the Constitution can have no effect unless it comes or is
brought into force. The fact that the constituent body may itself specify a
future date or dates with effect from which the Amendment Act or any of
its provisions will come into force shows that there is no antithesis
between Article 368(2) of the Constitution and Section 1(2) of the 44th
Amendment Act. The expression of legislative or constituent will as
regards the date of enforcement of the law or Constitution is an integral
part thereof. That is why it is difficult to accept the submission that,
contrary to the expression of the constituent will, the amendments
introduced by the 44th Amendment Act came into force on April 30, 1979
when the President gave his assent to that Act. The true position is that
the amendments introduced by the 44th Amendment Act did not become
a part of the Constitution on April 30, 1979. They will acquire that status
only when the Central Government brings them into force by issuing a
notification under Section 1(2) of the Amendment Act.
59.
procedure, and was within the domain of the enacting legislature, any
infringement to the "basic structure" would be unacceptable. Such
submissions advanced at the hands of the learned counsel for the
respondents are, therefore, liable to be disallowed, and are accordingly
declined.
60.
Mr.
Arvind
P.
Datar,
learned
senior
counsel,
assailed
the
Act.
selection of the Chief Justice of India. Section 5(1) of the NJAC Act, it
was submitted, provides that the NJAC would recommend the senior
most Judge of the Supreme Court, for being appointed as Chief Justice of
India, subject to the condition, that he was considered fit to hold the
office. It was contended, that the procedure to regulate the appointment
of the Chief Justice of India, was to be determined by Parliament, by law
under Article 124C. It was contended, that the term fit, expressed in
Section 5 of the NJAC Act, had not been elaborately described. And as
such, fitness would have to be determined on the subjective satisfaction
of the Members of the NJAC.
would sub-serve the will of the executive. It was submitted, that even an
ordinance could be issued without the necessity, of following the
procedure, of enacting law. It was asserted, that the criterion of fitness
could be defined and redefined.
It was
ignored, and the next senior most Judge, M.H. Beg, was appointed as the
Chief Justice of India. Such control in the hands of the executive would
cause immense inroads, in the decision making process.
And could
result in, Judges trying to placate and appease the executive, for
personal gains and rewards.
62.
the following instance. It was pointed out, that it would be genuine and
legitimate for the Parliament to enact, that a person would be considered
fit for appointment as Chief Justice of India, only if he had a minimum
remaining tenure of at least two years. Such an enactment would have a
devastating effect, even though it would appear to be innocuously
legitimate. It was contended, that out of the 41 Chief Justices of India
appointed till date, only 12 Chief Justices of India, had a tenure of more
than two years. Such action, at the hands of the Parliament, was bound
to cause discontentment to those, who had a legitimate expectation to
hold the office of Chief Justice of India. It was submitted, that similar
instances can be multiplied with dimensional alterations by prescribing
different parameters. It was submitted, that the Parliament should never
be allowed the right to create uncertainty, in the matter of selection and
appointment of the Chief Justice of India, because the office of the Chief
Justice of India was pivotal, as it shouldered extremely serious and
onerous responsibilities.
opinion expressed by H.R. Khanna, J., (in his book Neither Roses Nor
Thorns). Finally, the Courts attention was drawn to the view expressed
by
H.M.
Seervai
(in
Constitutional
Law
of
India
Critical
It was also the contention of the learned counsel for the petitioners,
envisioned by the framers of the Constitution, the same could not have
been overlooked.
65.
Besides the above, the Court's attention was invited to the second
proviso, under Section 5(2) of the NJAC Act, which mandates that the
NJAC would not make a favourable recommendation, if any two Members
thereof, opposed the candidature of an individual. It was contended, that
placing the power of veto, in the hands of any two Members of the NJAC,
would violate the recommendatory power expressed in Article 124B. In
this behalf, it was contended, that the second proviso under Section 5(2),
would enable two eminent persons ( lay persons, if the submission
advanced by the learned Attorney General is to be accepted) to defeat a
unanimous opinion of the Chief Justice of India and the two senior most
Judges of the Supreme Court. And thereby negate the primacy vested in
the judiciary, in the matter of appointment of Judges to the higher
judiciary.
66.
presence of the all Members of the NJAC. In order to support his above
contention, he illustratively placed reliance on the Constitution (122nd
Amendment) Bill, 2014 [brought before the Parliament, by the same
ruling political party, which had successfully amended the Constitution
by tabling the Constitution (121st Amendment) Bill, 2014]. The objective
sought to be achieved through the Constitution (122nd Amendment) Bill,
2014, was to insert Article 279A. The proposed Article 279A intended to
create the Goods and Services Tax Council.
followed the Bill that led to the promulgation of the Constitution (99th
Amendment) Act, it was submitted, that the omission of providing for a
quorum for the functioning of the NJAC, and the omission to quantify the
strength required for valid decision making, was not innocent. And that,
it vitiated the provision itself.
III.
67.
It was pointed out, that the issue for reconsideration of the decision
It was
contended, that the Second Judges case was rendered, without the
participation of all the stakeholders, inasmuch as, the controversy was
raised at the behest of practicing advocates and associations of lawyers,
and there was no other stakeholder involved during its hearing.
69.
It was pointed out, that the issue relating to the amendment of the
This was
and
two
leaders
of
the
Opposition.
The
aforesaid
then
Union
Law
Minister.
The
present
Constitution
(99th
Amendment) Act, 2014, whereby Article 124 has been amended and
Articles 124A to 124C have been inserted in the Constitution,
contemplates a six-Member National Judicial Commission.
It was
valid
(unless
shown
otherwise).
For
the
instant
Ram
Krishna
Dalmia
v.
Justice
S.R.
Tendolkar 51,
the
AIR 1951 SC 41
AIR 1958 SC 538
52
(1975) 1 SCC 166
53
(2008) 4 SCC 720
51
72.
the needs of the people, and to deal with the changing times. For this,
reliance was placed on Mohd. Hanif Quareshi v. State of Bihar 54, State of
West Bengal v. Anwar Ali Sarkar 55. It was contended, that while enacting
the Constitution (99th Amendment) Act, and the NJAC Act, the
Parliament had discharged a responsibility, which it owed to the citizens
of this country, by providing for a meaningful process for the selection
and appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary.
73.
Third Judges cases, it was asserted, that the way he saw it, there was
only one decipherable difference introduced in the process of selection
contemplated through the NJAC. Under the system introduced, the
judiciary could not insist on the appointment of an individual. But the
judiciary continued to retain the veto power, to stop the appointment of
an individual considered unworthy of appointment. According to him, the
nomination of a candidate, for appointment to the higher judiciary, under
the above judgments, could also not fructify, if any two members of the
collegium, expressed an opinion against the nominated candidate. It was
pointed out, that the above position had been retained in the impugned
provisions. According to the learned Attorney General, the only difference
in the impugned provisions was, that the right of the judiciary to insist
on the appointment of a nominee, was no longer available to the
judiciary. Under the collegium system, a recommendation made for
54
55
The
It was submitted, that it was not the case of any of the petitioners
before this Court, either that the Parliament was not competent to amend
Article 124, or that the procedure prescribed therefor under Article 368
had not been followed. In the above view of the matter, it was submitted,
that the only scope for examination with reference to the present
constitutional amendment was, whether while making the aforestated
constitutional amendment, the Parliament had breached, any of the
basic features of the Constitution.
77(i). For demonstrating the validity of the impugned constitutional
amendment,
reliance
in
the
first
instance
was
placed
on
the
therein
was,
the
freedom
of
the
individual,
and
the
Shelat and A.N. Grover, JJ., (in the Kesavananda Bharati case 10) to
assert, that one of the limitations with reference to the amendment to the
Constitution was, that it could not be amended to such an extent, as
would denude the Constitution of its identity (paragraph 537).
It was
submitted, that the power to amend, could not result in the abrogation of
the Constitution, or lead to the framing of a new Constitution, or to alter
or change the essential elements of the constitutional structure
(paragraph 539).
fundamental rights. Having noticed the fact, that no attempt was made
by the Parliament to take away or abridge the fundamental rights,
relating to the liberty of a person, and the freedom of expression, it was
recorded, that even in future it could not be done.
Accordingly, with
by
their
own
foresight,
prudence
and
understanding
And that, the power of amendment could be exercised even for trial and
error, inasmuch as opportunity had to be allowed for vindicating
reasonable belief by experience (paragraph 1535). It was contended, that
no generation had a monopoly to wisdom, nor the right to place fetters on
future generations, nor to mould the machinery of Government, keeping
in mind eternal good. The possibility, that the power of amendment may
be abused, furnished no ground for denial of its existence. According to
the Attorney General, it was therefore not correct to assume, that if the
Parliament was held entitled to amend Part III of the Constitution, it
would automatically and necessarily result in abrogation of the
fundamental rights. Whilst concluding, that the right to property did not
pertain to the basic structure or framework of the Constitution, it was
held, that power of amendment under Article 368 did not include the
power to abrogate the Constitution, or to alter the basic structure or
framework of the Constitution. Despite having so concluded, it was held,
that no part of the fundamental rights could claim immunity, from the
power of amendment (paragraph 1537).
78.
in Indira Nehru Gandhi v. Raj Narain 56, Waman Rao v. Union of India57,
and the M. Nagaraj case36, to contend, that the basic structure of the
Constitution was to be determined, on the basis of the features which
existed in the text of the original enactment of the Constitution, on the
date of its coming into force. It was therefore pointed out, that the
56
57
General submitted, that that reference could only be made to Articles 124
and 217, as they originally existed, when the Constitution was
promulgated.
If
the
original
provisions
were
to
be
taken
into
80.
Having traveled thus far, it was pointed out, that it was important
asserted,
that
independence
of
the
judiciary,
included
State legislatures, is also subject to judicial review, (at the hands of the
judiciary).
expressed by any of the two Members of the NJAC, would result in the
rejection of the concerned candidate. Therefore, merely two Members of
the NJAC, would be sufficient to veto a proposal for appointment. It was
submitted, that since three Members of the NJAC were Judges of the
Supreme Court, their participation in the NJAC would ensure, that
independence of the judiciary remained completely safeguarded and
secured. It was therefore contended, that not only the Constitution (99th
Amendment) Act, but also the NJAC Act fully satisfied the independence
criterion, postulated as a basic structure of the Constitution.
83.
was still to be taken into consideration, conclusions (5), (6) and (7)
recorded by J.S. Verma, J. (who had transcripted the majority view),
show that the primacy of the judiciary was to ensure, that no
appointment could be made to the higher judiciary, unless it had the
approval of the collegium. It was submitted, that the instant aspect,
which constituted the functional basis for ensuring independence of the
judiciary,
had
been
preserved
in
the
impugned
constitutional
amendment, and the NJAC Act. It was accordingly contended, that if the
right to insist on the appointment of a candidate proposed by the
judiciary, was taken away, from the Chief Justice of India (based on a
decision of a collegium of Judges), the same would not result, in the
emasculation of the basic structure of the Constitution. In other words,
the same would not violate the essential and fundamental features of
the Constitution, nor in the least, the independence of the judiciary.
84.
Insofar as the Second and Third Judges cases are concerned, it was
submitted, that the same may have been the need of the hour, on
account of the fact that in 1976, sixteen Judges were transferred (from
the High Courts in which they were functioning), to other High Courts.
In the Sankalchand Himatlal Sheth case 5, one of the transferred Judges
challenged
his
transfer,
inter
alia,
on
the
ground,
that
his
most Judge immediately next to him H.R. Khanna, was ignored and the
second senior most Judge M.H. Beg, was appointed, as the Chief
Justice of India. In the above background, the action of the executive,
came to be portrayed as a subversion of the independence of the
judiciary. It was in the above background, that this Court rendered the
Second and Third Judges cases, but the implementation of the manner of
appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary, in consonance therewith,
had been subject to, overwhelming and all around criticism, including
being adversely commented upon by J.S. Verma, CJ., the author of the
majority view in the Second Judges case, after his retirement. In this
behalf, the Courts attention was invited to his observations, extracted
hereunder:
My 1993 Judgment, which holds the field, was very much
misunderstood and misused. It was in this context, that I said that the
working of the judgment, now, for some time, is raising serious
questions, which cannot be called unreasonable. Therefore, some kind of
re-think is required. My Judgment says the appointment process of High
Court and Supreme Court Judges is basically a joint or participatory
exercise, between the Executive and the Judiciary, both taking part in it.
It was therefore contended, that in the changed scenario, this Court
ought to have, at its own, introduced measures to negate the accusations
leveled against the prevailing system, of appointment of Judges to the
higher judiciary. Since no such remedial measures were adopted by the
judiciary of its own, the legislature had brought about the Constitution
(99th Amendment) Act, supplemented by the NJAC Act, to broad base the
process of selection and appointment, of Judges to the higher judiciary,
to make it transparent, and to render the participants accountable.
86.
It was therefore
Judges in the NJAC, could not lead to the inference, that the same was
violative of the basic structure of the Constitution, so as to conclude,
that it would impinge upon the independence of the judiciary. It was
asserted, that the representation of the judiciary in the NJAC, was larger
than that of the other two organs of the governance, namely, the
executive and the legislature. In any case, given the representation of the
It was further submitted, that the NJAC was broad based with
representatives from the judiciary, the executive and the two eminent
persons, would not fall in the category of jurists, eminent legal
academicians, or eminent lawyers. It was contended, that the intention
to include eminent persons, who had no legal background was to
introduce, in the process of selection and appointment of Judges, lay
persons in the same manner, as has been provided for in the Judicial
Appointments Commission, in the United Kingdom.
89.
It was also the contention of the learned Attorney General, that this
would not be the first occasion, when such an exercise has been
contemplated by parliamentary legislation.
The
If judicial independence
six-Member NJAC, it was submitted, that the general public was the key
stakeholder, in the adjudicatory process. And accordingly, it was
imperative to ensure their participation in the selection/appointment of
learned counsel for the petitioners, to the effect that the Constitution
(99th Amendment) Act, did not provide any guidelines, reflecting upon
the eligibility of the eminent persons, to be nominated to the NJAC, and
as such, was liable to be struck down, it was submitted, that the term
eminent person was in no way vague. It meant a person who had
achieved distinction in the field of his expertise. Reference was also made
to the debates of the Constituent Assembly, while dealing with the term
distinguished jurist, contained in Article 124(3), it was pointed out, that
the term distinguished person was not vague. In the present situation,
it was submitted, that since the selection and nomination of eminent
persons, was to be in the hands of high constitutional functionaries (no
less than the Prime Minister, the Chief Justice of India and the Leader of
the Opposition in the Lok Sabha), it was natural to assume, that the
person(s) nominated, would be chosen, keeping in mind the obligation
and the responsibility, that was required to be discharged. Reliance in
this behalf, was placed on the Centre for Public Interest Litigation case 43,
to assert, that it was sufficient to assume, that such a high profile
committee, as the one in question, would exercise its powers objectively,
and in a fair and reasonable manner.
November 2002, it was submitted, that the two eminent persons would
be most suited, to assess such matters, with reference to the nominees
under consideration. Whilst the primary responsibility of the Members
from the judiciary would be principally relatable to, ascertaining the
judicial acumen of the candidates concerned, the responsibility of the
executive would be, to determine the character and integrity of the
candidate, and the inputs, whether the candidate possessed the values,
expected of a Judge of the higher judiciary, would be that of eminent
persons in the NJAC. It was therefore asserted, that the two eminent
persons would be lay persons having no connection with the judiciary,
or even to the profession of advocacy, perhaps individuals who may not
have any law related academic qualifications. It was submitted, that the
instant broad based composition of the NJAC, was bound to be more
suitable, than the prevailing system of appointment of Judges. Relying
upon the R. Gandhi case38, it was submitted, that it would not be proper
to make appointments, by vesting the process of selection, with an
isolated group, or a selection committee dominated by representatives of
a singular group the judiciary. In a matter of judicial appointments, it
was submitted, the object ought to be, to pick up the best legally trained
minds, coupled with a qualitative personality. For this, according to the
Attorney General, a collective consultative process, would be the most
suitable. It was pointed out, that eminent persons, having no nexus to
judicial activities, would introduce an element of detachment, and would
help
to
bring
in
independent
expertise,
to
evaluate
non-legal
It was submitted,
concerned, it was submitted, that there could be no escape from the fact,
that the Minister in question, would be the connect between the judiciary
and the Parliament. His functions would include, the responsibility to
inform the Parliament, about the affairs of the judicial establishment. It
was submitted, that his exclusion from the participatory process, would
result in a lack of coordination between the two important pillars of
governance. Furthermore, it was submitted that the Minister in question,
as a member of the executive, will have access to, and will be able to,
provide
the
NJAC
with
all
the
relevant
information,
about
the
The learned Attorney General allayed all fears, with reference to the
of
the
Union
Minister,
with
the
governing
political
97.
through the NJAC, it was asserted, would have two major advantages. It
would
introduce
transparency
in
the
process
of
selection
and
being
excluded
from
judicial
review,
the
(1961)
(1976)
62
(1987)
63
(2005)
61
3
1
1
5
SCR
SCC
SCC
SCC
707
843
658
363
to the higher judiciary, clearly laid out the parameters for this selection
and appointment process.
proceeding, a habit which had persisted with the said Judge even as a
Judge of the Patna and Rajasthan High Courts, and thereafter, as the
Chief Justice of the Jharkhand High Court, and also as a Judge of the
Supreme Court.
Government
in
the
Official
Gazette
on
13.4.2015,
the
consideration of the NJAC Bill and the passing of the NJAC Act, prior to
the coming into force of the Constitution (99th Amendment) Act, would
render it null and void, the learned Attorney General invited our attention
to Article 118, which authorizes, each House of Parliament, to make rules
for regulating their procedure, in the matter of conducting their business.
It was pointed out, that Rules of Procedure and the Conduct of Business
of the Lok Sabha, had been duly enacted by the Lok Sabha. A relevant
extract of the aforesaid rules was handed over to us. Rule 66 thereof, is
being extracted hereunder:
66. A Bill, which is dependent wholly or partly upon another Bill
pending before the House, may be introduced in the House in
anticipation of the passing of the Bill on which it is dependent:
Provided that the second Bill shall be taken up for consideration
and passing in the House only after the first Bill has been passed by the
Houses and assented to by the President.
Referring to the proviso under Rule 66, it was acknowledged that the rule
read independently, fully justified the submissions of Mr. Fali S.
Nariman. It was however pointed out, that it was open to the Parliament
to seek a suspension of the above rule under Rule 388. Rule 388 is also
extracted hereunder:
388. Any member may, with the consent of the Speaker, move that any
rule may be suspended in its application to a particular motion before
the House and if the motion is carried the rule in question shall be
suspended for the time being.
The learned Attorney General then handed over to us, the proceedings of
the Lok Sabha dated 12.8.2014, inter alia, including the Constitution
(121st Amendment) Bill, and the NJAC Bill. He invited our attention to
the fact, that while moving the motion, the then Union Minister in charge
of Law and Justice had sought, and was accorded approval, for the
suspension of the proviso to Rule 66 of the Rules of Procedure and
Conduct of Business of the Lok Sabha. Relevant extract of the Motion
depicting the suspension of Rule 388 is being reproduced hereunder:
Motion under Rule 388
Shri Ravi Shankar Prasad moved the following motion:That this House do suspend the proviso to rule 66 of the Rules of
Procedure and Conduct of Business in Lok Sabha in its application to the
motions for taking into consideration and passing the National Judicial
Appointments Commission Bill, 2014 in as much as it is dependent upon
the Constitution (One Hundred and Twenty-First Amendment) Bill,
2014.
The motion was adopted.
The motions for consideration of the Bills viz. (i) The Constitution
(One Hundred and Twenty-First Amendment) Bill, 2014 (Insertion of new
Articles 124A, 124B and 124C); and (ii) The National Judicial
Appointments Commission Bill, 2014 were moved by Shri Ravi Shankar
Prasad.
Premised on the strength of the Rules framed under Article 118, learned
Attorney General, also placed reliance on Article 122, which is being
reproduced below:
122. Courts not to inquire into proceedings of Parliament. (1) The
validity of any proceedings in Parliament shall not be called in question
on the ground of any alleged irregularity of procedure.
(2) No officer or member of Parliament in whom powers are vested by or
under this Constitution for regulating procedure or the conduct of
business, or for maintaining order, in Parliament shall be subject to the
jurisdiction of any court in respect of the exercise by him of those
powers.
Based on Article 122, it was submitted, that the Constitution itself
contemplated, that the validity of the proceedings in the Parliament,
could not be called in question, on the ground of alleged irregularity in
procedure.
Parliament under Article 118, had been duly complied with, it was
submitted, that even if that had not been done, as long as the power of
Parliament to legislate was not questioned, no challenge could be
premised on the procedural defects in enacting the NJAC Act. In this
behalf, reference was also made to Article 246, so as to contend, that the
competence of the Parliament to enact the NJAC Act was clearly and
unambiguously vested with the Parliament.
AIR 1941 FC 72
65
the
sole
executive
representative,
in
the
selection
process,
Having so
contended, learned counsel asserted, that if this Court felt that any of the
provisions, with reference to selection and appointment of Judges to the
higher judiciary, would not meet the standards and norms, which this
Court felt sacrosanct, it was open to this Court to read down the
appropriate provisions, in a manner as to round off the offending
provisions, rather than quashing the impugned constitutional and
legislative provisions in their entirety.
105. Mr. Ranjit Kumar, learned Solicitor General of India submitted, that
the entire Constitution had to be read as a whole. In this behalf, it was
contended, that each provision was an integral part of the Constitution,
and as such, its interpretation had to be rendered holistically. For the
instant proposition, reliance was placed on the Kihoto Hollohan case 34,
T.M.A. Pai Foundation v. State of Karnataka 6, R.C. Poudyal v. Union of
India66, the M. Nagaraj case36, and the Kesavananda Bharati case 10.
Based on the above judgments, it was asserted, that the term President,
as it existed in Articles 124 and 217, if interpreted holistically, would lead
to the clear and unambiguous conclusion, that the President while
discharging
his
responsibility
with
reference
to
appointment
of
Judges/Chief Justices to the higher judiciary, was bound by the aid and
advice of the Council of Ministers, as contemplated under Article 74. It
was contended, that the aforesaid import was rightfully examined and
interpreted with reference to Article 124, in the First Judges case. But
had
been
erroneously overlooked, in
the repealed provisions would not stand revived, merely because the
amendment/legislation which were being assailed, were held to be
unconstitutional. Insofar as the instant aspect of the matter is
concerned, learned Solicitor General raised two independent contentions.
107. Firstly, that the issue whether a constitutional amendment once
struck down, would revive the original/substituted Article, was a matter
which had already been referred to a nine-Judge Constitutional Bench.
In order to support the aforesaid contention, and to project the picture in
its entirety, reliance was placed on, Property Owners Association v. State
of Maharashtra67, Property Owners Association v. State of Maharashtra 68,
and Property Owners Association v. State of Maharashtra 69.
It was
submitted, that the order passed by this Court, wherein the reference to
a nine-Judge Constitution Bench had been made, was a case relating to
the constitutionality of Article 31C. It was pointed out that Article 31C,
as
originally
enacted
provided,
that
notwithstanding
anything
contained in Article 13, no law giving effect to the policy of the State,
towards securing the principles specified in clause (b) or clause (c) of
Article 39 shall be deemed to be void on the ground that it was
inconsistent with, the rights conferred by Articles 14 and 19.
It was
submitted, that the latter part of Article 31C, which provided and no
law containing a declaration that it is for giving effect to such policy shall
be called in question in any court on the ground that it does not give
67
(1996) 4 SCC 49
(2001) 4 SCC 455
69
(2013) 7 SCC 522
68
effect to such policy had been struck down by this Court in the
Kesavananda Bharati case10.
70
It was
The instant
(1971)
(1974)
76
(1977)
77
(1975)
78
(2000)
79
(2011)
80
(2011)
81
(2011)
75
3
2
1
3
2
5
5
8
SCC
SCC
SCC
SCC
SCC
SCC
SCC
SCC
53
376
643
512
536
305
435
737
It was
pointed out, that this Court had repeatedly described, that the
Constitution was organic in character, and it had an inbuilt mechanism
for evolving, with the changing times. It was asserted, that the power
vested with the Parliament, under Article 368 to amend the provisions of
the Constitution, was a constituent power, authorizing the Parliament
to reshape the Constitution, to adapt with the changing environment. It
was contended, that the above power vested in the Parliament could be
exercised with the sole exception, that the basic structure/features of
the
Constitution,
as
enunciated
by
the
Supreme
Court
in
the
Commission, was that of Judges of the Supreme Court, inasmuch as, the
Chief Justice of India, and the two senior most Judges of the Supreme
Court were ex officio Members of the NJAC.
113. With reference to the two eminent persons on the NJAC, it was his
contention, that they could not be identified either with the executive or
the legislature.
learned senior counsel, that the independence of the judiciary could not
be
considered
to
have
been
undermined,
keeping
in
mind
the
of Judges contemplated by the Second and Third Judges cases was very
good, it was submitted, that J.S. Verma, CJ., himself was disillusioned
with their implementation, as he felt, that there had been an utter failure
on that front. Learned senior counsel submitted, that the questions that
needed to be answered were, whether there was any fundamental
illegality in the constitutional amendment? Or, whether the appointment
of Judges contemplated through the NJAC violated the basic structure
of the Constitution? And, whether the independence of the judiciary
stood subverted by the impugned constitutional amendment?
It was
counsel
reiterated
the
position
expounded
by
Dr.
B.R.
Angels Fear to Tread, with reference to the Third Judges case. The
Courts attention was also drawn to the criticism of the Second and Third
Judges cases, at the hands of H.M. Seervai, Fali S. Nariman and others,
especially the criticism at the hands of Krishna Iyer and Ruma Pal, JJ.,
and later even the author of the majority judgment in the Second Judges
case J.S. Verma, CJ.. It was, accordingly, the contention of the learned
senior counsel, that whilst determining the issue of independence of the
judiciary, reference should not be made to either of the above two
judgments, but should be made to the plain language of Articles 124 and
217. Viewed in the above manner, it was asserted, that there would be no
question of arriving at the conclusion, that the impugned constitutional
amendment, violated the basic concepts of separation of powers and
independence of the judiciary.
120. Even though, there were no guidelines, for appointment of the two
eminent persons, emerging from the Constitution (99th Amendment)
Act, and/or the NJAC Act, yet it was submitted, that it was obvious, that
the eminent persons to be chosen, would be persons who were well
versed in the working of courts. On the Courts asking, learned senior
counsel suggested, that eminent persons for the purpose could only be
picked out of eminent lawyers, eminent jurists, and even retired Judges,
or the like. Insofar as the instant aspect of the matter is concerned, it is
obvious that learned senior counsel had adopted a position, diametrically
opposite to the one canvassed by the learned Attorney General. Another
aspect, on which we found a little divergence in the submission of Mr.
T.R.
Andhyarujina
was,
that
in
many
countries
the
executive
longer in the hands of the executive. In this behalf, the clear contention
advanced by the learned senior counsel was, that the world over, the
process of appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary was evolving, so
as to be vested in Commissions of the nature of the NJAC. And as such,
it was wholly unjustified to fault the same, on the ground of
independence of the judiciary, when the world over Commissions were
found to have been discharging the responsibility satisfactorily.
121. Mr. Tushar Mehta, Additional Solicitor General of India, entered
appearance on behalf of the State of Gujarat.
He adopted the
It was pointed
It
was
contended,
that
the
impugned
constitutional
himself
Andhyarujina,
who
from
the
submission
represented
the
State
advanced
of
by
Mr.
Maharashtra,
He
T.R.
while
It was submitted, by
82
83
the submissions advanced at the hands of the learned counsel for the
petitioners deserved to be rejected.
122. Mr. Ravindra Srivastava, Senior Advocate, entered appearance on
behalf of the State of Chhattisgarh. He had chosen to make submissions
divided under eleven heads.
It
was submitted, that this Court had not ever held, that the primacy of the
judiciary through the Chief Justice of India, was an essential component
of the independence of the judiciary. It was asserted, that while
considering the challenge raised by the petitioners to the impugned
constitutional amendment, it would be wholly unjustified to approach the
challenge by assuming, that the primacy of the judiciary through the
Chief Justice of India, would alone satisfy the essential components of
separation of power and independence of the judiciary. It was
submitted,
that
the
introduction
of
plurality,
in
the
matter
of
one
executive
representative,
would
not
make
the
process
Article 124(4) and proviso (b) under Article 217(1) to contend, that
Judges of the higher judiciary, could not be removed except by an order
passed by the President, after an address by each House of Parliament,
supported by a majority of the total membership of that House, and by a
majority of not less than 2/3rd of the Members of the House present and
voting, had been presented to the President, on the ground of proved
misbehaviour or incapacity. In this behalf, learned senior counsel placed
reliance on Section 16 of the General Clauses Act, 1897, which provides
that the power to appoint includes the power to suspend or dismiss.
Read in conjunction with Article 367, which mandates, that unless the
context otherwise required, the provisions of the General Clauses Act
84
the provisions of the Judicial Officers Protection Act, 1850, and the
Judges (Protection) Act, 1985, which grant immunity to them from civil
as
well
as
criminal
proceedings,
are
incidents,
which
ensured
through
the
NJAC,
would
interfere
with
It
was submitted, that the judgments rendered in the Second and Third
Judges cases merely interpreted the law, as it then existed.
It was
asserted, that the above judgments did not delve into the question,
whether any factor(s) or feature(s) considered, were components of the
basic structure of the Constitution.
It was
achieved
as
independence
of
the
judiciary,
and
such,
it
was
had
no
infirmity,
with
reference
to
the
issue
of
Reference in this
behalf, was also made to the observations made by S.S. Sodhi, J., a
former Chief Justice of the Allahabad High Court, in his book The Other
Side of Justice, and the book authored by Fali S. Nariman, in his
autobiography Before Memory Fades. It was contended, that the
aforesaid experiences, and the adverse all around comments, with
reference to the implementation of the collegium system, forced the
Parliament to enact the Constitution (99th Amendment) Act, which
provided for a far better method for selection and appointment of Judges
to the higher judiciary, than the procedure contemplated under the
collegium system. It was submitted, that whilst the NJAC did not
exclude the role of the judiciary, it included two eminent persons with
one executive nominee, namely, the Union Minister in charge of Law and
Justice,
as
Members
of
the
NJAC.
Since
the
role
of
the
Learned
senior
counsel
commenced
his
submissions
by
(2007) 2 SCC 1
defects therein. It was submitted, that the policy of selection, and the
method of selection, were not justiciable, being not amenable to judicial
review, and as such, no challenge could be raised to the wrongful
appointments made under the collegium system.
131. On the subject of the manner of interpreting the Constitution, with
reference to appointments to the higher judiciary, reliance was placed on
Registrar (Admn), High Court of Orissa, Cuttack v. Sisir Kanta
Satapathy32, to contend, that in spite of having noticed the judgments
rendered in the Second Judges case, this Court struck a note of caution,
with reference to the control, vested in the High Courts, over the
subordinate judiciary.
control had to be exercised without usurping the power vested with the
executive, especially the power under Articles 233, 234 and 235. It is
submitted, that the power of the executive in the matter of appointments
of Judges to the higher judiciary, could not be brushed aside, without
any justification. It was contended, that it was improper to assume, that
only the judiciary could appoint the best Judges, and the executive or the
legislature could not.
132. Learned senior counsel also made an impassioned reference, to the
failure of the judiciary, to grant relief to the victims of the 1984 riots in
Delhi, and the 2003 riots in Gujarat. It was also asserted, that justice
had been denied to those who deserved it the most, namely, the poor
citizenry of this country. It was pointed out, that the manner of
appointment of Judges, through the collegium system, had not
produced Judges of the kind who were sensitive to the rights of the poor
and needy. It was the assertion of the learned senior counsel, that the
new system brought in for selection and appointment of Judges to the
higher judiciary, should be tried and tested, and in case, certain
parameters had to be provided for, to ensure its righteous functioning to
achieve the best results, it was always open to this Court to provide such
guidelines.
V.
133. The
Union
Government,
as
also,
the
participating
State
The Rajya Sabha passed the Bill with 179 Members voting in
favour of the Bill, and one of its Members Ram Jethmalani, abstaining.
It was submitted, that on account of the special procedure prescribed
under the proviso to Article 368(2), the Bill was ratified in no time by half
the State Legislatures.
counsel
representing
the
petitioners,
described
the
corrects the actions of the executive and the legislatures. This, it was
pointed out, bothers the political-executive.
135. With reference to the will of the people, it was submitted, that the
same could easily be ascertainable from the decision rendered in the L.C
Golak Nath case41, wherein a eleven-Judge Bench declared, that a
constitutional amendment was law with reference to Part III of the
Constitution, and therefore, was subject to the constraint of the
fundamental rights, in the said part. It was pointed out, that the
Parliament, had invoked Article 368, while passing the Constitution (25th
Amendment) Act, 1971. By the above amendment, a law giving effect to
the policy of the State under Articles 39(b) and 39(c) could not be
declared void, on the ground that it was inconsistent with the
fundamental rights expressed through Articles 14, 19 and 31. Article 31C
also
provided,
that
legislative
enactment
containing
such
declaration, namely, that it was for giving effect to the above policy of
the State, would not be called in question on the ground, that it did not
factually gave effect to such policy. It was pointed out, that this Court in
the Kesavananda Bharati case10, had overruled the judgment in the I.C.
Golak Nath case41. This Curt, while holding as unconstitutional the part
of Article 31C, which denied judicial review, on the basis of the
declaration referred to above, also held, that the right of judicial review
was a part of the basic structure of the Constitution, and its denial
would result in the violation of the basic structure of the Constitution.
provided, that any pending appeal before the Supreme Court would be
disposed of, in conformity with the provisions of the Constitution (39 th
Amendment) Act, 1975. The aforesaid amendment was struck down by
this Court, by declaring that the same amounted to a negation of the
rule of law, and also because, it was anti-democratic, and as such,
violated the basic structure of the Constitution. It was submitted, that
as an answer to the striking down of material parts of Article 39A of the
Constitution, the Parliament while exercising its power under Article 368,
had passed the Constitution (42nd Amendment) Act, 1976, by an
overwhelming majority. Through the above amendment, the Parliament
added clauses (4) and (5) to Article 368, which read as under:
(4) No amendment of this Constitution (including the provisions of Part
III) made or purporting to have been made under this article whether
before or after the commencement of section 55 of the Constitution
was
adopted
by
the
Parliament,
for
avoiding
judicial
not the Congress Party Government (which was responsible for the
emergency, and the earlier constitutional amendments). It was therefore
asserted, that it should not surprise anyone, if all political parties had
spoken in one voice, because all political parties were united in their
resolve, to overawe and subjugate the judiciary.
138. It was submitted, that the intention of the legislature and the
executive, irrespective of the party in power, has been to invade into the
independence of the judiciary. It was further submitted, that attempts
to control the judiciary have been more pronounced in recent times. In
this behalf, the Courts attention was drawn to the judgments in Lily
Thomas v. Union of India86, and Chief Election Commissioner v. Jan
Chaukidar87. It was pointed out, that in the former judgment, this Court
held as invalid and unconstitutional, Section 8(4) of the Representation of
the People Act, 1951, which provided inter alia, that a Member of
Parliament convicted of an offence and sentenced to imprisonment for
not
less
than
two
years,
would
not
suffer
the
disqualification
contemplated under the provision, for a period of three months from the
date of conviction, or if the conviction was assailed by way of an appeal
or revision till such time, as the appeal or revision was disposed of. By
the former judgment, convicted Members became disqualified, and had to
vacate their respective seats, even though, the conviction was under
challenge. In the latter judgment, this Court upheld the order passed by
the Patna High Court, declaring that a person who was confined to
86
87
Since
he/she was not an elector, therefore it was held, that he/she could not
be considered as qualified, to contest elections to either House of
Parliament, or to a Legislative Assembly of a State.
139. It was pointed out, that Government (then ruled by the U.P.A.)
introduced a series of Bills, to invalidate the judgment rendered by this
Court in the Jan Choukidar case87. This was sought to be done by
passing the Representation of the People (Amendment and Validation)
Act, 2013, within three months of the rendering of the above judgment. It
was submitted, that it was wholly misconceived for the learned counsel
representing the Union of India, and the concerned States to contend,
that the determination by the Parliament and the State Legislatures, with
reference to constitutional amendments, could be described as actions
which the entire nation desired, or represented the will of the people. It
was submitted, that what was patently unconstitutional, could not
constitute either the desire of the nation, or the will of the people.
140. Referring to the collegium system of appointing Judges to the
higher judiciary, it was pointed out, that the same was put in place by a
decision rendered by a nine-Judge Bench, in the Second Judges case,
through which the independence of the judiciary was cemented and
strengthened. This could be achieved, by vesting primacy with the
judiciary, in the matter of selection and appointment of Judges to the
higher judiciary. It was further pointed out, that the collegium system
It was
that
the
constitutional
amendment
compromised
the
made to, the opinion of Lord Templeman, a Member of the House of Lords
in the United Kingdom.
143. Having given our thoughtful consideration to the position assumed
by the learned counsel representing the rival parties, it is essential to
hold, that every constitutional amendment passed by the Parliament,
either by following the ordinary procedure contemplated under Article
368(2), or the special procedure contemplated in the proviso to Article
368(2), could in a sense of understanding, by persons not conversant
with the legal niceties of the issue, be treated as the will of the people, for
the
simple
reason,
that
parliamentarians
are
considered
as
in
that
behalf,
even
though
the
impugned
constitutional
149. The cause, effect and the width of a provision, which is the basis of
a challenge, may sometimes not be apparent from a plain reading thereof.
The interpretation placed by this Court on a particular provision, would
most certainly depict a holistic understanding thereof, wherein the plain
reading would have naturally been considered, but in addition thereto,
the vital silences hidden therein, based on a harmonious construction of
the provision, in conjunction with the surrounding provisions, would also
have been taken into consideration. The mandate of Article 141, obliges
every court within the territory of India, to honour the interpretation,
conclusion, or meaning assigned to a provision by this Court. It would,
therefore be rightful, to interpret the provisions of the Constitution relied
upon, by giving the concerned provisions, the meaning, understanding
and exposition, assigned to them, on their interpretation by this Court. In
the above view of the matter, it would neither be legal nor just, to persist
on an understanding of the concerned provision(s), merely on the plain
reading thereof, as was suggested on behalf of the respondents. Even on
a plain reading of Article 141, we are obligated, to read the provisions of
the Constitution, in the manner they have been interpreted by this Court.
150. The manner in which the term consultation used in Articles 124,
217 and 222 has been interpreted by the Supreme Court, has been
considered at great length in the Reference Order, and therefore, there
is no occasion for us, to re-record the same yet again. Suffice it to notice,
that the term consultation contained in Articles 124, 217 and 222 will
Thus viewed, we
would
it
be
possible
to
conclude,
whether
or
not,
the
151. We have already concluded in the Reference Order, that the term
consultation used in Articles 124, 217 and 222 (as originally enacted)
has to be read as vesting primacy in the judiciary, with reference to the
decision making process, pertaining to the selection and appointment of
Judges to the higher judiciary, and also, with reference to the transfer of
Chief Justices and Judges of one High Court, to another. For arriving at
the above conclusion, the following parameters were taken into
consideration:
(i)
matter, this Court also expressed, that it expected, that the above words
would not fall on deaf ears. The same position was adopted in the Second
Judges case rendered in 1993 by a nine-Judge Bench, by a majority of
7:2, which also arrived at the conclusion, that the judgment rendered in
the First Judges case, did not lay down the correct law. M.M. Punchhi,
J., (as he then was) one of the Judges on the Bench, who supported the
minority opinion, also endorsed the view, that the action of the executive
to put off the recommendation(s) made by the Chief Justice of India,
would amount to an act of deprival, violating the spirit of the
Constitution. In sum and substance therefore, the Second Judges case,
almost unanimously concluded, that in the matter of selection and
appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary, primacy in the decision
making process, unquestionably rested with the judiciary. Finally, the
Third Judges case, rendered in 1998 by another nine-Judge Bench,
reiterated the position rendered in the Second Judges case.
(ii)
by
K.T.
Shah,
K.M.
Munshi,
Tajamul
Husain,
Alladi
Constituent
Assembly,
that
the
Members
were
generally
in
to
the
Supreme
Court,
effectively
resulted
in
the
at the time of the appointment of the Chief Justice of India in 1973, the
mass transfer of Judges of the higher judiciary during the emergency in
1976, and the second supersession of a Supreme Court Judge, at the
time of the appointment of the Chief Justice of India in 1977, were
executive aberrations.
(iv)
and Chief Justices to the higher judiciary drawn in 1950, soon after India
became independent, as also, the Memorandum of Procedure for
appointment of Judges and Chief Justices to the higher judiciary
redrawn in 1999, after the decision in the Second Judges case, manifest
that, the executive had understood and accepted, that selection and
appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary would emanate from, and
would be made on the advice of the Chief Justice of India.
(v)
reliance was placed on Article 50. Reliance was also placed on Article 50,
for recording a further conclusion, that if the power of appointment of
Judges was left to the executive, the same would breach the principles of
independence of the judiciary and separation of powers.
152. In view of the above, it has to be concluded, that in the matter of
appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary, as also, in the matter of
their transfer, primacy in the decision making process, inevitably rests
with the Chief Justice of India. And that, the same was expected to be
expressed, on the basis of the collective wisdom, of a collegium of Judges.
Having so concluded, we reject all the submissions advanced at the
another,
contemplated
through
the
impugned
constitutional
The
people
of
unimpeachable
integrity,
who
can
discharge
their
him,
which
have
immeasurable
political
and
financial
observing, that even though the Chief Justice of India was a very eminent
person, he was after all just a man with all the failings, all the
sentiments, and all the prejudices, which common people have.
And
Assembly
participatory role.
did
not
allow
any
of
them,
any
defined
fear
of
being
impacted
by
political-pressure
and
political
the
above
situation
was
often
deliberately
created,
and
psychologically maintained. It was also the view of the author, that the
more valuable, substantial and helpful the original favour, the more
indebted the recipient would continue to feel.
The article
length of time. The conclusions drawn in the above article are relevant
to the present controversy, and are being extracted hereunder:
On the issue of impartiality, an individual undertaking a federal
judgeship confronts a difficult task. Contemporary lawyers commonly
agree that the law is not wholly the product of neutral principles and
that a judge must choose among values as she shapes the law. Yet, the
standards governing impartiality in federal courts largely assume that
total judicial neutrality and dispassion are possible. The process of
mapping out a personal framework for decisionmaking is therefore apt to
create considerable discordance for the judge. Added to this burden are
the special pulls of gratitude and loyalty toward the individuals who
made possible the judge's job.
I have sought to show both that gratitude and loyalty can have a
powerful influence for a federal judge undertaking to decide a case. The
problem is complex because loyalty and gratitude pose a greater
potential problem for some judges than for others. This complexity
emerges to a great degree from the process of nomination and
confirmation, which often generates, or at least reinforces, a judge's
sense of loyalty and gratitude to her benefactors.
In the last few years, we have witnessed a wave of dissatisfaction with
the selection process for federal judges. Legal scholarship in particular
has offered frequent critique and constructive suggestions for change. As
it must, this scholarship recognizes that any change ventured must
weigh the impact of nomination and confirmation on a number of
segments of American life, including the constitutional balance of powers
and public perception of the judiciary.
To omit from these concerns the effect of any change on the ultimate
quality of judicial decisionmaking would, of course, be a mistake. Thus,
in studying any new selection procedure, we must contemplate the
procedure's potential for creating and invigorating a judge's feelings of
loyalty and gratitude to her benefactors. The foregoing should, therefore,
not only shed light on the process of federal court decisionmaking in
general, but also give much needed guidance for evaluating proposed
changes to judicial selection.
164. It is however pertinent to mention, that in her article, Laura E. Little
has expressed, what most moral philosophers believed, that gratitude has
significant moral components. And further, that gratitude has a ready
place in utilitarian moral systems, which were designed to ensure the
greatest good for the greatest number of individuals. The concept of
role.
In
that sense,
there
would/could
be
an
participation
of
Secretaries
of
Departments
of
the
Central
the
executive
the
final
determinative/appointing
authority. And further that, in all the countries, the executive had a role
to play in the selection and appointment of Judges. The foresaid factual
position was brought to our notice for the singular purpose of
demonstrating, that executive participation in the process of selection
and appointment of Judges had not made the judiciary in any of the
fifteen countries, subservient to the political-executive. It was asserted,
Councils
173. The paper noted, that the French-Italian models had been adopted
in Latin America, and other developing countries.
that the World Bank and other similar multilateral donor agencies, insist
upon Judicial Councils, to be associated with judicial reform, for
enforcement of the rule of law. The Elements of European Statute on the
Judiciary, was considered as a refinement of the Judicial Council model.
The perceived Supreme Council of Magistracy, requires that at least half
of the Members are Judges, even though, some of the Members of the
Supreme Council are drawn from the Parliament. It was the belief of the
authors of the paper, that the motivating concern for adoption of the
Supreme Councils, in the French-Italian tradition, was aimed at ensuring
independence of the judiciary after periods of undemocratic rule.
Perhaps because of concerns over structural problems, it was pointed
out, that external accountability had emerged as a second goal for these
Supreme Councils. Referring to the Germany, Austria and Netherlands
models, it was asserted, that their Councils were limited to playing a role
in selection (rather than promotion and discipline) of Judges. Referring
to Dutch model, it was pointed out, that recent reforms were introduced
to ensure more transparency and accountability.
174. It was also brought out, that Judicial Councils in civil law
jurisdictions, had a nexus to the Supreme Court of the country.
Referring to Costa Rica and Austria, it was brought out, that the Judicial
Councils in these countries were a subordinate organ of the Supreme
Court. In some countries like Brazil, Judicial Councils were independent
It
was their view that once given independence, Judges were more useful
for resolving a wider range of more important disputes, which were
considered essential, given the fact that more and more tasks were now
being assigned to the judiciary.
178. In analyzing the conclusions drawn in the article, one is
constrained to conclude, that in the process of evolution of societies
across the globe, the trend is to free the judiciary from executive and
political
control,
and
to
incorporate
system
of
selection
and
aspect,
as
they
have
already
been
noticed
extensively,
hereinbefore.
180. We may proceed by accepting the undisputed position, that neither
the impugned constitutional amendment, nor the NJAC Act postulate any
positive qualification to be possessed by the two eminent persons to be
nominated to the NJAC. These constitutional and legislative enactments
do not even stipulate any negative disqualifications. It is therefore
apparent, that the choice of the two eminent persons would depend on
the free will of the nominating authorities. The question that arises for
consideration is, whether it is just and appropriate to leave the issue, to
the free will and choice, of the nominating authorities?
181. The response of the learned Attorney General was emphatic. Who
could know better than the Prime Minister, the Chief Justice of India, or
the Leader of Opposition in the Lok Sabha (and when there is no such
Leader of Opposition, then the Leader of the single largest Opposition
Party in the Lok Sabha)? And he answered the same by himself, that if
such high ranking constitutional authorities can be considered as being
unaware, then no one in this country could be trusted, to be competent,
to take a decision on the matter neither the legislature, nor the
executive, and not even the judiciary. The Attorney General then quipped
surely this Court would not set aside the impugned constitutional
amendment, or the NJAC Act, on such a trivial issue. He also suggested,
that we should await the outcome of the nominating authorities, and if
this Court felt that a particular individual nominated to discharge the
responsibility entrusted to him as an eminent person on the NJAC, was
inappropriate or unacceptable or had no nexus with the responsibility
required to be shouldered, then his appointment could be set aside.
182. Having given our thoughtful consideration to the matter, we are of
the view, that the issue in hand is certainly not as trivial, as is sought to
be made out. The two eminent persons comprise of 1/3rd strength of
the NJAC, and double that of the political-executive component. We could
understand the import of the submission, only after hearing learned
counsel. The view emphatically expressed by the Attorney General was
that the eminent persons had to be lay persons having no connection
with the judiciary, or even to the profession of advocacy, perhaps
individuals who may not have any law related academic qualification.
Mr. T.R. Andhyarujina, learned senior counsel who represented the State
of
Maharashtra,
which
had
ratified
the
impugned
constitutional
could only be picked out of, eminent lawyers, eminent jurists, and even
retired Judges, or the like, having an insight to the working and
functioning of the judicial system. It is therefore clear, that in the view of
the learned senior counsel, the nominated eminent persons would have
to be individuals, with a legal background, and certainly not lay persons,
as was suggested by the learned Attorney General. We have recorded the
submissions advanced by Mr. Dushyant A. Dave, learned senior counsel
the President of the Supreme Court Bar Association, who had
addressed the Bench in his usual animated manner, with no holds
barred. We solicited his view, whether it would be proper to consider the
inclusion of the President of the Supreme Court Bar Association and/or
the Chairman of the Bar Council of India, as ex officio Members of the
NJAC in place of the two eminent persons. His response was
spontaneous Please dont do that !! and then after a short pause,
that would be disastrous !!.
in
the
manner
expressed
through
the
impugned
persons,
is
clearly
unsustainable,
in
the
scheme
of
In a
manner as would be in tune with the dignity of this Court, he had not
referred to any of the Judge(s) by name.
Each and every individual present in the Court-hall, was aware of the
identity of the concerned Judge, in the manner the submissions were
advanced. The projection by the learned Attorney General was joyfully
projected by the print and electronic media, extensively highlighting the
allusions canvassed by the learned Attorney General.
187. If our memory serves us right, the learned Attorney General had
made a reference to the improper appointment of three Judges to the
Supreme Court. One would have felt, without going into the merits of the
charge, that finding fault with just three Judges, despite the appointment
of
over
hundred
Judges
to
the
Supreme
Court,
since
the
CJ., the first Chief Justice thereunder, having been appointed as Judge
of the Supreme Court on 11.9.1995, under the collegium system,
should be considered as no mean achievement.
188. The first on the list of the learned Attorney General was a Judge
who, according to him, had hardly delivered any judgments, both during
the period he remained a Judge and Chief Justice of different High
Courts in the country, as also, the period during which he remained a
Judge of this Court. The failure of the collegium system, was attributed
to the fact, that such a person would have been weeded out, if a
meaningful procedure had been in place. And despite his above
disposition, the concerned Judge was further elevated to the Supreme
Court. The second instance cited by him was, in respect of a Judge, who
did not abide by any time schedule. It was asserted, that the Judge, was
inevitably late in commencing court proceedings. It was his contention,
that past experience with reference to the said Judge, indicated a similar
demeanour, as a Judge of different High Courts and as Chief Justice of
one High Court. It was lamented, that the above behaviour was not
sufficient, in the process adopted under the collegium system, to reject
the Judge from elevation to the Supreme Court. The third Judge was
described as an individual, who was habitually tweeting his views, on the
internet. He described him as an individual unworthy of the exalted
position of a Judge of the Supreme Court, and yet, the collegium
system had supported his appointment to the Supreme Court.
shameful, that courts of law could not deliver justice, to those whose
fundamental and human rights had been violated.
193. It is necessary to emphasise, that under every system of law, there
are two sides to every litigation. Only one of which succeeds.
The
The party, who succeeds, would feel justice had been done.
While the party that loses, would complain that justice had been denied.
In the judicial process, there are a set of remedies, that are available to
the parties concerned. The process contemplates, culmination of
proceedings at the level of the Supreme Court. Once the process has run
the full circle, it is indeed futile to allege any wrong doing, except on the
basis of adequate material to show otherwise. Not that, the Supreme
Court is right, but that, there has to be a closure. Most of the instances,
illustratively mentioned by the President of the Supreme Court Bar
Association, pertained to criminal prosecutions. The adjudication of such
controversies is dependent on the adequacy of evidence produced by the
prosecution. The nature of the allegations (truthful, or otherwise), have
an important bearing, on the interim relief(s) sought, by the parties. The
blame for passing (or, not passing) the desired orders, does not therefore
per se, rest on the will of the adjudicating Judge, but the quality and
authenticity of the evidence produced, and the nature of the allegations.
Once all remedies available stand exhausted, it does not lie in the mouth
of either the litigant, or the concerned counsel to imply motives, without
placing on record any further material. It also needs to be recorded, that
while making the insinuations, learned senior counsel, did not make a
pointed reference to any High Court Judge by name, nor was it possible
for us to identify any such Judge, merely on the basis of the submissions
advanced, unlike the instances with reference to Judges of the Supreme
Court. In the above view of the matter, it is not possible for us to infer,
that there are serious infirmities in the matter of selection and
X.
195. It must remain in our minds, that the Indian Constitution is an
organic document of governance, which needs to change with the
evolution of civil society. We have already concluded, that for far more
reasons than the ones, recorded in the Second Judges case, the term
consultation, referred to selection of Judges to the higher judiciary,
really meant, even in the wisdom of the framers of the Constitution, that
primacy in the matter, must remain with the Chief Justice of India
(arrived at, in consultation with a plurality of Judges). Undoubtedly, it is
open to the Parliament, while exercising its power under Article 368, to
provide for some other alternative procedure for the selection and
appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary, so long as, the attributes
of separation of powers and independence of the judiciary, which are
core components of the basic structure of the Constitution, are
maintained.
196. That, however, will depend upon the standards of the moral fiber of
the Indian polity.
General had conceded, that there were certain political upheavals, which
had undermined the independence of the judiciary, including an
executive overreach, at the time of appointment of the Chief Justice of
India in 1973, followed by the mass transfer of Judges of the higher
judiciary during the emergency in 1976, and thereafter a second
supersession, at the time of appointment of another Chief Justice of India
in 1977. And further, the interference by the executive, in the matter of
appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary during the 1980s.
197. An important issue, that will need determination, before the organic
structure of the Constitution is altered, in the manner contemplated by
the impugned constitutional amendment, would be, whether the civil
society, has been able to maneuver its leaders, towards national interest?
And whether, the strength of the civil society, is of a magnitude, as would
be a deterrent for any overreach, by any of the pillars of governance? At
the present juncture, it seems difficult to repose faith and confidence in
the civil society, to play any effective role in that direction. For the simple
reason, that it is not yet sufficiently motivated, nor adequately
determined, to be in a position to act as a directional deterrent, for the
political-executive establishment. It is therefore, that the higher judiciary,
which is the savior of the fundamental rights of the citizens of this
country, by virtue of the constitutional responsibility assigned to it under
Articles 32 and 226, must continue to act as the protector of the civil
society. This would necessarily contemplate the obligation of preserving
the
rule
of
law,
by
forestalling
the
political-executive,
from
Not at all!! It was also his position, that the emergency could happen
again. While acknowledging, that the media today was more alert and
independent, as compared to what it was, when emergency was declared
by the then Prime Minister Indira Gandhi, forty years ago. In his
perception, the media did not have any real commitment to democracy
and civil liberties. With reference to the civil society, he pointed out, that
hopes were raised during the Anna Hazare mobilization against
corruption, which according to him, ended in a disappointment, even
with reference to the subject of corruption. This when the poor and
downtrodden majority of this country, can ill afford corruption. Of the
various institutions, that could be held responsible, for the well
functioning of democracy in this country, he expressed, that the judiciary
was more responsible than the other institutions.
199. On the above interview, Mani Shankar Aiyar, a veteran Congress
Member of Parliament in the Rajya Sabha, while expressing his views
noticed, that India could not be emergency proof, till the Constitution
provided for the declaration of emergency, at the discretion of an elected
Government. He pointed out, that it should not be forgotten, that in
1975, emergency had been declared within the framework of the
Constitution. It was therefore suggested, that one of the solutions to
avoid a declaration of emergency could be, to remove Part XVIII of the
Constitution, or to amend it, and to provide for only an external
emergency. He however raised a poser, whether it would be practical to
do so? One would venture to answer the same in the negative. And in
such situation, to trust, that the elected Government would act in the
interest of the nation.
200. The stance of L.K. Advani was affirmed by Sitaram Yechury, a
veteran CPI (Marxist) Member of Parliament in the Rajya Sabha, who was
arrested, like L.K. Advani, during the emergency in 1975.
201. The present N.D.A. Government was sworn in, on 26.5.2014. One
believes, that thereafter thirteen Governors of different States and one
Lieutenant Governor of a Union Territory tendered their resignations in
no time. Some of the Governors demitted their office shortly after they
were appointed, by the previous U.P.A. dispensation. That is despite
the fact, that a Governor under the Constitutional mandate of Article
156(3) has a term of five years, from the date he enters upon his office. A
Governor is chosen out of persons having professional excellence and/or
personal acclaim. Each one of them, would be eligible to be nominated
as an eminent person under Article 124A(1)(d). One wonders, whether
all these resignations were voluntary. The above depiction is not to cast
any aspersion. As a matter of fact, its predecessor the U.P.A.
Government, had done just that in 2004.
202. It is necessary to appreciate, that the Constitution does not
envisage the spoils system (also known as the patronage system),
wherein the political party which wins an election, gives Government
positions to its supporters, friends and relatives, as a reward for working
towards victory, and as an incentive to keep the party in power.
203. It is also relevant to indicate, the images of the spoils system are
reflected from the fact, that a large number of persons holding high
positions, in institutions of significance, likewise resigned from their
assignments, after the present N.D.A. Government was sworn in. Some
of them had just a few months before their tenure would expire and
some, even less than a month. Those who left included bureaucrats from
the All India Services occupying coveted positions at the highest level,
Directors/Chairmen
of
academic
institutions
of
national
acclaim,
would
be
of
utmost
importance
therefore,
to
shield
judicial
XI.
206. It may be noticed, that one of the contentions advanced on behalf of
the petitioners was, that after the 121st Constitution Amendment Bill
was passed by the Lok Sabha and the Rajya Sabha, it was sent to the
State Legislatures for ratification. Consequent upon the ratification by
was
amended,
and
the
NJAC
was
created,
as
constitutional entity for the selection and appointment (as also, transfer)
of Judges at the level of the higher judiciary. The NJAC, it was asserted,
must be deemed to have been created, only when the Constitution (99th
Amendment) Act, was brought into force, with effect from 13.4.2015. It
was submitted, that the NJAC Act received the assent of the President on
31.12.2014 i.e., on a date when the NJAC had not yet come into
existence. For this, learned counsel had placed reliance on the A.K. Roy
case49, to contend, that the constitutional amendment in the instant case
would not come into force on 13.12.2014, but on 13.4.2015.
207. A complementary additional submission was advanced on behalf of
the petitioners, by relying upon the same sequence of facts. It was
contended, that the power of veto vested in two Members of the NJAC,
through the second proviso under Section 5(2) of the NJAC Act (in the
matter of appointment of the Chief Justice and Judges of the Supreme
Court), and Section 6(6) of the NJAC Act (in the matter of appointment of
Chief Justices and Judges of High Courts) could not be described as
laying down any procedure. It was submitted, that the above provisions
clearly enacted substantive law. Likewise, it was contended, that the
amendment of the words after consultation with such of the Judges of
the Supreme Court and the High Courts in the States as the President
may deem necessary for the purpose, on being substituted by the words
on
the
recommendation
of
the
National
Judicial
Appointments
part) upon another Bill, can be passed and brought into operation, till
the dependent Bill is passed and brought into effect.
211. It is however necessary to record, that even though the position
postulated in the preceding paragraphs, as canvassed by the Attorney
General, was permissible, the passing of the dependent enactment i.e.,
the NJAC Bill, could not have been given effect to, till the foundational
enactment had become operational. In the instant case, the NJAC Act,
would have failed the test, if it was given effect to, from a date prior to the
date on which, the provisions of the enactment on which it was
dependent the Constitution (99th Amendment) Act, became functional.
In other words, the NJAC Act, would be stillborn, if the dependent
provisions, introduced by way of a constitutional amendment, were yet to
come into force. Stated differently, the contravention of the principle
contemplated in Rule 66, could not have been overlooked, despite the
suspension of the said rule, and the dependent enactment could not
come into force, before the depending/controlling provision became
operational. The sequence of facts narrated hereinabove reveals, that the
dependent
and
depending
provisions,
were
brought
into
force
It is therefore
Act received the assent of the President, cannot invalidate the enactment
of the NJAC Act, as suggested by the learned counsel for the petitioners.
212. One is also persuaded to accept the contention advanced by the
learned Attorney General, that the validity of any proceeding, in
Parliament, cannot be assailed on the ground of irregularity of procedure,
in view of the protection contemplated through Article 122.
Whilst
to
enact
the
NJAC
Act.
For
the
reasons
recorded
hereinabove, it is not possible for us to accept, that the NJAC Act was
stillborn, or that it was liable to be set aside, for the reasons canvassed
by the learned counsel for the petitioners.
213. It is also not possible for us to accept, that while enacting the NJAC
Act, it was imperative for the Parliament to follow the procedure
contemplated under Article 368.
the
above
amendments,
the
procedural
requirements
88
The Courts attention was also drawn to Kuldip Nayar v. Union of India 89,
wherein it was recorded:
107. The basic structure theory imposes limitation on the power of
Parliament to amend the Constitution. An amendment to the
Constitution under Article 368 could be challenged on the ground of
violation of the basic structure of the Constitution. An ordinary
legislation cannot be so challenged. The challenge to a law made, within
its legislative competence, by Parliament on the ground of violation of the
basic structure of the Constitution is thus not available to the
petitioners.
Last of all, learned Attorney General placed reliance on Ashoka Kumar
Thakur v. Union of India90, and referred to the following observations:
116. For determining whether a particular feature of the Constitution is
part of the basic structure or not, it has to be examined in each
individual case keeping in mind the scheme of the Constitution, its
objects and purpose and the integrity of the Constitution as a
fundamental instrument for the countrys governance. It may be noticed
that it is not open to challenge the ordinary legislations on the basis of
the basic structure principle. State legislation can be challenged on the
question whether it is violative of the provisions of the Constitution. But
as regards constitutional amendments, if any challenge is made on the
basis of basic structure, it has to be examined based on the basic
features of the Constitution.
Based on the afore-quoted judgments, it was the assertion of the learned
Attorney General, that the validity of a legislative enactment, i.e., an
ordinary statute, could not be assailed on the ground, that the same was
violative of the basic structure of the Constitution. It was therefore
asserted, that reliance placed at the hands of the learned counsel,
appearing for the petitioners, on the Madras Bar Association case 35, was
not acceptable in law.
89
(2006) 7 SCC 1
(2008) 6 SCC 1
90
And in so
(2012) 7 SCC 1
have
given
our
thoughtful
consideration
to
the
above
has
been
transgressed,
it
is
to
be
understood,
that
or
that
the
above
Articles
read
together,
had
been
transgressed.
221. So far as the issue of examining the constitutional validity of an
ordinary legislative enactment is concerned, all the constitutional
provisions, on the basis whereof the concerned basic feature arises, are
available. Breach of a single provision of the Constitution, would be
sufficient to render the legislation, ultra vires the Constitution. In such
view of the matter, it would be proper to accept a challenge based on
constitutional validity, to refer to the particular Article(s), singularly or
collectively, which the legislative enactment violates. And in cases where
the cumulative effect of a number of Articles of the Constitution is stated
to have been violated, reference should be made to all the concerned
It was
submitted, that the NJAC should have been allowed to frame regulations,
with reference to the manner of selection and appointment of Judges to
the higher judiciary including the Chief Justice of India.
223. It was submitted, that the term fit, expressed in Section 5(1) of
the NJAC Act, had not been elaborately described. And as such, fitness
would be determined on the subjective satisfaction of the Members of the
NJAC.
General had expressed, during the course of hearing, that fitness only
meant mental and physical fitness, a successor Attorney General
may view the matter differently, just as the incumbent Attorney General
has differed with the concession recorded on behalf of his predecessor (in
the Third Judges case), even though they both represent the same ruling
political party. And, it was always open to the Parliament to purposefully
define the term fit, in a manner which could sub-serve the will of the
executive. It was pointed out, that even an ordinance could be issued
without the necessity, of following the procedure of enacting law, to bring
in a person of the choice of the political-executive. It was contended, that
the criterion of fitness could be defined or redefined, as per the sweet will
of the non-judicial authorities.
224.
whereunder the senior most Judge of the Supreme Court, has always
been appointed as Chief Justice of India.
than two years. If such action, as has been illustrated above, was to be
taken at the hands of the Parliament, it was bound to cause discontent to
those who had a legitimate expectation to hold the office of Chief Justice
of India, under the seniority rule, which had been in place for all this
while.
227. It was asserted, that the illustration portrayed in the foregoing
paragraph, could be dimensionally altered, by prescribing different
parameters, tailor-made for accommodating a favoured individual. It was
submitted, that the Parliament should never be allowed the right to
create uncertainty, in the matter of selection and appointment of the
Chief Justice of India, as the office of the Chief Justice of India was
pivotal, and shouldered extremely onerous responsibilities. The exercise
of the above authority by the Parliament, it was pointed out, could/would
seriously affect the independence of the judiciary.
228. In the above context, reference was also made, to the opinion
expressed by renowned persons, having vast experience in judicial
institutions, effectively bringing out the veracity of the contention
advanced. Reference in this regard was made to the observations of M.C.
Chagla, in his book, Roses in December An Autobiography, wherein
he described the impact of supersession on Judges, who by virtue of the
existing convention, were in line to be the Chief Justice of India, but were
overlooked by preferring a junior. The position was expressed thus:
The effect of these supersessions was most deleterious on the judges of
the Supreme Court who were in the line of succession to the Chief
Justiceship. Each eyed the other with suspicion and tried to outdo him
that
the
above
position
would
entitle
two
eminent
Most importantly, it
NJAC could not be held, without the presence of the all Members of the
NJAC. In order to support his above contention, he illustratively placed
reliance on the Constitution (122nd Amendment) Bill, 2014 (brought
before the Parliament, by the same ruling political party, which had
amended
the
Constitution,
by
tabling
the
Constitution
(121st
And yet, during the course of hearing of the present case, the Union of
India did seek a reconsideration of the Second Judges case.
236. Insofar as the challenge to Section 5(1) of the NJAC Act is
concerned, we are satisfied to affirm and crystalise the position adopted
by the Attorney General, namely, that the term fit used in Section 5(1)
would be read to mean only mental and physical fitness . If that is
done, it would be legal and constitutional. However, if the position
adopted breached the independence of the judiciary, in the manner
suggested by the learned counsel for the petitioners, the same would be
assailable in law.
237. We will now endeavour, to address the second submission with
reference to Section 5 of the NJAC Act. Undoubtedly, postulating
seniority in the first proviso under Section 5(2) of the NJAC Act, is a
laudable objective. And if seniority is to be supplemented and enmeshed
with ability and merit, the most ideal approach, can be seen to have
been adopted.
above the other Judges appointed to another High Court, just after a few
days or weeks or months. Judges appointed later, will have to be placed
en masse below the earlier batch, in seniority. If appointment of Judges
to the Supreme Court, is to be made on the basis of seniority (as a
primary consideration), then the earlier batch would have priority in the
matter of elevation to the Supreme Court. And hypothetically, if the batch
had ten Judges (appointed together to a particular High Court), and if all
of them have proved themselves able and meritorious as High Court
Judges, they will have to be appointed one after the other, when
vacancies of Judges arise in the Supreme Court. In that view of the
matter, Judges from the same High Court would be appointed to the
Supreme Court, till the entire batch is exhausted. Judges from the same
High Court, in the above situation where the batch comprised of ten
Judges, will occupy a third of the total Judge positions in the Supreme
Court. That would be clearly unacceptable, for the reasons indicated by
the learned counsel for the petitioners. We also find the position,
unacceptable in law.
238. Therefore, insofar as Section 5(2) of the NJAC Act is concerned,
there cannot be any doubt, that consideration of Judges on the basis of
their seniority, by treating the same as a primary consideration, would
adversely affect the present convention of ensuring representation from
as many State High Courts, as is possible. The convention in vogue is, to
maintain regional representation. For the reasons recorded above, the
first proviso under Section 5(2) is liable to be struck down and set aside.
neither Article 124(2) nor Article 217(1) postulate, that the President
could require the NJAC to reconsider, the recommendation made by the
NJAC, as has been provided for under the first proviso to Section 7 of the
NJAC Act. It was accordingly the contention of the learned counsel for
the
petitioners, that the first proviso to Section 7 was ultra vires the
reiterate the proposal made earlier, the President even in terms of Section
7, was bound to act in consonance therewith (as is apparent from the
second proviso under Section 7 of the NJAC Act). In our considered view,
the instant submission advanced at the hands of the petitioners deserves
to be rejected, and is accordingly rejected.
242. Learned counsel for the petitioners had also assailed the validity of
Section 8 of the NJAC Act, which provides for the Secretary to the
Government of India, in the Department of Justice, to be the convener of
the NJAC.
We have
For
exactly the same reasons, we are of the view, that Section 8 of the NJAC
Act which provides, that the Secretary to the Government of India, in the
Department of Justice, would be the convener of the NJAC, is not
sustainable in law.
body, with the judiciary. For the above reasons, Section 8 of the NJAC
Act would likewise be unsustainable in law.
245. Examined from the legal perspective, it was unnecessary for us to
examine
the
individual
provisions
of
the
NJAC
Act.
Once
the
THE
EFFECT
OF
STRIKING
CONSTITUTIONAL AMENDMENT:
DOWN
THE
IMPUGNED
was submitted, that even if the prayers made by the petitioners were to
be accepted, and the impugned constitutional amendment was to be set
aside, the same would not result in the revival of the unamended
provisions.
250. Learned Solicitor General also referred to a number of judgments
rendered by this Court, to support the inference drawn by him. We shall
therefore, in the first instance, examine the judgments relied upon:
(i)
Reliance was then placed on the Firm A.T.B. Mehtab Majid & Co.
Reference was thereafter made to the B.N. Tewari case 72, and our
to
an
erstwhile
legislative
enactment,
envisages
the
in
the
State
of
Maharashtra
v.
Central
Provinces
Co. Ltd. case76, and our attention was drawn to the following
observations recorded therein:
18. We do not think that the word substitution necessarily or always
connotes two severable steps, that is to say, one of repeal and another of
a fresh enactment even if it implies two steps. Indeed, the natural
meaning of the word "substitution" is to indicate that the process cannot
be split up into two pieces like this. If the process described as
substitution fails, it is totally ineffective so as to leave intact what was
sought to be displaced. That seems to us to be the ordinary and natural
meaning of the words "shall be substituted". This part could not become
effective without the assent of the Governor-General. The State
Governor's assent was insufficient. It could not be inferred that, what
was intended was that, in case the substitution failed or proved
ineffective, some repeal, not mentioned at all, was brought about and
remained effective so as to create what may be described as a vacuum in
the statutory law on the subject-matter. Primarily, the question is one of
gathering, the intent from the use of words in the enacting provision seen
in the light of the procedure gone through. Here, no intention to repeal,
without a substitution, is deducible. In other words, there could be no
repeal if substitution failed. The two were a part and parcel of a single
indivisible process and not bits of a disjointed operation.
19. Looking at the actual procedure which was gone through, we find
that, even if the Governor had assented to the substitution, yet, the
amendment would have been effective, as a piece of valid legislation, only
when the assent of the Governor-General had also been accorded to it. It
could not be said that what the Legislature intended or what the
Governor had assented to consisted of a separate repeal and a fresh
enactment. The two results were to follow from one and the same effective
Legislative process. The process had, therefore, to be so viewed and
interpreted.
20. Some help was sought to be derived by the citation of B.N. Tewari
v. Union of India [1965]2 SCR 421 and the case of Firm A. T. B. Mehtab
Majid and Co. v. State of Madras. Tewari's case related to the
substitution of what was described as the "carry forward" rule contained
in the departmental instruction which was sought to be substituted by a
modified instruction declared invalid by the court. It was held that when
the rule contained in the modified instruction of 1955 was struck down
the rule contained in a displaced instruction did not survive. Indeed, one
of the arguments there was that the original "carry forward" rule of 1952
was itself void for the very reason for which the "carry forward" rule,
contained in the modified instructions of 1955, had been struck down.
Even the analogy of a merger of an order into another which was meant
to be its substitute could apply only where there is a valid substitution.
Such a doctrine applies in a case where a judgment of a subordinate
court merges in the judgment of the appellate court or an order reviewed
merges in the order by which the review is granted. Its application to a
legislative process may be possible only in cases of valid substitution.
The legislative intent and its effect is gathered, inter alia, from the nature
of the action of the authority which functions. It is easier to impute an
intention to an executive rule-making authority to repeal altogether in
any event what is sought to be displaced by another rule. The cases cited
were of executive instructions. We do not think that they could serve as
useful guides in interpreting a Legislative provision sought to be
amended by a fresh enactment. The procedure for enactment is far more
elaborate and formal. A repeal and a displacement of a Legislative
provision by a fresh enactment can only take place after that elaborate
procedure has been followed in toto. In the case of any rule contained in
an executive instruction, on the other hand, the repeal as well as
displacement are capable of being achieved and inferred from a bare
issue of fresh instructions on the same subject.
21. In Mehtab Majid & Co.'s case a statutory role was held not to have
revived after it was sought to be substituted by another held to be
invalid. This was also a case in which no elaborate legislative procedure
was prescribed for a repeal as it is in the case of statutory enactment of
statutes by legislatures. In every case, it is a question of intention to be
gathered from the language as well as the acts of the rule-making or
legislating authority in the context in which these occur.
22. A principle of construction contained now in a statutory provision
made in England since 1850 has been:
Where an Act passed after 1850 repeals wholly or partially any former
enactment and substitutes provisions for the enactment repealed, the
repealed enactment remains in force until the substituted provisions
come into operation. (See: Halsbury's Laws of England, Third Edn. Vol.
36, P. 474; Craies on "Statute Law", 6th Edn. p.386).
Although, there is no corresponding provision in our General Clauses
Acts, yet, it shows that the mere use of words denoting a substitution
does not ipso facto or automatically repeal a provision until the provision,
which is to take its place becomes legally effective. We have as explained
above, reached the same conclusion by considering the ordinary and
natural meaning of the term "substitution" when it occurs without
anything else in the language used or in the context of it or in the
surrounding facts and circumstances to lead to another inference. It
means, ordinarily, that unless the substituted provision is there to take
its place, in law and in effect, the pre-existing provision continues. There
is no question of a "revival".
It would be relevant to mention, that the learned Solicitor General
conceded, that the position concluded in the instant judgment, would
defeat the stance adopted by him.
Express Newspapers (Bombay) Pvt. Ltd. v. Union of India 95, and invited
our attention to the following observations recorded therein:
107. In the cases before us we do not have rules made by two different
authorities as in Mulchand case (1971) 3 SCC 53 and no intention on the
part of the Central Government to keep alive the exemption in the event
of the subsequent notification being struck down is also established. The
decision of this Court in Koteswar Vittal Kamath v. K. Rangappa Baliga
and Co. (1969) 3 SCR 40) does not also support the Petitioners. In that
case again the question was whether a subsequent legislation which was
passed by a legislature without competence would have the effect of
reviving an earlier rule which it professed to supersede. This case again
belongs to the category of Mohd. Shaukat Hussain Khan case, AIR 1974
SC 1480. It may also be noticed that in Koteswar Vittal Kamath case, AIR
1969 SC 504, the ruling in the case of Firm A.T.B. Mehtab Majid and Co.
AIR 1963 SC 928 has been distinguished. The case of State of
Maharashtra v. Central Provinces Manganese Ore Co. Ltd., AIR 1977 SC
879 is again distinguishable. In this case the whole legislative process
termed substitution was abortive, because, it did not take effect for want
of the assent of the Governor-General and the Court distinguished that
case from Tiwari case, AIR 1965 SC 1430. We may also state that the
legal effect on an earlier law when the later law enacted in its place is
declared invalid does not depend merely upon the use of words like,
'substitution', or 'supersession'. It depends upon the totality of
circumstances and the context in which they are used.
What needs to be noticed from the extract reproduced above is, that this
Court in the above judgment clearly concluded, that the legal effect on an
earlier law, when the later law enacted in its place was declared invalid,
did not depend merely upon the use of the words like substitution or,
supersession. And further, that it would depend on the totality of the
95
96
(ix)
Next in order, reliance was placed on the India Tobacco Co. Ltd.
(1996) 5 SCC 60
Construction 3rd Edn. Vol. I, paragraphs 2014 and 2022, pp. 468 and
490). Broadly speaking, the principal object of a Repealing and Amending
Act is to 'excise dead matter, prune off superfluities and reject clearly
inconsistent enactments-see Mohinder Singh v. Mst. Harbhajan Kaur.
What needs to be kept in mind, as we have repeatedly expressed above is,
that the issue canvassed in the judgments relied upon, was the effect of a
voluntary decision of a legislature in amending or repealing an existing
provision. That position would arise, if the Parliament had validly
amended or repealed an existing constitutional provision.
impugned
constitutional
amendment
has
definetly
Herein, the
the
effct
of
Such
being the position, whatever be the cause and effect of the impugned
constitutional amendment, the same will be deemed to be set aside, and
the position preceding the amendment will be restored. It does not matter
what are the stages or steps of the cause and effect of the amendment, all
the stages and steps will stand negated, in the same fashion as they were
introduced by the amendment, when the amended provisions are set
aside.
(xi)
Kolhapur
Canesugar
Works
Ltd.
case 78,
West
U.P.
Sugar
Mills
satisfied, that the clear intent of the Parliament, while enacting the
Constitution (99th Amendment) Act, was to provide for a new process of
selection and appointment of Judges to the higher judiciary by amending
the existing provisions. Naturally therefore, when the amended provision
postulating a different procedure is set aside, the original process of
selection and appointment under the unamended provisions would
revive. The above position also emerges from the legal position declared
in the Koteswar Vittal Kamath case73.
252. It is not possible for us to accept the inferential contentions,
advanced at the hands of the learned counsel for the respondents by
placing reliance on Sections 6, 7 and 8 of the General Clauses Act. We
say so, because the contention of the learned Solicitor General was based
on the assumption, that a judicial verdict setting aside an amendment,
has the same effect as a repeal of an enactment through a legislation.
This is an unacceptable assumption. When a legislature amends or
repeals an existing provision, its action is of its own free will, and is
premised on well founded principles of interpretation, including the
provisions of the General Causes Act. Not so when an amendment/repeal
is set aside through a judicial process. It is not necessary to repeat the
consideration recorded in paragraph 250(ix) above. When a judgment
sets aside, an amendment or a repeal by the legislature, it is but natural
that the status quo ante, would stand restored.
253. For the reasons recorded hereinabove, we are of the view, that in
case of setting aside of the impugned Constitution (99th Amendment)
CONCLUSIONS:
the higher judiciary (as also transfer of Chief Justices and Judges, from
one High Court to another). The same are accordingly, violative of the
principle of independence of the judiciary. I have independently arrived
at the conclusion, that clause (c) of Article 124A(1) is ultra vires the
provisions of the Constitution, because of the inclusion of the Union
Minister in charge of Law and Justice as an ex officio Member of the
NJAC. Clause (c) of Article 124A(1), in my view, impinges upon the
principles of independence of the judiciary, as well as, separation of
powers. It has also been concluded by me, that clause (d) of Article
124A(1) which provides for the inclusion of two eminent persons as
Members of the NJAC is ultra vires the provisions of the Constitution, for
a variety of reasons. The same has also been held as violative of the
basic structure of the Constitution. In the above view of the matter, I
am of the considered view, that all the clauses (a) to (d) of Article 124A(1)
are liable to be set aside. The same are, accordingly struck down. In view
of the striking down of Article 124A(1), the entire Constitution (99th
Amendment) Act, 2014 is liable to be set aside. The same is accordingly
hereby struck down in its entirety, as being ultra vires the provisions of
the Constitution.
255. The contention advanced at the hands of the respondents, to the
effect, that the provisions of the Constitution which were sought to be
amended by the impugned constitutional amendment, would not revive,
even if the challenge raised by the petitioners was accepted (and the
Constitution (99th Amendment) Act, 2014, was set aside), has been
also, learned counsel who agreed to assist the Bench, during the summer
vacation. I therefore, express my gratefulness and indebtedness to them,
from the bottom of my heart.
J.
(Jagdish Singh Khehar)
Note: The emphases supplied in all the quotations in the instant
judgment, are mine.
New Delhi;
October 16, 2015.
REPORTABLE
IN THE SUPREME COURT OF INDIA
CIVIL ORIGINAL JURISDICTION
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 13 OF 2015
Supreme Court Advocates-on-Record Association and another
versus
Union of India
With
WRIT PETITION (C) NO. 14 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (C) NO. 23 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (C) NO. 70 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (C) NO. 108 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (C) NO. 209 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (C) NO. 310 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (C) NO. 341 OF 2015
TRANSFER PETITION(C) NO. 971 OF 2015
Petitioner(s)
Respondent(s)
2.
3.
4.
442
J.
(J. Chelameswar)
J.
(Madan B. Lokur)
J.
(Kurian Joseph)
J.
(Adarsh Kumar Goel)
New Delhi;
October 16, 2015.
Reportable
IN THE SUPREME COURT OF INDIA
CIVIL ORIGINAL JURISDICTION
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.13 OF 2015
Supreme Court Advocates-on-Record
Association & Another
Petitioners
Respondent
Versus
Union of India
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.23 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.70 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.83 OF 2015
TRANSFER PETITION (CIVIL) NO.391 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.108 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.124 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.14 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.18 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.24 OF 2015
AND
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.209 OF 2015
ORDER
44
Chelameswar, J.
1.
constitutional
validity
of
the
Constitution
The objection is
Supreme Court Advocates-on-Record Association & Others v. Union of India, (1993) 4 SCC 441
44
We, therefore,
101
The position of the Presiding Judge on this Bench hearing these cases of constitutional
challenge is not consistent with (and apparently conflicts with) his position as a member of the
Collegium; and is likely to be seen as such; always bearing in mind that if the Constitution
Amendment and the statute pertaining thereto are held constitutionally valid and are upheld, the
present Presiding Judge would no longer be part of the Collegium The Collegium, it must be
acknowledged exercises significant constitutional power.
44
5.
of
law
in
this
regard
there
is
neither
44
8.
While Shri
A preliminary objection, whether Justice Jagdish Singh Khehar should preside over this
Bench, by virtue of his being the fourth senior most Judge of this Court, also happens to be a
member of the collegium, was raised by the petitioners. Elaborate submissions were made by the
learned counsel for the petitioners and the respondents. After hearing all the learned counsel, we
are of the unanimous opinion that we do not see any reason in law requiring Justice Jagdish Singh
Khehar to recuse himself from hearing the matter. Reasons will follow.
Issue rule.
44
It is
partial in judgment doth what in him lies, to deter men from the use of judges and
arbitrators; and consequently, against the fundamental law of Nature, is the cause
of war.
lack of impartiality.
44
12.
R. Grant Hammond, Judicial Recusal: Principles, Process and Problems, (Hart Publishing, 2009).
45
had
merely
affirmed
the
order
of
the
observed:
No one can suppose that Lord Cottenham could be, in the
remotest degree, influenced by the interest he had in this concern:
but, my Lords, it is of the last importance that the maxim that no
man is to be a judge in his own cause be held sacred. And that is
not to be confined to a cause in which he is a party, but applies to a
cause in which he has an interest . This will be a lesson to all
inferior tribunals to take care not only that in their decrees they are
not influenced by their personal interest, but to avoid the
appearance of labouring under such an influence.
14.
45
neither actual bias nor even an apprehension of bias on the part of
that judge. The fundamental philosophical underpinning of Dimes
is therefore predicated on a conflict of interest approach.
15.
The convict
(2)
16.
Lords.
17.
18.
19.
judgment. He held:
There is only one established special category and that exists
where the tribunal has a pecuniary or proprietary interest in the
subject matter of the proceedings as in Dimes v. Proprietors of
Grand Junction Canal, 3 H.L. Case 759. The courts should
hesitate long before creating any other special category since this
will immediately create uncertainty as to what are the parameters
of that category and what is the test to be applied in the case of that
category. The real danger test is quite capable of producing the
right answer and ensure that the purity of justice is maintained
across the range of situations where bias may exist.
20.
In
Amnesty
International,
charitable
did
not
any
such
immunity.
which
was
closely
linked
with
Amnesty
23.
As per Lord
Wilkinson The fundamental principle is that a man may not be a judge in his
own cause. This principle, as developed by the courts, has two
very similar but not identical implications. First it may be applied
literally: if a judge is in fact a party to the litigation or has a
financial or proprietary interest in its outcome then he is indeed
sitting as a judge in his own cause. In that case, the mere fact that
he is a party to the action or has a financial or proprietary interest
in its outcome is sufficient to cause his automatic disqualification.
The second application of the principle is where a judge is not a
party to the suit and does not have a financial interest in its
outcome, but in some other way his conduct or behaviour may give
rise to a suspicion that he is not impartial, for example because of
his friendship with a party. This second type of case is not strictly
speaking an application of the principle that a man must not be
judge in his own cause, since the judge will not normally be
himself benefiting, but providing a benefit for another by failing to
be impartial.
In my judgment, this case falls within the first category of case, viz.
where the judge is disqualified because he is a judge in his own
cause. In such a case, once it is shown that the judge is himself a
party to the cause, or has a relevant interest in its subject matter, he
is disqualified without any investigation into whether there was a
likelihood or suspicion of bias. The mere fact of his interest is
He opined that although the earlier cases have all dealt with
automatic disqualification on the grounds of pecuniary interest, there is no good
reason in principle for so limiting automatic disqualification.
24.
Lord
Wilkinson
concluded
that
Amnesty
25.
that even though a judge may not have financial interest in the outcome of a
case, but in some other way his conduct or behaviour may give rise to a suspicion
that he is not impartial and held that if the absolute impartiality of the
judiciary is to be maintained, there must be a rule which automatically disqualifies
a judge who is involved, whether personally or as a director of a company, in
promoting the same causes in the same organisation as is a party to the suit. There
is no room for fine distinctions.
2.
3.
106
P.D. Dinakaran(1) v. Judges Inquiry Committee, (2011) 8 SCC 380, paras 49 to 53.
In other words,
whether Justice Khehar can be said to be sharing any interest which one of the parties is promoting.
29.
upon
to
express
his
opinion
regarding
the
power,
at
least
with
respect
to
the
Wakefield Local Board of Health v. West Riding and Grimsby Rly Co. (1865) 1 Q.B. 84.
R V. Byles ex p. Hollidge (1912) 77 J.P. 40; R. v. Nailsworth Licensing Justices ex p. Bird
[1953] 1 W.L.R. 1046; R v. Lilydale Magistrates Court ex p. Ciccone [1973] V.R. 122; and see R.
v. Antrim Justices [1895] 2 I.R. 603; Tolputt (H.) & Co. Ltd. v. Mole [1911] 1 K.B. 836; Corrigan
v. Irish Land Commission [1977] I.R. 317.
108
....J.
(J. Chelameswar)
....J.
(Adarsh Kumar Goel)
New Delhi;
October 16, 2015.
Reportable
IN THE SUPREME COURT OF INDIA
CIVIL ORIGINAL JURISDICTION
WRIT PETITION (C) NO. 13 OF 2015
Supreme Court Advocates-on-Record
Association & Anr.
Petitioners
Versus
Union of India
Respondent
WITH
463
JUDGMENT
Chelameswar, J.
1.
emancipation from the other two organs of the State. But have
we
developed
an
alternate
constitutional
morality
to
to
keep
us
in
control
from
abusing
such
outgrown
the
malady
of
dependence
or
merely
such
ethical
and
constitutional
disorder
that
for nepotism
464
465
3.
was
stipulated
by
memorandum
of
the
Government of India109.
After the AMENDMENT
4.
Articles 124 and 217 insofar as they are relevant for our
purpose read
Article 124 xxxxx
xxxxx
xxxx
(2)
Every Judge of the Supreme Court shall be appointed
by the President by warrant under his hand and seal on the
recommendation of the National Judicial Appointments
Commission referred to in article 124A and shall hold office until
he attains the age of sixty-five years.
Article 217 . Appointment and conditions of the office of a
Judge of a High Court (1) Every Judge of a High Court shall be
appointed by the President by warrant under his hand and seal on
the recommendation of the National Judicial Appointments
Commission referred to in article 124A, and shall hold office, in
109
The details of which are already noted in the judgment of my brother Khehar, J.
466
the case of an additional or acting Judge, as provided in article 224,
and in any other case, until he attains the age of sixty-two years.
5.
467
(c) ensure that the person recommended is of ability and
integrity.
124C. Parliament may, by law, regulate the procedure for the
appointment of Chief Justice of India and other Judges of the
Supreme Court and Chief Justices and other Judges of High Courts
and empower the Commission to lay down by regulations the
procedure for the discharge of its functions, the manner of selection
of persons for appointment and such other matters as may be
considered necessary by it.
468
Judges of High Courts and of recommending transfer of Chief Justices and other
Judges of High Courts from one High Court to any other High Court.
8.
made the ACT. For the present, suffice it to note that though
the amended text of the Constitution does not so provide,
Section 6(6)110 of the ACT provides that the NJAC shall not
recommend a person for appointment, if any two members of
the Commission do not agree for such recommendation.
10.
The
110
Section 6 (6). The Commission shall not recommend a person for appointment under this section if
any two members of the Commission do not agree for such recommendation.
469
mechanism
which
would
ensure
establishment
of
an
470
independent judiciary.
for
the
appointment
of
Judges
of
the
securing
an
independent
judiciary
or
can
there
be
alternatives?
If there can be alternatives, whether the mechanism ( NJAC)
sought to be established by the AMENDMENT transgresses
the boundaries of the constituent power?
14.
Alis view in S.P. Gupta v. Union of India & Ors. 111 AIR 1982 SC
149 (for short S.P. Gupta case) that the issue is irrelevant for
the masses and litigants.
111
Para 520. There is another fact of life which, however unpleasant, cannot be denied and this is that
precious little are our masses or litigants concerned with which Judge is appointed or not appointed or
which one is continued or not continued. The high sounding concept of independence of judiciary or
primacy of one or the other of the Constitutional functionaries or the mode of effective consultation are
matters of academic interest in which our masses are least interested. On the other hand, they are mainly
concerned with dangerous forces at work and evils reflected in economic-pressures, inflationary
tendencies, gruelling poverty, emancipation of women, maintenance of law and order, food and clothing,
bread and butter, and above all the serious problem of unemployment,
521. It is only a sizeable section of the intellectuals consisting of the press and the lawyers who
have made a prestigious issue of the independence of judiciary. I can fully understand that lawyers or other
persons directly connected with the administration of justice may have a grievance however ill-founded that
proper selection of Judges or interference with the appointment of Judges strictly according to constitutional
provisions may mar the institution of judiciary and therefore they may to some extent be justified in
vindicating their rights. But at the same time, however biting or bitter, distasteful and diabolical it may seem
to be, the fact remains that the masses in general are not at all concerned with these legal niceties and so
far as administration of justice is concerned they merely want that their cases should be decided quickly
by Judges who generate confidence.
of
such
enforceable
obligations.
To
generate
Notwithstanding
the
fact
that
they
are
fundamental values.
In the
112
20.
113
A 1720
In 1761 a statute
provided that commissions of the Judges shall remain in full force and effect during
good behaviour notwithstanding the demise of His Majesty or of any of his heirs and
114
judges commissions be made quamdiu se bene gesserint, and their salaries ascertained and
established; but upon the address of both houses of parliament it may be lawful to remove them.
This clause has been repealed by ____
successors
According to
Blackstone,
(I) In this distinct and separate existence of the judicial power in a
peculiar body of men, nominated indeed, but not removable at
pleasure by the Crown, consists one main preservative of the public
liberty which cannot subsist long in any State unless the
administration of common justice be in some degree separated
both from the legislative and from the executive power.115
23.
that Judges of the Supreme Court and also the inferior Courts
established by Congress shall hold their office during good
behavior and they cannot be removed except through the
process of impeachment117. It also stipulates that they shall
receive a compensation for their services which shall not be
diminished during their continuance in office.
24.
Sir William Blackstones, Commentaries on the Laws of England, (1765) Vol. I p. 269
116
Article III Section I. The judicial power of the United States, shall be vested in one Supreme Court, and
in such inferior courts as the Congress may from time to time ordain and establish. The judges, both of the
supreme and inferior courts, shall hold their offices during good behaviour, and shall, at stated times,
receive for their services, a compensation, which shall not be diminished during their continuance in
office.
117
Article II Section 4. The President, Vice President and all civil officers of the United States, shall be
removed from office on impeachment for, and conviction of, treason, bribery, or other high crimes and
misdemeanors.
118
Section 72. Judges' appointment, tenure, and remuneration:
The Justices of the High Court .
(ii) shall not be removed except on an address from both Houses of the Parliament
in the same session, praying for such removal on the ground of proved misbehaviour or incapacity;
(iii) shall receive such remuneration as the Parliament may fix; but the remuneration
shall not be diminished during their continuance in office.
The British North America Act, 1867 renamed by the Amendment in 1982 as the Constitution Act, 1867
Commonwealth of Australia Constitution Act, 1900.
The existing constitution and organization of constitutional courts in this country is discussed in some
detail by Justice Verma in the Second Judges case at paras 444, 445, 446.
444. The Government of India Act, 1919 provided in Section 101 for the Constitution of High
Courts; and the appointment of the Chief Justice and the permanent Judges was in the absolute discretion of
the Crown, subject only the prescribed conditions of eligibility. The tenure of their office, according to
Section 102, was dependent entirely on the Crowns pleasure.
xxxxx
xxxxxx
xxxxxx
xxxxx
445. Then, in the Government of India Act, 1935, provision for the establishment and Constitution
of the Federal Court was made in Section 200, while the Constitution of High Courts was provided for in
Section 220.
xxxxx
xxxxxx
xxxxxx
xxxxx
446. Thus, even under the Government of India Act, 1935, appointments of Judges of the Federal
Court and the High Courts were in the absolute discretion of the Crown or, in other words, of the executive,
with no specific provision for consultation with the Chief Justice in the appointment process.
II.
the
termination
of
judicial
appointment
(during
Constitution
prescribes
that
Judge
of
except
by
following
an
elaborate
procedure
of
123
L Chandra Kumar & Ors v. Union of India & Ors., (1997) 3 SCC 261, para 78
Article 124(4) A Judge of the Supreme Court shall not be removed from his office except by an order of
the President passed after an address by each House of Parliament supported by a majority of the total
membership of that House and by a majority of not less than two thirds of the members of that House
present and voting has been presented to the President in the same session for such removal on the ground
203 (1) - So much of the estimates as relates to expenditure charged upon the Consolidated Fund of a
State shall not be submitted to the vote of the Legislative Assembly, but nothing in this clause shall be
construed as preventing the discussion in the Legislature of any of those estimates.
29.
fact that the State has the legal authority to make laws
including the laws that determine the process of selection of
judges and their service conditions can pose the greatest
threat to the independence of the judiciary if such law making
authority is without any limitations. Therefore, extraordinary
safeguards to protect the tenure and service conditions of the
members of the judiciary are provided in the Constitution; with
a fond hope that men and women, who hold judicial offices so
protected will be able to discharge their functions with
absolute independence and efficiency.
30.
Fali S. Nariman, Before Memory Fades: An Autobiography, [First Edition Hay House (2010 ),
p.348 ]
I once knew a fine, independent judge in South Africa during the days of apartheid JudgePresident John Milne of the Natal Supreme Court. We used to correspond, and Milne said something
similar. Milne wrote to me on one occasion (in despair) :
It seems that however much they may pay lip service to the idea that the Judiciary
is totally independent of the Executive, politicians throughout the ages and throughout the
world would actually much prefer to have executive minded lackeys and are considerably
irritated by independent Judges functioning in an independent manner.
Usually
such men are only loyal to power but not to the benefactor.
31.
appointment
of
Judges,
democracies
all
over
the
such
aberrations
world
have
are
avoided,
adopted
different
The
Insofar as the
model.
Article II Section 2
The President shall have power to .. nominate and by and with the advise and consent of the
Senate .. appoint .. Judges of the Supreme Court ..
In the case of the appointment of Judges of the other Statutory Federal Courts, the Congress
can by law entrust the power to the Supreme Court itself.
131
The Federal Legislature of America is called the Congress of the United States consisting of two
chambers Senate and House of Representatives.
132
Section 101. The Parliament of Canada may, notwithstanding anything in this Act, from Time to Time
provide for the Constitution, Maintenance, and Organization of a General Court of Appeal for Canada, and
for the Establishment of any additional Courts for the better Administration of the Laws of Canada.
It is in exercise of such
Judges of the
133
134
Australian Constitution.
in
India,
It has no written
constitution
as
US,
Canada
and
Australia.
The text of
(emphasis supplied)
The following are salient features of Dr. Ambedkars statement:
1.
2.
(a)
Requiring
concurrence
of
the
Chief
Recall the words of Jackson, J. in Sacher v. United States 343 US 1 (1952) Men who make their way to
the Bench sometimes exhibit vanity, irascibility, narrowness, arrogance, and other weaknesses to which
human flesh is heir.
(c)
it
imprudent
to
confer
on
the
President.
4.
ensure
competence
requisite
of
the
arrangements would
independence
judiciary
and
and
such
moment.
39.
controversy.
This
Court
in
Supreme
Court
Para 371
(iii) All the appointments to the Supreme Court from 1950 to 1959 were made
with the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India. 210 out of 211 appointments made to
the High Courts during that period were also with the concurrence of the Chief Justice of
India.
(iv)
Mr. Gobind Ballabh Pant, Home Minister of India, declared on the floor
of the Parliament on November 24, 1959 that appointment of Judges were virtually being
made by the Chief Justice of India and the Executive was only an order - issuing
authority.
(v)
Mr. Ashok Sen, the Law Minister reiterated in the Parliament on
November 25,1959 that almost all the appointments made to the Supreme Court and the
High Courts were made with the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India.
(vi)
Out of 547 appointments of Judges made during the period January 1,
1983 to April 10, 1993 only 7 were not in consonance with the views expressed by the
Chief Justice of India.
138
The matter,
Four
separate
judgments
were
delivered
by
41.
Justice Bhagwati, was entirely in agreement with what has been said by
42.
Fazal Ali.
43.
matter
opined
that
there
was
no
justification
for
It is a matter of
Per Fazal Ali, J. S.P. Gupta case, p.403 - It is true that there were, quite a few transfers during the
emergency which were not in consonance with the spirit of Article 222 and that is why the Government had
conceded this fact and took steps to revoke the transfers by retransferring, almost all the Judges to the High
Courts from where they had been transferred.
Chief
45.
147
relatively stagnant.
and complex.
emboldened
by
judgments
of
this
Court
in
148
Subhash Sharma v. Union of India, 1991 Supp (1) SCC 574, at page 586 :
Para 18. We gather that the Kerala High Court where the sanctioned strength has been reduced
by 2, has a sanctioned strength of 22 while its pendency as on January 1, 1990 being 34,330 cases justifies a
Judge strength of almost 50 on the basis of the measure of 650 cases per Judge per year. We intend to
indicate that there was no justification for reduction of the sanctioned strength.
149
Para 19. For the present we suggest to government that the matter should be reviewed from time to
time and steps should be taken for determining the sanctioned strength in a pragmatic way on the basis of
the existing need. If there be no correlation between the need and the sanctioned strength and the provision
of Judge-manpower is totally inadequate, the necessary consequence has to be backlog and sluggish
enforcement of the Rule of Law.
Selecting Judges for the Supreme Court of India 150 records some
as
acting
Chief
Justices,
were
made
A particular Additional
notwithstanding
the
recommendations
for
his
delivered
judgment
not
palatable
to
the
State
between the Government and the CJI and the record of the
consultation process are some of the best guarded secrets of
this country.
47.
The
151
As a
From 1978, Governments at the State level and the Union level ceased to be necessarily of the same
political party. Regional parties in parts of the country had captured power putting an end to one party rule
at both the levels.
48.
Justice
One proposition on
The point of
152
Para 421 - These questions have to be considered in the context of the independence of the judiciary, as
a part of the basic structure of the Constitution, to secure the rule of law, essential for the preservation of
the democratic system. The broad scheme of separation of powers adopted in the Constitution, together with
the directive principle of separation of judiciary from executive even at the lowest strata, provides some
insight to the true meaning of the relevant provisions in the Constitution relating to the composition of the
judiciary. The construction of these provisions must accord with these fundamental concepts in the
constitutional scheme to preserve the vitality and promote the growth essential for retaining the Constitution
as a vibrant organism.
regarding
the
mode
by
which
the
establishment
and
insulated
from
vagaries
of
transient
and
shifting
Legislatures
have
absolutely
no
role
in
matters
Article 50. Separation of judiciary from executive The State shall take steps to separate the
judiciary from the executive in the public services of the State.
154
Form of oath or affirmation to be made by the Judges of the Supreme Court and the
Comptroller and Auditor-General of India:
I, A.B., having been appointed Chief Justice (or a Judge) of the Supreme Court of India (or
Comptroller and Auditor-General of India) do swear in the name of God that I will bear true faith and
solemnly affirm faith and allegiance to the Constitution of India as by law established, that I will uphold the
sovereignty and integrity of India, that I will duly and faithfully and to the best of my ability, knowledge
and judgment perform the duties of my office without fear or favour, affection or illwill and that I will
uphold the Constitution and the laws.
155
this country.
Prior to the
Article 124(5). Parliament may by law regulate the procedure for the presentation of an address and for
the investigation and proof of the misbehaviour or incapacity of a Judge under clause (4).
157
Article 124(4). A Judge of the Supreme Court shall not be removed from his office except by an order of
the President passed after an address by each House of Parliament supported by a majority of the total
membership of that House and by a majority of not less than two thirds of the members of that House
present and voting has been presented to the President in the same session for such removal on the ground
of proved misbehaviour or incapacity.
Articles 124 and 217, as the case may be. Consultation with
the CJI was mandatory for the appointment of Judges of all
CONSTITUTIONAL COURTS. Consultation with the Chief Justices
(per Hon. Pandian, J.) - Para 49. one other basic and inseparable vital condition is absolutely
necessary for timely securing the independence of judiciary; and that concerns the methodology followed in
the matter of sponsoring, selecting and appointing a proper and fit candidate to the (Supreme Court or High
Court) higher judiciary. The holistic condition is a major component that goes along with other
constitutionally guaranteed service conditions in securing a complete independence of judiciary. To say
differently, a healthy independent judiciary can be said to have been firstly secured by accomplishment of
the increasingly important condition in regard to the method of appointment of judges and, secondly,
protected by the fulfilment of the rights, privileges and other service conditions. The resultant inescapable
conclusion is that only the consummation or totality of all the requisite conditions beginning with the
method and strategy of selection and appointment of judges will secure and protect the independence of the
judiciary. Otherwise, not only will the credibility of the judiciary stagger and decline but also the entire
judicial system will explode which in turn may cripple the proper functioning of democracy and the
philosophy of this cherished concept will be only a myth rather than a reality.
(per Hon. Kuldip Singh, J.) Para 335. Then the question which comes up for consideration is,
can there be an independent judiciary when the power of appointment of judges vests in the
executive? To say yes, would be illogical. The independence of judiciary is inextricably linked and
connected with the constitutional process of appointment of judges of the higher judiciary. Independence of
Judiciary is the basic feature of our Constitution and if it means what we have discussed above, then the
Framers of the Constitution could have never intended to give this power to the executive. Even otherwise
the Governments Central or the State are parties before the Courts in large number of cases. The
Union Executive have vital interests in various important matters which come for adjudication before the
Apex Court. The executive in one form or the other is the largest single litigant before the courts. In
this view of the matter the judiciary being the mediator between the people and the executive the
Framers of the Constitution could not have left the final authority to appoint the Judges of the Supreme
Court and of the High Courts in the hands of the executive.
(per Hon. Verma, J.) Para 447. When the Constitution was being drafted, there was
general agreement that the appointments of Judges in the superior judiciary should not be left to the
absolute discretion of the executive, and this was the reason for the provision made in the Constitution
imposing the obligation to consult the Chief Justice of India and the Chief Justice of the High Court. This
was done to achieve independence of the Judges of the superior judiciary even at the time of their
appointment, instead of confining it only to the provision of security of tenure and other conditions of
Consultation with
The Constituent
Such a
However, Justice
[emphasis supplied]
53.
[emphasis supplied]
54.
There
are
conflicting
opinions 159
regarding
the
an
independent
and
efficient
judiciary
the
159
See the articles of Lord Templemans favourable opinion and the critical view of Lord Cooke of
Thorndon published in the book titled Supreme but not Infallible Oxford University Press
2000 A.D.
Article 124 of the Constitution empowers the President (acting on the advice of the
Prime Minister and Cabinet) to appoint the judges of the Supreme Court. The President is given a
discretion about consulting judges of the Supreme Court and High Courts but in the case of
appointments of a Judge other than the Chief Justice, the Chief Justice of India shall always be
consulted. Similarly, Article 217 requires the Chief Justice of India to be consulted concerning the
appointment of a judge of the High Court of a state. In 1993, in the Supreme Court Advocates on
Record Association case the Supreme Court by a majority held that, having regard to the
independence of the judiciary and the separation of powers which the Court held to be implicit in
the Constitution, the views of the Chief Justice of India expressed when he was consulted must be
supreme. The Court also laid down guidelines governing the appointment and duration of office of
temporary acting judges. The majority decision has been criticized as an extension of the meaning
of the word consultation. However, having regard to the earlier experience in India of attempts by
the executive to influence the personalities and attitudes of members of the judiciary, and having
regard to the successful attempts made in Pakistan to control the judiciary and having regard to the
unfortunate results of the appointment of Supreme Court judges of the United States by the
President subject to approval by Congress, the majority decision of te Supreme Court of India in the
Advocates on Record case marks a welcome assertion of the independence of the judiciary and is
the best method of obtaining appointments of integrity and quality, a precedent method which the
British could follow such advantage.
---Lord
Templeman
All in all, the opinion of the Supreme Court in the third Judges case must be one of the
most remarkable rulings ever issued by a supreme national appellate court in the coomon law world.
Since, in some respects, I have had to voice respectful doubts about the soundness of the
constitutional foundations of that opinion.
---- Lord Cooke of Thorndon
57.
inference that can be drawn is that the law laid down by the
Second Judges case was not faithfully followed by the
successive Chief Justices, if not in all at least in some cases
attracting
comments.
Instead
of
Ministers,
Judges
patronised.160
58.
Two events are part of the record of this Court and can be
Iyer, V.R. Krishna, Judiciary : A reform agenda II, The Hindu (online edition)
15.08.2002
161
An Independent Judiciary speech delivered by Ms. Justice Ruma Pal at the 5 th V.M. Tarkunde
Memorial Lecture on 10th November 2011.
As I have said elsewhere the process by which a judge is appointed to a superior court is one of
the best kept secrets in this country. The very secrecy of the process leads to an inadequate input of
information as to the abilities and suitability of a possible candidate for appointment as a judge. A chance
remark, a rumour or even third-hand information may be sufficient to damn a judges prospects.
Contrariwise a personal friendship or unspoken obligation may colour a recommendation. Consensus
within the collegium is sometimes resolved through a trade-off resulting in dubious appointments with
disastrous consequences for the litigants and the credibility of the judicial system. Besides, institutional
independence has also been compromised by growing sycophancy and lobbying within the system.
The
dispute
in
Shanti Bhushan
case
(supra)
was
Even the
Shanti Bhushan (supra) - Para 2. The primary ground urged is that the opinion of the Chief Justice of
India has to be formed collectively after taking into account the views of his senior colleagues who are
required to be consulted by him for the formation of opinion and no appointment can be made unless it is in
conformity with the final opinion of the Chief Justice of India formed in the aforesaid manner. . It is,
therefore, submitted that the appointment of Respondent No.2 as a permanent Judge as notified on 2.2.2007
has no sanctity in law.
Justice should have stuck to the view expressed by the collegium and
should not have been swayed by the views of the Government to
recommend extension of the term of Respondent 2 for one year; as it
amounts to surrender of primacy by jugglery of words.
[emphasis supplied]
Even if I choose to ignore the controversial statements made
(in the recent past) with regard to the appointment in question
in the case, by persons who held high constitutional offices
and played some role in the appointment process including
former Members of this Court, the judgment leaves sufficient
scope for believing that all did not go well with the
appointment. It appears to have been a joint venture in the
subversion of the law laid down by the Second and Third
Judges cases by both the executive and the judiciary which
neither party is willing to acknowledge.
61.
On the
62.
Third
Judges
cases
in
making
the
ill-fated
Both branches of
At least a
The
impugned
the
AMENDMENT
came
in
the
backdrop
of
above-mentioned experience.
64.
163
Mehta, Pratap Bhanu, Whom do you trust, The Indian Express, May 14, 2015 The implicit constitutional
accusation is this. The judiciary had, through improvisation, created a method of appointing judges that effectively
sidelined other branches of government. This arrangement was tolerated, not because it conformed to a constitutional
text or some hallowed principle, but because it seemed to maintain judicial independence. The experience of the 1970s
made the prospect of political packing of the judiciary a live fear. This arrangement is being challenged, not because we
have discovered a new principle, but because the credibility of the judiciary has declined. We are, in effect, saying that
any arrangement that relies solely on the judiciary has proved untrustworthy. Those challenging the NJAC are relying
on the ghost of the 1970s: Do you really want the political class to have a greater say in appointments? Both branches of
government are accusing each other of not being worthy of trust. In the process, they have dragged each other down.
The problem is that both are right.
[emphasis supplied]
None of the
Constitution
seeks
to
establish
and
nurture
an
164
65.
necessary
to
establish
appointment process.
an
independent
judiciary
the
matter
of
the
judicial appointments.
The probable
Various
Constitution.
166
On 24th May 1949 while draft Article 103 of the draft Constitution was being discussed corresponding to
present Article 124, four members, Prof. Shibban Lal Saksena and Prof. K.T. Shah, who represented the
United Provinces of Bihar and Mr. B. Pocker Sahib and Mr. Mahboob Ali Beig Sahib, who represented
Madras Provinces suggested amendments to Article 103, the relevant portions of which read as follows:
Prof. Shibban Lal Saksena:
That for clause (2) of article 103, the following clauses be substituted(2)
The Chief Justice of Bharat, who shall be the Chief Justice of the Supreme Court, shall be
appointed by the President subject to confirmation by two-thirds majority of Parliament assembled in a joint
session of both the Houses of Parliament.
Prof. K.T. Shah:
Every judge of the Supreme Court shall be appointed by the President by warrant under his hand
and seal after consultation with the Council of States and such of the judges of the Supreme Court and of
the High Courts in the States as may be necessary for the purpose and shall hold office until he attains the
age of sixty-five years.
Mr. B. Pocker Sahib:
That for clause (2) and the first proviso of clause (2) of article 103, the following be substituted(2)
Every judge of the Supreme Court other than the Chief Justice of India shall be appointed
by the President by warrant under his hand and seal after consultation with the concurrence of the Chief
Justice of India; and the Chief Justice of India shall be appointed by the President by a warrant under his
hand and seal after consultation with the judges of the Supreme Court and the Chief Justices of the High
Court in the States and every judge of the Supreme Court.
Mr. Mahboob Ali Beig Sahib:
That in the first proviso to clause (2) of article 103, for the words the Chief Justice of India shall
always be consulted the words it shall be made with the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India be
substituted.
68.
necessary:
(1)
of
basic
structure
and
basic
features
originated.
(2)
(4)
(5)
(6)
70.
the
Constitution.
That
question
arose
in
the
A Constitutional
168
are
amenable
to
the
amendatory
power
of
the
171
(Per Sikri, CJ) Para 292, fundamental rights cannot be abrogated but reasonable abridgements
of fundamental rights can be effected in public interest. That every provision of the Constitution can
be amended provided in the result the basic foundation and structure of the Constitution remains the
same. The basic structure may be said to consist of the following features:
(1)
(2)
(3)
(4)
(5)
(Per Shelat, J. who spoke for himself and Grover, J.) Paras 582, 583, there can be no difficulty
in discerning that the following can be regarded as the basic elements of the constitutional structure. These
cannot be catalogued but can only be illustrated:
(1)
The supremacy of the Constitution.
(2)
Republican and Democratic form of government and sovereignty of the country.
(3)
Secular and federal character of the Constitution.
(4)
Demarcation of power between the Legislature, the executive and the judiciary.
(5)
The dignity of the individual secured by the various freedoms and basic rights in
Part III and the mandate to build a welfare State contained in Part IV.
(6)
The unity and the integrity of the Nation.
and, therefore, the power under Article 368 is wide enough to permit amendment of each and
every article so long as its basic elements are not abrogated or denuded of their identity.
(Per Hegde, J, who also spoke for Mukherjea, J.) Para 666, Parliament has no power to abrogate
or emasculate the basic elements or fundamental features of the Constitution such as the sovereignty of
India, the democratic character of our polity, the unity of the country, the essential features of the individual
freedoms secured to the citizens. and mandate to build a welfare State and egalitarian society.
(Per P. Jaganmohan Reddy, J.) paras 1159, 1162, A sovereign democratic republic.
Parliamentary democracy, the three organs of the State constitute the basic structure. He further
held that without either the fundamental rights or directive principles it cannot be democratic
republic. Therefore, the power of amendment under Article 368 .. is not wide enough to totally abrogate
.. any one of the fundamental rights or other essential elements of the basic structure of the
Constitution and destroy its identity.
(Per Khanna, J.) para 1426,, the power under Article 368 does not take within its sweep the
power to destroy the old Constitution means the retention of the basic structure or framework of
the old Constitution it is not permissible to touch the foundation or to alter the basic institutional
pattern. According to Justice Khanna, such limitations are inherent and implicit in the word
amendment.
but such power does not enable Parliament to alter the basic structure or
framework of the Constitution.172
72.
172
See the summary of the majority of the judgment signed by 9 Judges, p. 1007 of (1973) 4 SCC 225.
[emphasis supplied]
73.
Again in Waman Rao & Ors. etc. etc. v. Union of India &
[emphasis supplied]
By then Justice Chandrachud had already expressed his
opinion in Indira Nehru Gandhi v. Raj Narain, (1975) Supp SCC
1 as follows:
663. There was some discussion at the Bar as to which features
of the Constitution form the basic structure of the Constitution
according to the majority decision in the Fundamental Rights case.
That, to me, is an inquiry both fruitless and irrelevant. The ratio of
the majority decision is not that some named features of the
Constitution are a part of its basic structure but that the power
of amendment cannot be exercised so as to damage or destroy
the essential elements or the basic structure of the Constitution,
whatever these expressions may comprehend.
[emphasis supplied]
elements
It was argued
A Constitution
75.
The judgment in Indira Nehru Gandhi case (supra) is neatly summarised by Chandrachud, J. in Waman
Rao case at para 15:
15. in Indira Gandhi v. Raj Narain Article 329-A(4) was held by the Court to be
beyond the amending competence of the Parliament since, by making separate and special
provisions as to elections to Parliament of the Prime Minister and the speaker, it destroyed the
basic structure of the Constitution. Ray, C.J. based his decision on the ground that the 39th
Amendment by which Article 329-A was introduced violated the Rule of Law (p. 418) (SCC p.
44); Khanna, J. based his decision on the ground that democracy was a basic feature of the
Constitution, that democracy contemplates that elections should be free and fair and that the clause
in question struck at the basis of free and fair elections (pp. 467 and 471) (SCC pp. 87 and 91);
Mathew, J. struck down the clause on the ground that it was in the nature of legislation ad
hominem (p. 513) (SCC p. 127) and that it damaged the democratic structure of the Constitution
(p. 515) (SCC p. 129); while one of us, Chandrachud, J., held that the clause was bad because it
violated the Rule of Law and was an outright negation of the principle of equality which is a basic
feature of the Constitution (pp. 663-65) (SCC p. 257).
174
Para 13. The question which we have to determine on the basis of the majority view in Kesavananda
Bharati is whether the amendments introduced by Sections 4 and 55 of the Constitution (42nd Amendment)
Act, 1976 damage the basic structure of the Constitution by destroying any of its basic features or
essential elements.
[emphasis supplied]
The Court finally reached the conclusion that the Parts III and
IV of the Constitution are like two wheels of a chariot both
equally important and held:
56.
.. To give absolute primacy to one over the other is to
disturb the harmony of the Constitution. This harmony and
balance between the fundamental rights and directive principles
is an essential feature of the basic structure of the
Constitution.
[emphasis supplied]
This Court concluded that the amendment to Article 31C is
destructive of the basic structure as it abrogated the protection
of Article 14 & 19 against laws which fall within the ambit of
the description contained in Article 31C.
77.
[emphasis supplied]
175
Para 31. For these reasons, we are of the view that the Amendment introduced by Section 4 of the
Constitution (First Amendment) Act, 1951 does not damage or destroy the basic structure of the
Constitution. The Amendment must, therefore, be upheld on its own merits.
78.
of
Articles
Constitution.
can
constitute
basic
feature
of
the
It all
79.
80.
See paras 25 to 29 Ahmadi, J., para 145 Sawant, J., paras 183 to 186 Ramaswamy, J., para 304
Jeevan Reddy, J.
177
In this case, this Court had to decide the validity of the Constitution (Eighty Fifth) Amendment Act 2001
by which Article 16(4A) was amended in the Constitution with retrospective effect. It provided a rule of
reservation in the context of the promotion in the Government service. Such an amendment was challenged
to be violative of the basic structure of the Constitution.
part of constitutional law even if they are not expressly stated in the
form of rules. An instance is the principle of reasonableness which
connects Articles 14, 19 and 21. Some of these principles may be
so important and fundamental, as to qualify as essential features
or part of the basic structure of the Constitution, that is to say,
they are not open to amendment. However, it is only by linking
provisions to such overarching principles that one would be able to
distinguish essential from less essential features of the Constitution.
24.
The point which is important to be noted is that principles
of federalism, secularism, reasonableness and socialism, etc. are
beyond the words of a particular provision. They are systematic
and structural principles underlying and connecting various
provisions of the Constitution. They give coherence to the
Constitution. They make the Constitution an organic whole. They
are part of constitutional law even if they are not expressly stated in
the form of rules.
25.
For a constitutional principle to qualify as an essential
feature, it must be established that the said principle is a part of the
constitutional law binding on the legislature. Only thereafter, is the
second step to be taken, namely, whether the principle is so
fundamental as to bind even the amending power of Parliament i.e.
to form a part of the basic structure. The basic structure concept
accordingly limits the amending power of Parliament. To sum up:
in order to qualify as an essential feature, a principle is to be
first established as part of the constitutional law and as such
binding on the legislature. Only then, can it be examined whether
it is so fundamental as to bind even the amending power of
Parliament i.e. to form part of the basic structure of the
Constitution. This is the standard of judicial review of
constitutional amendments in the context of the doctrine of basic
structure.
[emphasis supplied]
81.
[emphasis supplied]
82.
(ii)
(iii)
(iv)
(v)
total
of
the
basic
features
of
the
Constitution;
(vi)
83.
in
establishment
their
of
respective
an
spheres181;
independent
and
machinery182
the
for
84.
85.
example,
Article
326
Adult
It is
87.
88.
It creates a
The
by
framers
of
the
Constitution
for
ensuring
Such shift of
independent.
91.
Second and Third Judges cases are not based purely on the
interpretation of the text of the Constitution as it stood prior to
the impugned AMENDMENT but also on the basis of a
for
appointment
CONSTITUTIONAL COURTS
of
the
Judges
of
the
Commission
but
with
slightly
different
The National Commission to Review the Working of the Constitution (NCRWC), 2002 chaired by
Justice M.N. Venkatachaliah
184
7.3.7 The matter relating to manner of appointment of judges had been debated over a decade. The
Constitution (Sixty-seventh Amendment) Bill, 1990 was introduced on 18 th May, 1990 (9th Lok Sabha)
providing for the institutional frame work of National Judicial Commission for recommending the
appointment of judges to the Supreme Court and the various High Courts. Further, it appears that latterly
there is a movement throughout the world to move this function away from the exclusive fiat of the
executive and involving some institutional frame work whereunder consultation with the judiciary at some
level is provided for before making such appointments. The system of consultation in some form is already
to
Mr.
Nariman
the
model
identified
by
given
by
recommendations
the
of
Union
the
of
Justice
India
M.N.
explaining
why
Venkatachaliah
1.
The Chief Justice of India
Chairman
Two senior most judges of the Supreme Court:
Member
3
The Union Minister for Law and Justice:
Member
4
One eminent person nominated by the President after consulting the CJI
Member
The recommendation for the establishment of a National Judicial Commission and its
composition are to be treated as integral in view of the need to preserve the independence of the judiciary.
cannot
abrogate
Constitution.
the
The
basic
structure
AMENDMENT
in
of
the
no
way
is
in
contravention
of
some
other
express
Absent such
In the case of a
on
the
three
great
branches
of
most
basic
constitutions.
the
three
feature
is
values
and
Constitution.
all
democratic
branches
democratic
of
inconsistent
the
with
scheme
of
core
our
AMENDMENT
disturbed
such
balance.
The
and
also
the
correctness
of
the
are
contrary
to
the
text
of
the
of
the
constitutional
history
and
that
under
the
scheme
of
the
disguise
of
interpretation.
Under
the
Parliament exercising
and
amongst
the
three
members
question.
the
opportunity
of
packing
the
The presence of
by
constituent
the
Parliament
powers
cannot
in
be
The model
exercise
held
of
its
to
be
of
some,
there
are
better
models
or
of
as
94.
Any
appointment
process
established
under
the
[emphasis supplied]
Judges who
before them
General,
the
history
of
appointments
to
No doubt
Allegations of seriously
95.
Parliament
representing
the
majoritarian
will
was
exercise
of
its
constituent
power
and
concomitant
AMENDMENT
transgresses
the
permissible
limits
of
96.
97.
judicial
appointments
is
not
the
only
means
for
the
99.
does not depend upon who proposes the name nor the
candidates
political
association,
if
any,
should
be
disqualification.
, even party men can be fiercely independent after being
appointed judges, as has been proved by some judges who were
Sudhanshu Ranjan, Justice, Judocracy and Democracy in India : Boundaries and Breaches, p.185-186
At least that
model,
primary
responsibility
Under any
to
preserve
reposed and the fear of losing the glory of being the chosen
representative. An in built possibility in the system of periodic
elections.
102. To assume or assert that judiciary alone is concerned
with the preservation of liberties and does that job well, is an
assumption that is dogmatic, bereft of evidentiary basis and
Judgments in A.K.
Laurence H. Tribe, God Save this Honorable Court, First Edition, p.10-11
A.K. Gopalan v. State of Madras AIR 1950 SC 27
190
Union of India v. Sankalchand Himatlal Sheth & Anr., (1977) 4 SCC 193
191
ADM Jabalpur Vs. S.S. Shukla Etc. Etc. AIR 1976 SC 1207
189
104. I now deal with the submission that presence of the law
minister in the NJAC undermines independence of judiciary.
According to the petitioners, the presence of a member of the
Executive invariably has the effect of shifting the power
dynamics.
control
is
capable
of
making
enormous
and
valuable
To wholly eliminate
Laurence H. Tribe (American Constitutional Law) Second Edition, Page 2 of Chapter 1 Approaches to
Constitutional Analysis - That all lawful power derives from the people and must be held in check to
preserve their freedom is the oldest and most central tenet of American constitutionalism. At the
outset, only a small number of explicit substantive limitations on the exercise of governmental authority
were thought essential; in the main, it was believed that personal freedom could be secured more effectively
by decentralization than by express command. From the thought of seventeenth century English liberals,
particularly, as elaborated in eighteenth century France by Montesquieu, the Constitutions framers had
derived the conviction that human rights could best be preserved by inaction and indirection-shielded
behind the lay of deliberately fragmented centers of countervailing power, in a vision almost
Newtonian in its inspiration. In this first model, the centralized accumulation of power in any man or
single group of men meant tyranny; the division and separation of powers, both vertically (along the
axis of federal, state and local authority) and horizontally (along the axis of legislative, executive and
judicial authority) meant liberty. It was thus essential that no department, branch, or level of
government be empowered to achieve dominance on its own. If the legislature would punish, it must
enlist the cooperation of the other branches-the executive to prosecute, the judicial to try and convict. So
too with each other center of governmental power; exercising the mix of functions delegated to it by the
people in the social compact that was the Constitution, each power center would remain dependent
upon the others for the final efficacy of the social designs.
that
exclusion
of
the
Executive
Branch
is
Article 124A. National Judicial Appointments Commission.- (1) There shall be a Commission to be
known as the National Judicial Appointments Commission consisting of the following, namelyxxx
xxx
xxx
xxx
(d)
two eminent persons to be nominated by the committee consisting of the Prime Minister,
the Chief Justice of India and the Leader of Opposition in the House of the People or where there is no such
Leader of Opposition, then, the Leader of single largest Opposition Party in the House of the
People-Members.
Provided that one of the eminent person shall be nominated from amongst the persons belonging to
the Scheduled Castes, the Scheduled Tribes, Other Backward Classes, Minorities or Women.
Provided further that an eminent person shall be nominated for a period of three years and shall not
be eligible for renomination.
106. Transparency
governance.
is
vital
factor
in
constitutional
[emphasis supplied]
195
An Independent Judiciary speech delivered by Ms. Justice Ruma Pal at the 5th V.M. Tarkunde
Memorial Lecture on 10.11.2011
196
Bachawat, J. in I.C.
[emphasis supplied]
In the final analysis, all power could be misused including
judicial power. The remedy is not to deny grant of power but
to structure it so as to eliminate the potential for abuse. The
power to nominate two eminent persons is conferred upon
three high constitutional functionaries the Prime Minister,
the Leader of the Opposition and the CJI.
It is elementary
Nonetheless,
It is, therefore,
would
bring
this
process
within
permissible
Nominees
inherent
and
implied,
having
regard
to
functional
experiences of the past, both pre and post Second Judges case.
the
prolixity
of
our
Constitution,
In the
participatory
Constitutions
evolution
of
political
enumerate
ideals
and
structural
governmental
practices .
arrangements
of
organ of the State. Within such limits, how the various organs
of the State ought to discharge their allocated functions is a
matter of detail, either to be provided by law or convention. All
written democratic Constitutions are full of abstract moral
commands!
subordinate
constitutional
legislation.
body
is
only
The
functioning
disciplined
by
of
any
appropriate
or
the
Chief
Ministers.
Performance
of
occasionally
concerns
of
public
personal
interest
preferences
resulting
in
outweighed
undesirable
since
it
does
not
lay
down
any
guidelines
Such a provision is
that
though
the
provision
is
not
part
of
the
prescribes
special
majority
for
sanctifying
the
For example,
In other
Court was that the exercise of powers under Article 356 was
inconsistent with two features of the Constitution, i.e. the
197
Maharao Sahib Shri Bhim Singhji v. Union of India & Ors., (1981) 1 SCC 166, Krishna Iyer, J.
20. The question of basic structure being breached cannot arise when we examine the vires of an
ordinary legislation as distinguished from a constitutional amendment.
The
people
following
different
religions
is
certainly
There is no
Court who are not lucky enough to become the Chief Justice of
India.
..J.
( J. Chelameswar )
New Delhi;
October 16, 2015.
198
Thomas Babington Macaulays address on 2nd March 1831 in the House of Commons on Parliamentary
Reforms
REPORTABLE
IN THE SUPREME COURT OF INDIA
CIVIL ORIGINAL JURISDICTON
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.13 OF 2015
Petitioners
Versus
Union of India
..Respondent
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 14 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 18 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 23 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 24 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 70 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 83 OF 2015
TRANSFER PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 391 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 108 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 124 OF 2015
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 209 OF 2015
ORDER
Madan B. Lokur, J.
1.
the draft order as follows:The decision to remain as a member of the reconstituted Bench
was mine, and mine alone.
3.
199
MANU/DE/9073/2007
6.
differently apart from the legal nuance. What would happen if,
in a Bench of five judges, an application is moved for the
recusal of Judge A and after hearing the application Judge A
decides to recuse from the case but the other four judges
disagree and express the opinion that there is no justifiable
reason for Judge A to recuse from the hearing? Can Judge A
200
201
If appropriate
New Delhi
October 16, 2015
J
(Madan B. Lokur)
REPORTABLE
IN THE SUPREME COURT OF INDIA
CIVIL ORIGINAL JURISDICTION
WRIT PETITION (C) NO. 13 OF 2015
Supreme Court Advocates-on-Record Association
& Anr.
versus
Petitioners
Union of India
Respondent
WITH
JUDGMENT
Madan B. Lokur, J.
1.
579
(for short the 99th Constitution Amendment Act) alters the basic structure of
the Constitution by introducing substantive changes in the appointment of
judges to the Supreme Court and the High Courts and rewriting Article
124(2) and Article 217(1) of the Constitution, thereby seriously
compromising the independence of the judiciary. Consequently, the 99 th
Constitution Amendment Act is unconstitutional. Since the 99 th Constitution
Amendment Act is unconstitutional, the National Judicial Appointments
Commission Act, 2014 (for short the NJAC Act) which is the child of the
99th Constitution Amendment Act cannot independently survive on the
statute books. Even otherwise, it violates Article 14 of the Constitution by
enabling substantive arbitrariness in the appointment of judges to the
Supreme Court and the High Courts.
3.
580
behalf of the respondents have been noted and dealt with by Justice Khehar
in his draft judgment and in respect of some of them, I have nothing to add to
what has already been said.
Historical background
4.
to have said something to the effect that: Those who do not remember their
past are condemned to repeat their mistakes. Keeping this in mind, it is
essential to appreciate the evolution of the process for the appointment of
judges in the Indian judiciary, the various alternatives discussed and debated
and then to consider and analyze the solution given by the Constitution
(Ninety-ninth
Amendment)
Act,
2014
and
the
National
Judicial
provided for the appointment of the Chief Justice and judges of the High
Court and Section 102 provided for their tenure. It was provided that the
appointment shall be made by His Majesty and the judge shall hold office
during His Majestys pleasure. Since the appointment process and the
tenure of a judge depended upon the Crowns pleasure, perhaps the issue of
the independence of the judiciary was not the subject of discussion in India.
581
In any event, nothing was pointed out in this regard one way or the other
during the submissions made by learned counsel.
6.
procedure for the appointment of judges to the High Courts and introduced a
procedure for the appointment of judges to the Federal Court constituted by
the said Act. Section 200 and 201 dealt with the appointment of judges of
the Federal Court and while the Crown continued to make the appointments
(apparently without any formal consultation process), their tenure was fixed
at the age of 65 years. Removal of a judge was possible only on the ground
of misbehavior or of infirmity of mind or body. Section 201 provided for the
salary, allowances, leave and pension of a judge and this could not be varied
to his/her disadvantage after appointment. Section 220 and 221 related to the
appointment of a judge of the High Court and the provisions thereof were
more or less similar to the appointment of a judge of the Federal Court.
7.
582
Sapru Committee
8.
came up for discussion (as it appears) before the Sapru Committee. A Report
prepared by this Committee in 1945 dealt with the Legislature, the Executive
and the Judiciary in Chapter V thereof. The relevant paragraphs pertaining to
202
583
the appointment of judges are paragraphs 259, 261 and 268. 203 The
Committee was of the opinion that the independence of the judiciary is of
supreme importance for the satisfactory working of the Constitution and
nothing can be more detrimental to the well-being of a Province or
calculated to undermine public confidence than the possibility of executive
interference with the strength and independence of the highest tribunal of the
Province. It was clear that it desired to secure the absolute independence of
the High Court and to put the judges above party politics or influences. The
Committee proposed a limited consultative system of appointment of judges
completely leaving out the Legislature and the Executive. The Committee
proposed consultation only between the Head of the State and the Chief
Justice of India for appointments to the Supreme Court and for the High
Courts, in addition, the Head of the Unit (Province) and the Chief Justice of
the High Court. The relevant paragraphs of the Report read as follows:
259. In our Recommendation No.13 we first recommend that there shall
be a Supreme Court for the Union and a High Court in each of the units.
Then in the second clause we recommend that the strength of judges in
each of these Courts at the inception of the Union as well as the salaries to
be paid to them shall be fixed in the Constitution Act and no modification
in either shall be made except on the recommendation of the High Court,
the Government concerned and the Supreme Court and with the sanction
of the Head of the State, provided, however, that the salary of no judge
shall be varied to his disadvantage during his term of office. In sub-clause
(3) we recommend:(a) The Chief Justice of India shall be appointed by the Head of
the State and the other judges of the Supreme Court shall be
appointed by the Head of the State in consultation with the Chief
Justice of India.
(b) The Chief Justice of a High Court shall be appointed by the
Head of the State in consultation with the Head of the Unit and the
Chief Justice of India.
203
https://archive.org/stream/saprucommittee035520mbp/saprucommittee035520mbp_djvu.txt
584
(c) Other judges of a High Court shall be appointed by the Head
of the State in consultation with the Head of the Unit, the Chief
Justice of the High Court concerned and the Chief Justice of India.
261. Our main object in making these recommendations is to secure the
absolute independence of the High Court and to put them above party
politics or influences. Without some such safeguards, it is not impossible
that a Provincial Government may under political pressure affect
prejudicially the strength of the High Court within its jurisdiction or the
salary of its Judges. If it is urged that the High Court and the Government
concerned will be more or less interested parties in the matter, the
intervention of the Supreme Court and of the Head of the State would rule
out all possibility of the exercise of political or party influences. The
imposition of these conditions, may, on a superficial view, seem to be
inconsistent with the theoretical autonomy of the Provinces, but, in our
opinion, the independence of the High Court and of the judiciary generally
is of supreme importance for the satisfactory working of the Constitution
and nothing can be more detrimental to the well-being of a Province or
calculated to undermine public confidence than the possibility of executive
interference with the strength and independence of the highest tribunal of
the Province.
268. We now come to the method of appointment of Judges. Under the
existing law Judges of High Courts and of the Federal Court are appointed
by the Crown. We have recommended that the Chief Justice of India
should be appointed by the Head of the State. In this connection we would
refer to our discussion of the phrase Head of the State in Chapter VI.
Similarly we have recommended that the other Judges of the Supreme
Court shall be appointed by the Head of the State in consultation with the
Chief Justice of India. The Chief Justice of a High Court shall be
appointed by the Head of the State in consultation with the Head of the
Unit and the Chief Justice of India, and the other judges of a High Court
shall be appointed by the Head of the State in consultation with the Head
of the Unit, the Chief Justice of the High Court concerned and the Chief
Justice of India. We have deliberately placed the appointment of these
Judges, including Judges of the Provincial High Courts outside the
purview of party politics, and we make the same observations as above in
justification of this provision notwithstanding its seeming interference with
the theoretical autonomy of the Provinces.
9.
Report and in so far as the judiciary is concerned, the Head of State was
expected to act on his own as the occupant of the office of Head of State
and not on the advice of the Federal Ministry. More specifically, the Head of
585
State was to act on his/her own in the matter of appointment and removal of
judges. This is what was said in the Report:
The Union will be a democratic federal State and the Head of the State
who will replace both the Governor-General and the Crown Representative
and might be given a suitable indigenous designation, if necessary should
exercise such functions as are given to him only on the advice of his
Federal Ministry, barring a few very exceptional cases, to be specifically
mentioned in the Constitution Act, where discretion is given to him to act
on his own or on advice other than that of the Federal Ministry (1) for
avoiding political or communal graft, or (2) for taking the initiative in the
national interest, especially in exceptional and fast moving situations such
as exist at the present day. Under exception (1) will fall the suggestions
we have made under paragraph 13 of our recommendations as regard the
alteration of the strength of High Courts and the appointment and removal
of judges of the Supreme Court and the High Courts.204
Ad
hoc
Paragraph 288
586
proposed that the executive be kept out of the appointment process. The said
paragraph reads as follows:
14. The qualifications of the judges of the Supreme Court may be laid
down on terms very similar to those in the Act of 1935 as regards the
judges of the Federal Court, the possibility being borne in mind (as in the
Act of 1935) that judges of the superior courts even from the States which
may join the Union may be found fit to occupy a seat in the Supreme
Court. We do not think that it will be expedient to leave the power of
appointing judges of the Supreme Court to the unfettered discretion of the
President of the Union. We recommend that either of the following
methods may be adopted. One method is that the President should in
consultation with the Chief Justice of the Supreme Court (so far, as the
appointment of puisne judges is concerned) nominate a person whom he
considers fit to be appointed to the Supreme Court and the nomination
should be confirmed by a majority of at least 7 out of a panel of 11
composed of some of the Chief Justices of the High Courts of the
constituent units, some members of both the Houses of the Central
Legislature and some of the law officers of the Union. The other method is
that the panel of 11 should recommend three names out of which the
President, in consultation with the Chief Justice, may select a judge for the
appointment. The same procedure should be followed for the appointment
of the Chief Justice except of course that in this case there will be no
consultation with the Chief Justice. To ensure that the panel will be both
independent [and] command confidence the panel should not be an ad hoc
body but must be one appointed for a term of years.205
11.
Committee and the Ad hoc Committee on the consultation process for the
appointment of judges. The Sapru Committee felt that the appointment of
judges should be left to the Head of State acting on his/her own while the Ad
hoc Committee did not approve of the appointment process being left to the
unfettered discretion of the President but suggested it to be broad-based
involving a panel.
12.
Committee and the Report of the Ad hoc Committee is that the executive was
205
http://164.100.47.132/LssNew/constituent/vol4p6.html
587
206
588
President should consult the Chief Justice and such other judges of the
Supreme Court as might be necessary.209
14.
taken for granted, the only question being the procedure for the appointment
of judges whether it should be the exclusive responsibility of the President
or it should be broad-based involving a panel or a Council of State. In any
event, the exclusion of the executive in the appointment process appears to
have been taken as accepted.
Union Constitution Committee
15.
to the Constituent Assembly on 4th July, 1947 did not adopt the proposal for
setting up a Council of State. Consequently, an alternative procedure for the
appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court was suggested, namely, for the
appointment by consultation between the President and the Chief Justice of
the Supreme Court and such other judges of the Supreme Court and judges
of the High Court as may be necessary.
589
Court shall be appointed by the President after consulting the Chief Justice
and such other judges of the Supreme Court as also judges of the High
Courts as may be necessary for the purpose.
[NOTE - The ad hoc Committee on the Supreme Court has
observed that it will not be expedient to leave the power of appointing
judges of the Supreme Court to the unfettered discretion of the President of
the Federation. They have suggested two alternatives, both of which
involve the setting up of a special panel of eleven members. According to
one alternative, the President, in consultation with the Chief Justice, is to
nominate a person for appointment as puisne judge and the nomination has
to be confirmed by at least seven members of the panel. According to the
other alternative, the panel should recommend three names, out of which
the President, in consultation with the Chief Justice, is to select one for the
appointment. The provision suggested in the above clause follows the
decision of the Union Constitution Committee.]210
B. Shiva Rao: The Framing of Indias Constitution Select Documents, Volume II page 583
590
3. The emoluments and allowances of the judges shall not be diminished
during their term of office.211
The above discussion indicates that the executive was to be kept out of the
process of appointing judges to the Supreme Court and the High Courts. This
is clear from the views of: (1) The Sapru Committee; (2) The Ad hoc
Committee on the Supreme Court; (3) The Union Constitution Committee,
and (4) The Provincial Constitution Committee. This will have some bearing
when the composition of the National Judicial Appointments Commission is
examined.
17.
persons to express their views through comments and suggestions. The views
211
B. Shiva Rao: The Framing of Indias Constitution - Select Documents, Volume II page 662
591
212
The text of the Memorandum is available in B. Shiva Rao: The Framing of Indias Constitution - Select
Documents, Volume IV page 193
592
highest importance not only to the judges but to the citizens seeking resort
from a court of law against the high handed and illegal exercise of power by
the executive. It was noticed that there is a tendency to whittle down the
powers, rights and authority of the judiciary which, if allowed to continue,
would be most unfortunate. Therefore, there was a need to counteract this
tendency which was likely to grow with greater power being placed in the
hands of the political parties. It was said:
We have assumed that it is recognized on all hands that the independence
and integrity of the judiciary in a democratic system of government is of
the highest importance and interest not only to the judges but to the
citizens at large who may have to seek redress in the last resort in courts of
law against any illegal acts or the high-handed exercise of power by the
executive. Thanks to the system of administration of justice established by
the British in this country, the judiciary until now has, in the main, played
and independent role in protecting the rights of the individual citizen
against encroachment and invasion by the executive power. Unfortunately,
however, a tendency has, of late, been noticeable to detract from the status
and dignity of the judiciary and to whittle down their powers, rights an
authority which if unchecked would be most unfortunate. While we
recognize that the Draft Constitution proposes to liberalize in some
respects the existing safeguards against executive interference and to
enlarge their present powers, it is felt that further provision should be made
in the same direction in order effectively to counteract the aforesaid
tendency which is bound to become more pronounced as more power
passes into the hands of political parties who will control and dominate the
governmental machinery in the years to come. In making the following
proposals and suggestions, the paramount importance of securing the
fearless functioning of an independent, incorruptible and efficient judiciary
has been steadily kept in view.
The Memorandum specifically pointed out (sadly) that after 15th August,
1947 the appointment of judges to the High Courts, on merit, was not always
assured in view of the practice followed (by some States). Also,
recommendations by the Chief Justice of the High Court were not always
forwarded to the Central Government, implying thereby that some other
593
22.
23.
594
the Chief Justice of India should be obtained before the appointment is made.
The Memorandum proposed that Article 193(1) of the Draft Constitution
concerning the appointment of a judge of a High Court should read as under:
Every judge of the High Court shall be appointed by the President by a
warrant under his hand and seal on the recommendation of the Chief
Justice of the High Court after consultation with the Governor of the State
and with the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India
24.
595
the political
executive
at
the
provincial
level
also
makes
596
25.
26.
27.
Page 373-374
597
[Article 62(5a)]
INSTRUCTIONS TO THE PRESIDENT
(3)
In these instructions, unless the context otherwise requires, the
term President shall include every person for the time being discharging
the functions, of, or acting as, the President according to the provisions of
this Constitution.
(4)
xxx
(5)
xxx
(1) The President shall make rules for the constitution of an
Advisory Board consisting of not less than fifteen members of the Houses
of Parliament to be elected by both Houses in accordance with the system
of proportional representation by means of the single transferable vote for
the purpose of advising the President in the matter of making certain
appointments under this Constitution and shall take all necessary steps for
the due constitution of such Board as soon as may be after the
commencement of this Constitution.
(2) Such rules shall provide that the Leader of the Opposition, if any, in
either House of Parliament shall, if he is not elected to the Advisory Board,
be nominated to the Board by the President.
(3) Such rules shall also define the terms of office of the members of the
Advisory Board and its procedure and may contain such ancillary
provisions as the President may consider necessary.
5. (1) In making any appointment of
(a) the Chief Justice of India or any other judge of the Supreme Court;
(b) the Chief Justice or any other judge of a High Court;
(c) an Ambassador in a foreign State;
(d) the Auditor-General of India;
(e) the Chairman or any other member of the Union Public Service
Commission;
(f) any member of the Commission to superintend, direct and control all
elections to Parliament and elections to the offices of President and
Vice-President,
The President shall consult the Advisory Board constituted under
paragraph 4.
(2) The President shall also consult the Advisory Board so constituted in
making appointment by virtue of the powers conferred on him by this
Constitution to any other office under the Government of India or the
Government of a State other than the office of Governor of a State, if
Parliament by resolutions passed by both Houses recommend to the
President that the Advisory Board shall be consulted in making
appointment to such office.
6. (1) In making appointment of judges of the Supreme Court and of the
High Courts, the President shall before obtaining the advice of the
Advisory Board shall follow the following procedure:
(a) In the case of appointment of the Chief Justice of India, he shall consult
the judges of the Supreme Court and the Chief Justices of the High Courts
within the territory of India except the States for the time being specified
in Part III of the First Schedule.
(b) In the case of appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court other than
the Chief Justice of India, he shall consult the Chief Justice of India and
598
the other judges of the Supreme Court and also the Chief Justices of the
High Courts within the territory of India except the States for the time
being specified in Part III of the First Schedule.
(c) In the case of appointment of the Chief Justice of a High Court, he shall
consult the Governor of the State in which the High Court has its principal
seat, and the Chief Justice of India.
(d) In the case of appointment of a judge of a High Court other than the
Chief Justice, he shall consult the Governor of the State in which the High
Court has its principal seat, the Chief Justice of India and the Chief Justice
of the High Court.
(2) The President shall place the recommendations of the authorities
consulted by him under sub-paragraph (1) before the Advisory Board at the
time of obtaining the advice of that Board with regard to any appointment
referred to in that sub-paragraph.
7. xxx
8. xxx214
28.
214
The Framing of Indias Constitution Select Documents, Volume IV, Page 84.
Article 103(2) of the Draft Constitution reads: Every judge of the Supreme Court shall be appointed by
the President by warrant under his hand and seal after consultation with such of the judges of the Supreme
Court and of the High Courts in the States as may be necessary for the purpose and shall hold office until he
attains the age of sixty-five years:
Provided that in the case of appointment of a judge, other than the Chief Justice, the Chief Justice
of India shall always be consulted.
216
The Framing of Indias Constitution Select Documents, Volume IV, Page 147.
215
599
30.
In other words, the President was not expected to consult the Council
of Ministers at all or to act on its advice but was to consult the Chief Justice
of India and other judges and then take the advice of the Advisory Board.
This was a mixture of the Sapru Committee recommendation of the Head of
State (or President as the high office came to be designated) acting on his/her
own and yet the President not having unfettered discretion in the
appointment of judges.
31.
32.
600
Assembly on the same day. Although the decision of the Drafting Committee
was to insert clause (5)a in Article 62 of the Draft Constitution and
simultaneously delete a part of clause (2) of Article 103 of the Draft
Constitution, the amendment relating to the deletion of clause (2) of Article
103 of the Draft Constitution was apparently not moved by Dr. Ambedkar. It
is not clear why. As far as the Instrument of Instructions is concerned, it is
pointed out by Granville Austin that it was not actually, but implicitly,
adopted by the Constituent Assembly.217
33.
subsequent debate in the Constituent Assembly that took place on 23rd and
24th May, 1949 when Article 103 of the Draft Constitution was considered
and debated in the Constituent Assembly. It needs to be emphasized at this
stage that when the debate took place on 23rd and 24th May, 1949 it was in the
217
601
backdrop of the fact that clause (5)a had already been inserted in Article 62
of the Draft Constitution to the effect that in respect of several matters,
including the appointment of judges, the President would act in his/her
individual capacity and the Council of Ministers was not even in the picture.
The debate will be referred to a little later.
35.
602
at all. He has to act on the advice of the Prime Minister in the matter of
the selection of Members of the Cabinet. He has also to act on the advice
of the Prime Minister and his Ministers of State with respect to any
particular executive or legislative action that he takes. That being so,
supposing the Prime Minister does not propose, for any special reason or
circumstances, to include in his Cabinet members of the minority
community, there is nothing which the Governor can do, notwithstanding
the fact that we shall be charging him through this particular Instrument of
Instructions to act in a particular manner. It is therefore felt, having regard
under the Constitution who can enforce this, that no such directions should
be given. They are useless and can serve no particular purpose. Therefore,
it was felt in the circumstances it is not desirable to have such Instrument
of Instructions which really can be effective in a different set of
circumstances which can by no stretch of imagination be deemed to exist
after the new Constitution comes into existence. That is the principal
reason why it is felt that this Instrument of Instructions is undesirable.218
37.
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol10p4.htm
603
and the judiciary know their functions, their limitations and their duties. It
is therefore to be expected that if the executive is honest in working the
Constitution, then the executive is bound to obey the Legislature without
any kind of compulsory obligation laid down in the Constitution.
Similarly, if the executive is honest in working the Constitution, it must act
in accordance with the judicial decisions given by the Supreme Court.
Therefore my submission is that this is a matter of one organ of the State
acting within its own limitations and obeying the supremacy of the other
organs of the State. In so far as the Constitution gives a supremacy to that
is a matter of constitutional obligation which is implicit in the Constitution
itself.
I remember, Sir, that you raised this question and I looked it up and I had
with me two decisions of the King's Bench Division which I wanted one
day to bring here and refer in the House so as to make the point quite clear.
But I am sorry I had no notice today of this point being raised. But this is
the answer to the question that has been raised.
No constitutional Government can function in any country unless any
particular constitutional authority remembers the fact that its authority is
limited by the Constitution and that if there is any authority created by the
Constitution which has to decide between that particular authority and any
other authority, then the decision of that authority shall be binding upon
any other organ. That is the sanction which this Constitution gives in order
to see that the President shall follow the advice of his Ministers, that the
executive shall not exceed in its executive authority the law made by
Parliament and that the executive shall not give its own interpretation of
the law which is in conflict with the interpretation of the judicial organ
created by the Constitution.
Shri H V. Kamath : If in any particular case the President does not act upon
the advice of his Council of Ministers, will that be tantamount to a
violation of the Constitution and will he be liable to impeachment ?
The Honourable Dr. B. R. Ambedkar: There is not the slightest doubt about
it.219
Transposing this to the relationship between the Judiciary and the Executive,
it is quite clear that Dr. Ambedkar and indeed the Constituent Assembly was
219
220
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol10p7c.htm
Indian Constitution Cornerstone of a Nation, pages 138-139
604
(for short the CAD) to which our attention was drawn refer to the
appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court and not specifically to the
appointment of a judge of a High Court. But the sum and substance of the
debate is equally applicable to the appointment of a judge of a High Court.
40.
605
606
Courts in India.221
Mr. Mahboob Ali Baig Sahib (Madras: Muslim) moved a somewhat similar
amendment. The reason given by Mr. Mahboob Ali Baig Sahib was:
Under our proposed constitution the President would be the constitutional
Head of the executive. And the constitution envisages what is called a
parliamentary democracy. So the President would be guided by the Prime
Minister or the Council of Ministers who are necessarily drawn from a
political party. Therefore the decision of the President would be
necessarily influenced by party considerations. It is therefore necessary
that the concurrence of the Chief Justice is made a pre-requisite for the
appointment of a Judge of the Supreme Court in order to guard ourselves
against party influences that may be brought to bear upon the appointment
of Judges.222
41.
views and perception of different persons on the exact role of the President
in the process of appointment of judges. Is the President expected to act on
the advice of the Council of Ministers or in his/her personal capacity?
43.
One view, as expressed by Dr. Ambedkar was that the President would
be guided by the Council of Ministers. The other view or perception was that
with the insertion of clause (5)a in Article 62 of the Draft Constitution and
Schedule III-A the President was to act in his/her individual capacity and not
be guided by the Council of Ministers since the executive was to be kept
221
222
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol8p7a.htm
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol8p7a.htm
607
completely out of the appointment process. It is not clear which of the two
views found favour with Mr. B. Pocker Sahib and Mr. Mahboob Ali Baig
Sahib but both were clear that the President could be put under political or
party pressure in the recommendation of a person for appointment and that
this should be avoided and the pressure could be negated by the requirement
of the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India, an impartial person.
44.
But what is more significant is that Mr. B. Pocker Sahib and Mr.
608
with the concurrence of the Senate in the United States. It seems to me in
the circumstances in which we live today, where the sense of responsibility
has not grown to the same extent to which we find it in the United States, it
would be dangerous to leave the appointments to be made by the President,
without any kind of reservation or limitation, that is to say, merely on the
advice of the executive of the day. Similarly, it seems to me that to make
every appointment which the executive wishes to make subject to the
concurrence of the Legislature is also not a very suitable provision. Apart
from its being cumbrous, it also involves the possibility of the appointment
being influenced by political pressure and political considerations. The
draft article, therefore, steers a middle course. It does not make the
President the supreme and the absolute authority in the matter of making
appointments. It does not also import the influence of the Legislature. The
provision in the article is that there should be consultation of persons who
are ex hypothesi, well qualified to give proper advice in matters of this
sort, and my judgment is that this sort of provision may be regarded as
sufficient for the moment.
With regard to the question of the concurrence of the Chief Justice, it
seems to me that those who advocate that proposition seem to rely
implicitly both on the impartiality of the Chief Justice and the soundness
of his judgment. I personally feel no doubt that the Chief Justice is a very
eminent person. But after all the Chief Justice is a man with all the
failings, all the sentiments and all the prejudices which we as common
people have; and I think, to allow the Chief Justice practically a veto upon
the appointment of judges is really to transfer the authority to the Chief
Justice which we are not prepared to vest in the President or the
Government of the day. I, therefore, think that is also a dangerous
proposition.223
46.
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol8p7b.htm
609
47.
If this dichotomy between the role of the President and the executive
and the binding or non-binding effect of the advice of the executive on the
President is appreciated, the views of Dr. Ambedkar become very clear. He
was quite clear that the executive was not to have primacy in the
appointment process nor did he want the President to have unfettered
discretion to accept or reject the advice of the executive or act on his/her
own. As far as the concurrence of the Legislature is concerned, Dr.
Ambedkar felt that the process would be cumbrous with the possibility of
political pressure and considerations. It is in this context that Dr. Ambedkar
said that he was steering a middle course and was not prepared to grant a
veto to the President (rejecting the advice of the executive or acting on
his/her own) in the appointment of judges, executive primacy having already
been rejected by him. Under the circumstances, he felt that this sort of
provision [consultation with the Chief Justice of India] may be regarded as
sufficient for the moment.
48.
610
49.
Dr. Ambedkar was of the view that neither the President nor the
Government of the day (the executive) nor the Chief Justice of India should
have the final word in the matter of the appointment of judges. Who then
would have the final say in the event of a difference of opinion between the
President or the Government of the day or the Chief Justice of India on the
appointment of a particular person as a judge? Dr. Ambedkar did not directly
address this question since he did not visualize a stalemate arising in this
regard.
50.
51.
Times have changed dramatically since then and far from disputes
very rarely arising between citizens and the Government, today the
Government is unashamedly the biggest litigant in the country. It has been
224
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol8p7b.htm
611
52.
Given this fact situation, since there was this reason in 1949 to
insulate the judiciary and the appointment process from the direct or indirect
influence of the executive and political or party pressures, there is all the
more reason to do so today if the independence of the judiciary is to be
maintained.
53.
In England too the executive is the most frequent litigator and the
Summation
225
612
54.
613
The issue of the appointment of judges of the Supreme Court and the
High Courts was first addressed, after Independence, in the 14 th Report of the
Law Commission of India (for short the LCI), then in the 80 th Report and
finally in the 121st Report. (A reference was made in the 214 th Report and the
230th Report but they are of no immediate consequence). The issue also came
to be addressed in S.P. Gupta v. Union of India229 and in Subhash Sharma
v. Union of India.230 It was also the subject matter of three Constitution
amendment Bills and two other pronouncements of this Court rendered by
larger Benches. This is mentioned only to highlight the complexity of the
229
230
614
issue and the constant search for some stability and certainty in the
appointment process in relation to the independence of the judiciary. It has
been said with regard to the selection of judges in the United States, and this
would equally apply to our country:
It is fairly certain that no single subject has consumed as many pages in
law reviews and law-related publications over the past 50 years as the
subject of judicial selection.231
for
some
sad
reading,
more
particularly
since
the
Attorney-General for India was the Chair of the LCI. 232 It must be noted
here that the LCI travelled through the length and breadth of the
country for about one year and examined as many as 473 witnesses
from a cross-section of society before giving its Report. It also adopted
a novel procedure of co-opting two members from the States that were
visited so as to understand the local problems. The monumental and
authoritative work can only be admired.
57.
231
Lee Epstein, Jack Knight & Olga Shvetsova, Comparing Judicial Selection Systems, 10 WM & MARY
BILL RTS J. 7, n.9 (2001) (quoting Philip Dubois).
232
The Report is titled Reforms of the Judicial Administration
615
60.
On the basis of its findings, the LCI recommended, inter alia, that
Chapter 5 paragraph 5
Chapter 5 paragraph 6
616
judges to the High Courts makes for equally sad reading. The inadequacies
in the appointments made were pointed out as: (1) The selections have been
unsatisfactory and induced by executive influence. (2) There is no
recognizable principle for making the appointments and considerations of
political expediency or regional or communal sentiments have played a role.
(3) Merit has been ignored in making appointments.
62.
It was said that these inadequacies were well founded and there was
Chapter 6 paragraph 8
617
63.
Court and the administrative working of Article 217 of the Constitution, the
LCI had this to say:
The Chief Justice forwards his recommendation to the Chief Minister
who in turn forwards this recommendation in consultation with the
Governor to the Minister of Home Affairs in the Central Government. If,
however, the Chief Minister does not agree with the recommendation of
the Chief Justice, he makes his own recommendation. It appears that in
such a case, the Chief Justice is given an opportunity for making his
comments on the recommendation made by the Chief Minister. This
practice is not, however, invariably followed so that, in some cases it
happens that the recommendation made by the Chief Minister does not
come to the knowledge of the Chief Justice. The rival recommendations
are then forwarded to the Minister of Home Affairs who, in consultation
with the Chief Justice of India, advises the President as to the selection to
be made. The person recommended by the Chief Minister may be, and
occasionally is, selected in preference to the person recommended by the
Chief Justice.236
64.
The LCI recorded that no less a personage than the Chief Justice of
65.
have influenced the appointments and that there seems to be canvassing for
236
237
Chapter 6 paragraph 11
Chapter 6 paragraph 14
618
66.
amongst others:
(8) Many unsatisfactory appointments have been made to the High Courts
on political regional and communal or other grounds with the result that
the fittest men have not been appointed. This has resulted in a diminution
in the out-turn of work of the Judges.
(9) These unsatisfactory appointments have been made notwithstanding the
fact that in the vast majority of cases, appointments have been concurred in
by the Chief Justice of the High Court and the Chief Justice of India.
(10) Consultation with the State executive is necessary before
appointments are made to the High Court.
(11) While it should be open to the State executive to express its own
opinion on a name proposed by the Chief Justice, it should not be open to it
to propose a nominee of its own and forward it to the Centre.
(12) The role of the State executive should be confined to making its
remarks about the nominee proposed by the Chief Justice and if necessary
asking the Chief Justice to make a fresh recommendation.
(14) Article 217 of the Constitution should be amended to provide that a
Judge of a High Court should be appointed only on the recommendation of
the Chief Justice of that State and with the concurrence of the Chief Justice
of India.239
67.
suggested, for the High Courts, that Article 217 of the Constitution ought to
be amended to incorporate the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India to
the appointment. This recommendation was made so that, in future, no
appointment could be made without the concurrence of the Chief Justice of
238
239
619
India.
68.
November, 1959 and the Government of the day gave its point of view, as
did several Honble Members. But what is more important is that in the
debate on 24th November, 1959 it was stated by Shri Govind Ballabh Pant,
Honble Minister of Home Affairs that since 1950, as many as 211 judges
were appointed to the High Courts and out of these except one were made
on the advice, with the consent and concurrence of the Chief Justice of India.
And out of the 211, 196 proposals which were accepted by the Government
had the support of all persons who were connected with this matter.240
69.
70.
On the next day, that is, 25th November, 1959 Shri A.K. Sen, Minister
240
241
Page 287
Page 288-289
620
accepted the advice of the Chief Justice of the High Court (not the Chief
Minister) rather than the advice of the Chief Justice of India.
71.
The 80th Report of the LCI was submitted on 10 th August, 1979 and it
was mainly prepared by Justice H.R. Khanna when he was its Chair.242
74.
Although Justice H.R. Khanna did not sign the Report, it had his full concurrence
621
improper appointment is felt not only for the time being but its repercussions
are felt long thereafter.243
75.
Supreme Court, it was concluded that (1) Only persons who enjoy the
highest reputation for independence, dispassionate approach and detachment
should be elevated to the Supreme Court. (2) No one should be appointed a
judge of the Supreme Court unless he has severed affiliations with political
parties for at least 7 (seven) years. (3) A person should be appointed as a
judge if he has distinguished himself for his independence, dispassionate
approach and freedom from political prejudice, bias or leaning.244
76.
in that the Chief Justice of India should consult his three senior-most
colleagues while making a recommendation for an appointment. He should
reproduce their views while making the recommendation. This would
minimize the chances of any possible arbitrariness or favouritism.245
77.
622
79.
judge of the High Court. It was suggested that the Chief Justice should, when
making a recommendation, consult his two senior-most colleagues and
indicate their views in writing. This would have a healthy effect and
considerably minimize the chances of possible favoritism. It was opined that
any recommendation of the Chief Justice which is concurred with by the two
senior-most judges should normally be accepted. The LCI was, in principle,
against the selection of persons as judges of the High Court on grounds or
considerations of religion, caste or region.
80.
Paragraph 5.9
623
been taken after due consideration, we need not say anything further in the
matter.248
81.
82.
Generally speaking, the LCI was of the view that the constitutional
It is important to note that this Report was prepared after the decision
of this Court in S.P. Gupta. In its 121st Report, the LCI noted that over the
last four decades, mounting dissatisfaction has been voiced over the method
248
249
Paragraph 6.14
Chapter 9
624
and strategy of selection and the selectees to man the superior judiciary.250
Further, in paragraph 7.1 of its Report, the LCI noted that Everyone is
agreed that the present scheme or model or mechanism for recruitment to
superior judiciary has failed to deliver the goods. This was with reference to
the executive primacy theory in the appointment of judges propounded in
S.P. Gupta. In view of this the LCI recommended a new broad-based model
called a National Judicial Service Commission.251
84.
The LCI observed that two models were available for the appointment
of judges. The first was the existing model which conferred overriding
powers on the executive in selecting and appointing judges. But, Article 50
of the Constitution mandates a separation between the Executive and the
Judiciary. The second model involved diluting (not excluding) the authority
of the executive by associating more people in the decision making process
and setting up a body in which the judiciary has a pre-eminent position. This
participatory model was called by the LCI as the National Judicial Service
Commission.
85.
the Chief Justice of India whose pre-eminent position should not be diluted
at all, his predecessor in office, three senior-most judges of the Supreme
Court, three Chief Justices of the High Courts in order of their seniority, the
Law Minister, the Attorney-General for India and an outstanding law
250
251
625
academic. Thus, an 11 (eleven) member body was proposed by the LCI for
the selection and appointment of judges of the Supreme Court and the High
Courts. To give effect to the recommendation, it was proposed to suitably
amend the Constitution.252
86.
was held with the Chief Justice of India in the Chair. The Conference
discussed, inter alia, issues relating to arrears of cases in the High Courts and
the District Courts in the country. Grave concern was expressed over the
problem of arrears and it was pointed out by most Chief Justices that delay in
the appointment of judges is responsible for the arrears. Even after
recommendations are sent, the Chief Justice has to wait for a long time for
the Government to make the appointment with the result that for a number of
years Courts have been working with about 50% of their strength.
88.
626
Chief Justice P.D. Desai (Calcutta High Court) and Chief Justice Dr. A.S.
Anand (Madras High Court). The Arrears Committee gave its Report in two
volumes to the Conference of Chief Justices held between 31st August and 2nd
September, 1990 which accepted the Reports, subject to a few modifications.
89.
The Arrears Committee also considered the Report given in the recent
past by the Satish Chandra Committee which was of the confirmed view that
some judges have not been directly recommended by the Chief Justice of the
High Court but have been foisted on the High Court and that if this trend
continued, it would be very difficult for the Chief Justice to effectively
transact the judicial business of the Court.254
253
254
Paragraph 5.1
Paragraph 5.4
627
91.
Thereafter, the selection of a judge of the High Court for reasons other
92.
and for the people to have faith and confidence in it, the appointment of
judges should be made only on considerations of merit, suitability, integrity
and capability and not on political expediency or regional or communal
sentiments. It was observed in this regard as follows:
This Committee is of the firm view that to ensure that the judicial system
functions effectively and to maintain both the quality and quantity of
judicial work, as well as the faith and confidence of the public, the
appointments be made only on considerations of merit, suitability, integrity
and capability and not of political expediency or regional or communal
sentiments. The apprehension that the recommendation made by him may
255
628
not meet with the approval of the executive, may sometimes induce a
Chief Justice to propose the name of a person who does not measure upto
the requisite standard, which is rather unfortunate. It is fundamental for
the preservation of the independence of the judiciary that it be free from
threats and pressures from any quarter. It is the duty of the State to ensure
that the judiciary occupies, and is seen to occupy, such position in the
polity that it can effectively perform the functions entrusted to it by the
Constitution and that can be done only if the process of appointment is left
unpolluted. 256
93.
94.
time for the appointment of judges, the Arrears Committee was rather
scathing in its observations to the effect that there had been cases where
there was agreement between the Chief Justice of India, the Chief Justice of
the concerned High Court and the Governor of the State but the Union Law
256
257
Paragraph 5.8
Paragraph 6.11
629
95.
of the role of the executive and measures to avoid the existing system of
appointment from being perverted. It was recommended as follows:
258
Paragraph 6.9
630
The role of the executive in the matter of appointment of judges should be
diluted and that the cause for most of the ills in the functioning of the
present system could be traced back to the veto power of the executive.
This, indeed, is capable of being remedied by making certain amendments
to Article 217 providing for concurrence of the Chief Justice of India,
instead of consultation with him, in the matter of appointment of Judges of
the High Courts.259
The Committee is of the view that the present constitutional scheme
which was framed by the founding fathers after great deliberation and
much reflection is intrinsically sound and that it worked in the true spirit it
does not require any radical change. In order to guard against and obviate
the perversion revealed in the operation of the scheme, the Committee has
made suitable recommendations. The Committee believes that if these
recommendations are given effect to, there would not be any need to
substitute it by a different mechanism.260
96.
judges where the executive had the ultimate power 261 which was being
abused and perverted to take away the independence of the judiciary,
contrary to the intention of the Constituent Assembly, there was no option
but to have a fresh look into the entire issue of appointment of judges and
that eventually led to the issue being referred in the early 1990s to a Bench
of 9 (nine) judges of this Court. Quite clearly, the executive had made a mess
of the appointment of judges, taken steps to subvert the independence of the
judiciary, gone against the grain of the views of the Constituent Assembly
and acted in a manner that a responsible executive ought not to.
97.
Post Independence till the early 1990s, the judiciary saw the slow but
Paragraph 124
Paragraph 130
261
This expression was used by Justice Bhagwati and by Justice D.A. Desai in paragraph 719 of S.P. Gupta
v. Union of India.
260
631
occasions when the executive completely by-passed the Chief Justice of the
High Court and directly recommended persons to the Union Government for
appointment as judges. The third stratagem adopted by the executive was to
withhold recommendations made by the Chief Justice and instead forward its
own recommendation to the Union Government. The fourth method was to
reopen approved recommendations on some pretext or the other. The fifth
method was to delay processing a recommendation made by the Chief
Justice.
98.
Tragically, almost all the appointments made during this period had
632
99.
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol11p12.htm
633
depends on something positive - the judicial pursuit of the justice of the
law. One has to ask not only what judges have to be shielded from in order
to be independent, but what we want them to be independent for.263
102. This review indicates that one of the important features of the Rule of
Law and the independence of the judiciary is the appointment process. It is,
therefore, necessary to objectively appreciate the evolution of the
appointment process post Independence and how the Judiciary understood it.
Judicial pronouncements
103. The question of the appointment of judges (mainly of the High Courts)
came up for consideration in this Court on three occasions. The decision
rendered in each of these cases is not only of considerable importance but
also indicates the complexity in the appointment of judges and the struggle
by the Bar to maintain the independence of the judiciary from executive
interference and encroachment. These three cases are referred to as the First
Judges case,264 the Second Judges case265 and the Third Judges case.266
There have been other significant pronouncements on the subject and they
will be considered at the appropriate stage.
First judges case 30.12.1981
104. The First Judges case is important for several reasons, but I am
concerned with a few of them. These are: (1) The independence of the
263
Judicial Independence, Transitional Justice and the Rule of Law by David Dyzenhaus, (2001-2004) 10
Otago L Rev 345 at 345-346
264
S.P. Gupta v. Union of India, 1981 Supp SCC 87 (Seven Judges Bench)
265
Supreme Court Advocates-on-Record Association v. Union of India, (1993) 4 SCC 441 (Nine Judges
Bench)
266
Special Reference No. 1 of 1998, (1998) 7 SCC 739 (Nine Judges Bench)
634
judiciary was held to be a part of the basic feature of the Constitution. 267 This
was the first judgment to so hold.
(2) The appointment of a judge is serious business and is recognized
as a very vital component of the independence of the judiciary. What is
necessary is to have Judges who are prepared to fashion new tools, forge
new methods, innovate new strategies and evolve a new jurisprudence, who
are judicial statesmen with a social vision and a creative faculty and who
have, above all, a deep sense of commitment to the Constitution with an
activist approach and obligation for accountability, not to any party in power
nor to the opposition nor to the classes which are vociferous but to the
half-hungry millions of India who are continually denied their basic human
rights. We need Judges who are alive to the socio-economic realities of
Indian life, who are anxious to wipe every tear from every eye, who have
faith in the constitutional values and who are ready to use law as an
instrument for achieving the constitutional objectives. This has to be the
broad blueprint of the appointment project for the higher echelons of judicial
service. It is only if appointments of Judges are made with these
considerations weighing predominantly with the appointing authority that we
can have a truly independent judiciary committed only to the Constitution
and to the people of India. 268 Justice Venkataramiah, however, was of the
view that the independence of the judiciary is relatable only to
267
268
Paragraphs 27, 320 and 634. This view has been upheld in several decisions thereafter.
Paragraph 27
635
269
Paragraph 1033
Paragraph 30 and paragraph 890
271
Paragraphs 30, 632 and 848
272
Paragraph 30
273
Paragraph 30
270
636
106. The majority view in the First Judges case was overruled in the
Second Judges case and it was held that consultation in Article 217 and
Article 124 of the Constitution meant that primacy in the appointment of
274
Paragraph 30 and 31
(1977) 4 SCC 1993 (Five Judges Bench)
276
AIR 1953 Mad 392
277
Paragraph 30
275
637
judges must rest with the Chief Justice of India. 278 The evolution of the
collegium system and a Judicial Commission will be discussed a little later,
although it must be noted that the seeds thereof were sown (apart from the
Reports of the LCI) in the First Judges case.
107. I do not think it necessary to further discuss the First Judges case
since it has been elaborately considered by Justice Khehar.
Subhash Sharmas case
108. In a writ petition filed in this Court praying for filling up the vacancies
of judges in the Supreme Court and several High Courts of the country, a
three judge Bench was of the view that the First Judges case required
reconsideration.279 It was observed that the decision of the majority not only
rejects the primacy of the Chief Justice of India but also whittles down the
significance of consultation.
109. It was noted that the Constitution (Sixty-seventh Amendment) Bill,
1990 was pending consideration in Parliament and that the Statement of
Objects and Reasons for the Amendment Act acknowledged that there was
criticism of the existing system of appointment of judges (where the
executive had the primacy) and that this needed change, hence the need for
an Amendment Act.280
110. On the issue of executive interference in the appointment of judges,
the Bench found that interference went to the extent of impermissibly
278
I entirely agree with Justice Chelameswar when he says that the Second Judges case did not hold that
consultation means concurrence.
279
Subhash Sharma v. Union of India, 1991 Supp (1) SCC 574
280
Paragraph 27
638
111. Apart from the above, the Bench was of the view that the
interpretation given by the majority in the First Judges case to consultation
was not correctly appreciated in the constitutional scheme. It was also felt
that the role of the institution of the Chief Justice of India in the
constitutional scheme had been denuded in the First Judges case. Keeping
all these factors in mind, particularly the functioning of the appointment
process and the acknowledgement of the Union Government that a change
was needed, it was observed:
The view taken by Bhagwati, J., Fazal Ali, J., Desai, J., and
Venkataramiah, J., to which we will presently advert, in our opinion, not
281
Paragraph 28
639
only seriously detracts from and denudes the primacy of the position,
implicit in the constitutional scheme, of the Chief Justice of India in the
consultative process but also whittles down the very significance of
consultation as required to be understood in the constitutional scheme
and context. This bears both on the substance and the process of the
constitutional scheme.. Consistent with the constitutional purpose and
process it becomes imperative that the role of the institution of the Chief
Justice of India be recognised as of crucial importance in the matter of
appointments to the Supreme Court and the High Courts of the States. We
are of the view that this aspect dealt with in Gupta case requires
reconsideration by a larger bench.282
112. The issues for consideration of a larger Bench were then formulated in
the following words:
The points which require to be reconsidered relate to and arise from the
views of the majority opinion touching the very status of consultation
generally and in particular with reference to consultation with Chief
Justice of India and, secondly, as to the primacy of the role of the Chief
Justice of India. The content and quality of consultation may perhaps vary
in different situations in the interaction between the executive and the
judicial organs of the State and some aspects may require clarification.283
113. It was also observed that a view was expressed in the First Judges
case that the government of the State could initiate a proposal for the
appointment of a judge but that the proposal could not be sent directly to the
Union Government, but should first be sent to the Chief Justice of the High
Court.284 Notwithstanding this clear exposition, the procedure was being
distorted by the executive and a proposal for the appointment of judge of the
High Court was being sent directly to the Union Government. It was said in
this regard:
But it has been mentioned that a practice is sought to be developed where
the executive government of the State sends up the proposals directly to
the Centre without reference to the Chief Justice of the State. This is a
distortion of the constitutional scheme and is wholly impermissible. So far
as the executive is concerned, the right to initiate an appointment should
282
Paragraph 31
Paragraph 32
284
Paragraph 728 of the First Judges case
283
640
be limited to suggesting appropriate names to the Chief Justice of the High
Courts or the Chief Justice of India. If the recommendation is to emanate
directly from a source other than that of the Chief Justices of the High
Courts in the case of the High Courts and the Chief Justice of India in the
case of both the High Courts and the Supreme Court it would be difficult
for an appropriate selection to be made. It has been increasingly felt over
the decades that there has been an anxiety on the part of the government of
the day to assert its choice in the ultimate selection of Judges. If the power
to recommend would vest in the State Government or even the Central
Government, the picture is likely to be blurred and the process of selection
ultimately may turn out to be difficult.285
114. By-passing the Chief Justice of the High Court in the matter of
recommending a person for appointment as a judge of the High Court was an
unhealthy practice that the political executive of the State was trying to
establish since around the time of Independence. This subterfuge was
deprecated on more than one occasion, as noticed above.
115. Another practice that the political executive was trying to establish
was to recommend persons for appointment as a judge of the High Court to
the Chief Justice of that High Court. In this context, it was also stated in
Subhash Sharma (as quoted above) that: It has been increasingly felt over
the decades that there has been an anxiety on the part of the government of
the day to assert its choice in the ultimate selection of Judges. 286 This
unequivocally indicates that the malaise of executive interference in
appointing judges to the superior judiciary, first highlighted in the
Memorandum emanating from the Chief Justices Conference and then by the
LCI in its 14th Report, continued in some form or the other through the entire
period from Independence till the early 1990s. In addition, the
285
286
Paragraph 34
Paragraph 34
641
642
bring about a change was made and so a Constitution Amendment Bill was
introduced in Parliament, but it lapsed.
118. In the Second Judges case it was held by Justice Pandian: (1) The
selection and appointment of a proper and fit candidate to the superior
judiciary is one of the inseparable and vital conditions for securing the
independence of the judiciary.287 The erroneous appointment of an
unsuitable person is bound to produce irreparable damage to the faith of the
community in the administration of justice and to inflict serious injury to the
public interest...288
judiciary is the separation between the executive and the judiciary (including
the superior judiciary)289 postulated by Article 50 of the Constitution. 290 (3)
The Memorandum of Procedure for the selection and appointment of judges
filed by the Union of India along with the written submissions relating to the
pre First Judges case period and the extant procedure as mentioned in the
121st Report of the LCI relating to the post First Judges case period are
more or less the same. They indicate that the recommendation for filling up a
vacancy in the Supreme Court is initiated by the Chief Justice of India and
the recommendation for filling up a vacancy in the High Court is initiated by
the Chief Justice of the High Court. The Chief Minister of a State may
recommend a person for filling up a vacancy in the High Court, but that is to
287
Paragraph 49
Paragraph 63
289
Paragraph 81
290
50. Separation of judiciary from executive - The State shall take steps to separate the judiciary from the
executive in the public services of the State.
288
643
be routed only through the Chief Justice of the High Court. 291 (4) Reiterating
the view expressed in Sankalchand Sheth and the First Judges case it was
held that for the purposes of consultation, the materials before the President
and the Chief Justice of India must be identical. 292 (5) For the appointment of
a judge of the Supreme Court (under Article 124(2) of the Constitution) or a
judge of a High Court (under Article 217(1) of the Constitution) consultation
with the Chief Justice of India is mandatory.293 (6) In the process of
constitutional consultation in selecting judges to the Supreme Court or the
High Court and transfer of judges of the High Court, the opinion of the Chief
Justice of India is entitled to primacy.294 (7) Agreeing with the majority
opinion written by Justice J.S. Verma, it was held that if there are weighty
and cogent reasons for not accepting the recommendation of the Chief
Justice of India for the appointment of a judge, then the appointment may not
be made. However, if the weighty and cogent reasons are not acceptable to
the Chief Justice of India, and the recommendation is reiterated, then the
appointment shall be made.295 (8) The majority opinion in the First Judges
case regarding the primacy of the executive in the matter of appointment of
judges was overruled.296
119. Justice Ahmadi dissented with the opinion of the majority and
concluded: (1) Judicial independence is ingrained in our constitutional
291
Paragraphs 95 to 99. Though such a practice exists and is accepted, there have been some aberrations in
this regard as mentioned in the 14th Report of the LCI and in the Conference of Chief Justices.
292
Paragraph 164
293
Paragraph 172
294
Paragraph 197 and 209
295
Paragraph 212
296
Paragraph 254
644
scheme and Article 50 of the Constitution illuminates it. 297 (2) The First
Judges case was not required to be overruled but on the question of primacy
in the matter of appointment of judges, the opinion of the Chief Justice of
India is entitled to graded weight.298
120. Justice Kuldip Singh agreed with the majority and laid great stress on
constitutional conventions that had evolved over several decades. The
learned judge held: (1) Security of tenure is not the only source of
independence of the judiciary but there has to be an independent judiciary
as an institution.299 (2) Independence of the judiciary is inextricably linked
and connected with the constitutional process of appointment of judges of
the higher judiciary. There cannot be an independent judiciary when the
power of appointment of judges vests in the executive. 300 (3) The President is
bound by the advice given by the Council of Ministers. 301 (4) A constitutional
convention is established since the Government of India Act, 1935 (I would
add the words at least) that the appointment of judges was invariably made
with the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India. The opinion and
recommendation of the Chief Justice of India in the matter of appointment of
judges binds the executive.302 (5) In the matter of appointment of judges,
297
Paragraph 313
Paragraph 303 and 313. It was observed in paragraph 303: If the President has to act on the aid and
advice of the Council of Ministers it is difficult to hold that he is bound by the opinion of the Chief Justice
of India unless we hold that the Council of Ministers including the Prime Minister would be bound by the
opinion of the Chief Justice of India, a construction which to our mind is too artificial and strained to
commend acceptance.
299
Paragraph 334
300
Paragraph 335
301
Paragraph 277, 356, 383 and 411
302
Paragraph 359, 371,373 and 376. The figures relating to the appointment of judges have been mentioned
in paragraphs 367 and 369.
298
645
646
September 1985 and one in March 1991, out of a total of 547
appointments made during this period.
It is thus obvious from the facts and figures given by the executive itself
that in actual practice the recommendations of the Chief Justice of India
have invariably been accepted.306
122. Justice Verma speaking for the majority held: (1) Independence of the
judiciary has to be safeguarded not only by providing security of tenure and
other conditions of service, but also by preventing political considerations in
making appointments of judges to the superior judiciary.307
(2) In the matter of appointment of judges, primacy was given to the
executive in the Government of India Act, 1919 and the Government of India
Act, 1935 but in the constitutional scheme, primacy of the executive is
excluded.308
(3) The Chief Justice of India and the Chief Justice of the High Court
are best equipped to know and assess the worth of a candidate, and his
suitability for appointment as a superior judge. In the event of a difference
of opinion between the executive and the judiciary, the opinion of the Chief
Justice of India should have the greatest weight. [This echoed Dr.
Ambedkars view that consultation would be between persons who are well
qualified to give advice in matters of this sort.] Therefore, since primacy is
not with the executive, then in such a situation, it must lie with the Chief
Justice of India.309 This certainly does not exclude the executive from the
appointment process. The executive might be aware (unlike a Chief Justice)
306
647
Paragraph 462
Paragraph 478(7)
312
Paragraph 456 and 466
313
Paragraph 478(8)
314
Paragraph 478(7)
311
648
consultation with the Chief Justice of India or the Chief Justice of the High
Court is mandatory.315
(6) The President in Articles 124(2) and 217(1) of the Constitution
means the President acting in accordance with the advice of the Council of
Ministers with the Prime Minister at the head.316
(7) The advice given by the Council of Ministers to the President
should be in accord with the Constitution. Such an advice is binding on the
President. Since the opinion of the Chief Justice of India (representing the
Judiciary) has finality, the advice of the Council of Ministers to the President
must be in accordance with the opinion of the Chief Justice of India.317
(8) The convention is that the appointment process is initiated by the
Chief Justice of India for the appointment of a judge to the Supreme Court
and by the Chief Justice of the High Court for the appointment of a judge to
the High Court. There is no reason to depart from this convention.318
(9) The law laid down in the First Judges case is not the correct
view.319
123. In his otherwise dissenting opinion, Justice Punchhi supported the
view taken by Justice Verma to the extent that the executive could not
disapprove the views of the Chief Justice of India or the views of the Chief
Justice of the High Court (as the case may be) when a recommendation is
315
Paragraph 448
Paragraph 457
317
Paragraph 457 and 476
318
Paragraph 478(10) and 486(2)
319
Paragraph 486
316
649
Paragraph 500
650
Justice, despite his eminence, had all the failings, sentiments and prejudices
of common people. The apprehension or fear that Dr. Ambedkar had in this
regard in case the Chief Justice of India were to act in an individual or
personal capacity was now buried.321 A somewhat similar norm was laid
down for consultation for the appointment of a judge of the High Court. This
is what was said:
This opinion has to be formed in a pragmatic manner and past practice
based on convention is a safe guide. In matters relating to appointments in
the Supreme Court, the opinion given by the Chief Justice of India in the
consultative process has to be formed taking into account the views of the
two seniormost Judges of the Supreme Court. The Chief Justice of India is
also expected to ascertain the views of the senior-most Judge of the
Supreme Court whose opinion is likely to be significant in adjudging the
suitability of the candidate, by reason of the fact that he has come from the
same High Court, or otherwise. Article 124(2) is an indication that
ascertainment of the views of some other Judges of the Supreme Court is
requisite. The object underlying Article 124(2) is achieved in this manner
as the Chief Justice of India consults them for the formation of his opinion.
This provision in Article 124(2) is the basis for the existing convention
which requires the Chief Justice of India to consult some Judges of the
Supreme Court before making his recommendation. This ensures that the
opinion of the Chief Justice of India is not merely his individual opinion,
but an opinion formed collectively by a body of men at the apex level in
the judiciary.
In matters relating to appointments in the High Courts, the Chief Justice of
India is expected to take into account the views of his colleagues in the
Supreme Court who are likely to be conversant with the affairs of the
concerned High Court. The Chief Justice of India may also ascertain the
views of one or more senior Judges of that High Court whose opinion,
according to the Chief Justice of India, is likely to be significant in the
formation of his opinion. The opinion of the Chief Justice of the High
Court would be entitled to the greatest weight, and the opinion of the other
functionaries involved must be given due weight, in the formation of the
opinion of the Chief Justice of India. The opinion of the Chief Justice of
the High Court must be formed after ascertaining the views of at least the
two seniormost Judges of the High Court.322
126.
According to the learned Attorney-General, this would have made Dr. Ambedkar turn in his grave. Not
so and quite to the contrary.
322
Paragraph 478(1)
651
323
324
Paragraph 478(5)
Paragraph 478(7)
652
128. The norms took the form of conclusions that became binding on the
Judiciary and the Executive. It is not necessary to reproduce the conclusions
arrived at.
129. An important aspect of the appointment process, which was adverted
to
by
Justice
Verma,
is
the
constitutional
convention
that
the
653
judge of the High Court. Be that as it may, the majority view expressed in the
Second Judges case restored the constitutional position envisaged by Dr.
Ambedkar by diluting the individual authority of the Chief Justice of India
and conferring it on a collegium of judges, which is perhaps in consonance
with the views of Dr. Ambedkar.
130. According to the learned Attorney-General, these conclusions turned
Article 124(2) and Article 217(1) of the Constitution on their head and even
Justice Verma, the author of the judgment felt that the decision required a
rethink. The reference was to an interview given by Justice Verma post his
retirement. In that, it was said by Justice Verma:
My 1993 judgment which holds the field, was very much misunderstood
and misused. It was in that context that I said the working of the judgment
now for some time is raising serious questions, which cannot be called
unreasonable. Therefore some kind of rethink is required.325
654
A little later in the article Justice Verma says (and this is also adverted to in
the interview referred to by the learned Attorney-General):
The recent aberrations are in the application of the Second Judges case in
making the appointments, and not because of it. This is what I had pointed
out in my letter of 5 December 2005 to CJI, Y.K.Sabharwal with copy to
326
http://www.tnsja.tn.nic.in/article/Judicial%20Independence%20JSVJ.pdf
655
the two senior most
K.G.Balakrishnan.
judges,
who
included
the
present
CJI,
135. At the outset, it must be noted that the learned Attorney-General stated
at the hearing of the Presidential Reference that the Central Government was
neither seeking a review nor a reconsideration of the Second Judges case.
656
Therefore, the answers to the Presidential Reference do not depart from the
conclusions arrived at by this Court in the Second Judges case. In that sense,
this opinion did not take the substantive discussion much further though it
substantially resolved some procedural issues and filled in the gaps relating
to the process of appointment of judges to the superior judiciary. In any
event, the answers to the three questions mentioned above are:
1. The expression consultation with the Chief Justice of India in
Articles 217(1) and 222(1) of the Constitution of India requires
consultation with a plurality of Judges in the formation of the opinion of
the Chief Justice of India. The sole individual opinion of the Chief Justice
of India does not constitute consultation within the meaning of the said
articles.
3. The Chief Justice of India must make a recommendation to appoint a
Judge of the Supreme Court and to transfer a Chief Justice or puisne Judge
of a High Court in consultation with the four seniormost puisne Judges of
the Supreme Court. Insofar as an appointment to the High Court is
concerned, the recommendation must be made in consultation with the two
seniormost puisne Judges of the Supreme Court.
4. The Chief Justice of India is not entitled to act solely in his individual
capacity, without consultation with other Judges of the Supreme Court, in
respect of materials and information conveyed by the Government of India
for non-appointment of a Judge recommended for appointment.327
136. The decision in the Second Judges case read with the opinion given
by this Court to the various questions raised in the Presidential Reference or
the Third Judges case fully settled the controversies surrounding the
procedure to be adopted in the appointment of judges to the superior
judiciary. Issues of primacy of views and consultation with the Chief Justice
of India were all answered by the decision and the opinion.
137. It is important to note that the Third Judges case modified one
important norm or conclusion of the Second Judges case. The modification
327
Paragraph 44
657
was that the collegium for appointment of judges in the Supreme Court was
expanded to consist of the Chief Justice of India and four senior-most judges
rather than the two senior-most judges as concluded in the Second Judges
case. In this manner, the consultation with the Chief Justice of India was
further broad-based. It was clarified in conclusion 9 as follows:
9. Recommendations made by the Chief Justice of India without
complying with the norms and requirements of the consultation process, as
aforestated, are not binding upon the Government of India.
658
the Constitution. On the other hand, the State contended that the Governor
was obliged to act only on the advice of the Council of Ministers.
140. This Court speaking through Chief Justice A.N. Ray (for himself and
four other learned judges) overruled Sardari Lal and held that the decision
did not correctly state the law. It was held that under the Rules of Business,
the decision of the concerned Minister or officer is the decision of the
President or the Governor as the case may be. It was then concluded:
For the foregoing reasons we hold that the President or the Governor acts
on the aid and advice of the Council of Ministers with the Prime Minister
at the head in the case of the Union and the Chief Minister at the head in
the case of State in all matters which vests in the Executive whether those
functions are executive or legislative in character. Neither the President nor
the Governor is to exercise the executive functions personally. The present
appeals concern the appointment of persons other than District Judges to
the Judicial Services of the State which is to be made by the Governor as
contemplated in Article 234 of the Constitution after consultation with the
State Public Service Commission and the High Court. Appointment or
dismissal or removal of persons belonging to the Judicial Service of the
State is not a personal function but is an executive function of the
Governor exercised in accordance with the rules in that behalf under the
Constitution.330
Paragraph 88
659
Minister (Chief Minister) who will eventually take the responsibility for
the step.331
142. An additional reason was given by the two learned judges for coming
to this conclusion and that is also important for our present purposes. The
additional reason relates to the independence of the judiciary. For this,
reference was made to Jyoti Prokash Mitter v. Chief Justice, Calcutta.332
The question in that case related to the determination of the age of a sitting
judge of the High Court under Article 217(3) of the Constitution. 333 This
Court held that the age determination should be by the President
uninfluenced by the views of the executive. This was on the ground that were
the executive to make the determination of the age of a sitting judge, it would
seriously affect the independence of the Judiciary. This view was
subsequently reiterated in Union of India v. Jyoti Prokash Mitter.334
143. The learned judges then held, on the basis of the scheme of the
Constitution that had already been adverted to, that the President means the
Council of Ministers and the independence of the judiciary has been
safeguarded by Article 217(3) of the Constitution by making mandatory the
consultation with the Chief Justice of India in regard to age determination.
This would prevent the possibility of extraneous considerations entering into
the decision of the Minister if he/she departs from the views of the Chief
331
Paragraph 154
[1965] 2 SCR 53 (Five Judges Bench)
333
217. Appointment and conditions of the office of a Judge of a High Court.
(3) If any question arises as to the age of a Judge of a High Court, the question shall be decided by
the President after consultation with the Chief Justice of India and the decision of the President shall be
final.
334
(1971) 1 SCC 396 (Five Judges Bench)
332
660
Justice of India. It was held that in all conceivable cases, consultation with
the Chief Justice of India should be accepted by the executive and if there is
a departure from the views of the Chief Justice of India, the Court can
examine the issue in the light of the available facts. In such a sensitive
subject the last word should be with the Chief Justice of India. On this
interpretation, it becomes irrelevant who formally decides the issue. This is
what was held:
In the light of the scheme of the Constitution we have already referred to,
it is doubtful whether such an interpretation as to the personal satisfaction
of the President is correct. We are of the view that the President means, for
all practical purposes, the Minister or the Council of Ministers as the case
may be, and his opinion, satisfaction or decision is constitutionally secured
when his Ministers arrive at such opinion satisfaction or decision. The
independence of the Judiciary, which is a cardinal principle of the
Constitution and has been relied on to justify the deviation, is guarded by
the relevant article making consultation with the Chief Justice of India
obligatory. In all conceivable cases consultation with that highest dignitary
of Indian justice will and should be accepted by the Government of India
and the Court will have an opportunity to examine if any other extraneous
circumstances have entered into the verdict of the Minister, if he departs
from the counsel given by the Chief Justice of India. In practice the last
word in such a sensitive subject must belong to the Chief Justice of India,
the rejection of his advice being ordinarily regarded as prompted by
oblique considerations vitiating the order. In this view it is immaterial
whether the President or the Prime Minister or the Minister for Justice
formally decides the issue.335
144. This decision is important for three key reasons: (1) It recognized,
judicially, the independence of the judiciary. (This was before the First
Judges case which recognized that the independence of the judiciary was a
basic feature of the Constitution). (2) It cleared the air by concluding that
the President was obliged to act on the advice of the Council of Ministers,
even on the issue of appointment of judges. This was formalized by the
335
Paragraph 149
661
662
147. On the meaning of consultation by the President with the Chief Justice
of India in the context of Article 222 of the Constitution, it was held that it
has to be full and effective consultation and not formal or unproductive. It
was said:
Article 222(1) which requires the President to consult the Chief Justice of
India is founded on the principle that in a matter which concerns the
judiciary vitally, no decision ought to be taken by the executive without
obtaining the views of the Chief Justice of India who, by training and
experience, is in the best position to consider the situation fairly,
competently and objectively. But there can be no purposeful consideration
of a matter, in the absence of facts and circumstances on the basis of which
alone the nature of the problem involved can be appreciated and the right
decision taken. It must, therefore, follow that while consulting the Chief
Justice, the President must make the relevant data available to him on the
basis of which he can offer to the President the benefit of his considered
337
663
opinion. If the facts necessary to arrive at a proper conclusion are not made
available to the Chief Justice, he must ask for them because, in casting on
the President the obligation to consult the Chief Justice, the Constitution at
the same time must be taken to have imposed a duty on the Chief Justice to
express his opinion on nothing less than a full consideration of the matter
on which he is entitled to be consulted. The fulfilment by the President, of
his constitutional obligation to place full facts before the Chief Justice and
the performance by the latter, of the duty to elicit facts which are necessary
to arrive at a proper conclusion are parts of the same process and are
complementary to each other. The faithful observance of these may well
earn a handsome dividend useful to the administration of justice.
Consultation within the meaning of Article 222(1), therefore, means full
and effective, not formal or unproductive, consultation.339
148. It was observed that though consultation did not mean concurrence
yet, as held in Samsher Singh consultation with the Chief Justice of India
should be accepted and in such a sensitive subject the last word must belong
to the Chief Justice of India. It was noted that if there is a departure from the
counsel of the Chief Justice of India, the Court would have the opportunity
to examine if any extraneous considerations entered into the decision.340
149. This view was reiterated by Justice Krishna Iyer (for himself and
Justice Fazl Ali).341 Significantly, it was added that: It seems to us that the
word, consultation has been used in Article 222 as a matter of constitutional
courtesy in view of the fact that two very high dignitaries are concerned in
the matter, namely, the President and the Chief Justice of India.342
150. The greater significance of Sankalchand Sheth lies in the conclusion,
relying upon R. Pushpam, that for a meaningful consultation, both parties
must have for consideration full and identical facts. It was said:
339
Paragraph 37
Paragraph 41
341
Paragraph 115
342
Paragraph 115
340
664
The word consult implies a conference of two or more persons or an
impact of two or more minds in respect of a topic in order to enable them
to evolve a correct, or at least, a satisfactory solution. In order that the
two minds may be able to confer and produce a mutual impact, it is
essential that each must have for its consideration full and identical facts,
which can at once constitute both the source and foundation of the final
decision.343
151. This view was accepted in the First Judges case by Justice
Bhagwati,344 Justice Fazal Ali,345 Justice V.D. Tulzapurkar346 and Justice D.A.
Desai.347 It was also accepted in the Second Judges case by Justice
Pandian.348
Memorandum of Procedure 30.6.1999
152. Following up on the decision and opinion rendered in the Second
Judges case and the Third Judges case, the Minister for Law in the
Government of India framed and prepared one Memorandum of Procedure
for the appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court and another for the
appointment of a judge of the High Court. These were shared with the Chief
Justice of India. None of the each successive Chief Justices of India have
complained or criticized any of the Memoranda or adversely commented on
them, or at least we have not been told of any such complaint or objection.
No one, including any successive Law Minister of the Government of India,
complained that the Memoranda were unworkable or caused any hindrance
or delay in the appointment of judges or did not correctly reflect the views of
343
Paragraph 39
Paragraph 30
345
Paragraph 563, 564 and 569
346
Paragraph 632 and 663
347
Paragraph 848 and 849
348
Paragraphs 129 to 133 and 164
344
665
this Court in the two decisions mentioned above or that they did not conform
to any provision of the Constitution, either in letter or in spirit or even
otherwise, or at least we have not been told of any such constraint. These
Memoranda remained operational and the appointment of judges to the
superior judiciary made subsequent thereto has been in conformity with
them. No one complained about the inability to effectively work any
Memorandum of Procedure.
153. We were invited by Mr. Fali S. Nariman to mention the procedure for
the appointment of judges both in public interest and for reasons of
transparency. The Memorandum of Procedure for the appointment of judges
of the Supreme Court and the High Court are available on the website of the
Department of Justice of the Government of India349 and therefore it is not
necessary to make a detailed mention of the procedure. Similar Memoranda
have been referred to in the Second Judges case by Justice Pandian.350
154. A reading of the Memoranda makes it explicit that a proposal
recommending the appointment of a judge of a High Court shall be initiated
by the Chief Justice of the High Court. However, if the Chief Minister
desires to recommend the name of any person he should forward the same to
the Chief Justice for his consideration. Although it is not clearly spelt out, it
is implicit that the Chief Justice is not obliged to accept the suggestion of the
Chief Minister.
349
666
667
on the unanimous view of the other judges consulted by him/her) has the
final say under certain circumstances; and (4) The Union of India accepted
these propositions without hesitation in the Third Judges case.
Amendments to the Constitution
157. Apart from judicial discourses on the appointment of judges,
Parliament too has had its share of discussions. On as many as four
occasions, it was proposed to amend the Constitution in relation to the
procedure for the appointment of judges of the Supreme Court and the
High Courts. These proposed amendments are considered below.
(a) The Constitution (Sixty-seventh Amendment) Bill, 1990
158. The Constitution (Sixty-seventh Amendment) Bill, 1990 was
introduced in the Lok Sabha on 18th May, 1990 and it proposed to set up a
National Judicial Commission (for short the NJC), though not in line with
the recommendations of the LCI. The composition of the NJC was to vary
with the subject matter of concern, namely, the appointment of a judge of the
Supreme Court or the appointment of a judge of the High Court.
159. For the appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court, in terms of the
proposed Article 307A of the Constitution, the NJC was to consist of the
Chief Justice of India and two other judges of the Supreme Court next in
seniority to the Chief Justice of India. For the appointment of a judge of the
High Court, the NJC was to consist of the Chief Justice of India, the Chief
Minister or Governor (as the case may be) of the concerned State, one other
668
judge of the Supreme Court next in seniority to the Chief Justice of India, the
Chief Justice of the High Court and the judge of the High Court next in
seniority to the Chief Justice of the High Court. There was no provision for
the appointment of the Chief Justice of India or the Chief Justice of the High
Court.
160. The procedure for the transaction of business of the NJC was to be
determined by the President in consultation with the Chief Justice of India
and was subject to any law made by Parliament.
161. The Amendment Act also provided that in the event the
recommendation of the NJC is not accepted, the reasons therefor shall be
recorded in writing.
162. The Bill was criticized (in part) by the Arrears Committee which
stated that:
The Committee is unable to find any logic or justification for different
commissions.Keeping in view the objects and reasons for the
constitution of the commission, namely, to obviate the criticism of
executive arbitrariness in the matter of appointment and transfer of High
Court judges and to prevent delay in making appointments, there is no
justification for the executive through the Chief Minister to be on the
commission. Instead of removing the vice of executive interference which
has vitiated the working of the present system the presence of the Chief
Minister on the recommendatory body actual alleviates him from the status
of a mere consultee to the position of an equal participant in the selection
process of the recommendatory body. By making the Chief Minister an
equal party when he is not equipped to offer any view in regard to the
merit, ability, competency, integrity and suitability of the candidates for
appointments, the scope of executive interference is enhanced.351
163. The Bill was not taken up for consideration due to the dissolution of
the Lok Sabha in May, 1991.
351
Paragraph 7.8
669
The Consultation Paper can be found on the website of the Law Ministry. This was accessed on 2nd May,
2015: http://lawmin.nic.in/ncrwc/finalreport/v2b1-14.htm
670
8.20 Purpose of 67th Amendment Bill served by the judgement in
SCAORA: We have set out hereinabove the several methods of
appointment (to Supreme Court and High Courts) suggested by the various
bodies, committees and organizations. We have also set out the method
and procedure of appointment devised by the 1993 decision of the Supreme
Court in SCAORA353 and in the 1998 opinion rendered under Article 143.
It would be evident therefrom that the 1993 decision gives effect to the
substance of the Constitution (Sixty-seventh Amendment) Bill, without of
course calling it a National Judicial Commission, and without the
necessity of amending the Constitution as suggested by the said
Amendment Bill. Indeed, it carries forward the object underlying the
Amendment Bill by making the recommendations of the Chief Justice of
India and his colleagues binding on the President. The 1998 opinion
indeed enlarges the collegium. In this sense, the purpose of the said
Amendment Bill evidenced by the proviso to Article 124(2) and the
Explanation appended thereto, is served, speaking broadly. The method of
appointment evolved by these decisions has indeed been hailed by several
jurists and is held out as a precedent worthy of emulation by U.K. and
others. (See the opinion of Lord Templeman, a member of the House of
Lords, cited hereinabove.) The said decisions lay down the proposition
that the consultation contemplated by Articles 124 and 217 should be a
real and effective consultation and that having regard to the concept of
Judicial independence, which is a basic feature of the Constitution, the
opinion rendered by the Chief Justice of India (after consulting his
colleagues) shall be binding upon the Executive. In this view of the matter,
much of the expectations from a National Judicial Commission (N.J.C)
have been met. The said Constitution Amendment Bill was, it would
appear, prepared after a wide and elaborate consultation with all the
political parties and other stakeholders. However, the aspect of
disciplinary jurisdiction remains unanswered. We may however discuss
the concept of an N.J.C. which may cover both appointments and matters
of discipline.
167. The Paper acknowledged that the Second Judges case and the Third
Judges case speaking broadly served the purpose of the Constitution
(Sixty-seventh Amendment) Bill and that much of the expectations from a
National Judicial Commission (N.J.C) have been met. The shortfalls in
expectations were not specified in the Paper except that of the disciplinary
jurisdiction which did not arise and was not dealt with in the Second Judges
case or the Third Judges case. However, it is important to note that a
dispassionate jurist Lord Templeman, a member of the House of Lords held
353
671
672
judges. This Commission, accordingly, recommends the establishment of a
National Judicial Commission under the Constitution.
The National Judicial Commission for appointment of judges of the
Supreme Court shall comprise of:
The Chief Justice of India:
Chairman
Two senior most judges of the Supreme Court: Member
The Union Minister for Law and Justice:
Member
One eminent person nominated by the President after consulting the
Chief Justice of India:
Member
The recommendation for the establishment of a National Judicial
Commission and its composition are to be treated as integral in view of the
need to preserve the independence of the judiciary.354
Paragraph 7.3.7
673
This is factually incorrect. The Memorandum was drawn up by the Law Minister and did not confer any
power upon the judiciary.
674
role to the executive and the judiciary to present their viewpoint and make
the participants accountable while introducing transparency in the selection
process. The Statement of Objects and Reasons also mentioned that the
proposed Bill would enable equal participation of the judiciary and the
executive in the appointment of judges to the superior judiciary and also
make the system more accountable and thereby increase the confidence of
the public in the judiciary.
175. The Constitution (One Hundred and Twentieth Amendment) Bill
proposed the insertion of Article 124A in the Constitution establishing a
commission known as the National Judicial Appointments Commission (for
short the NJAC). The composition of the NJAC, the appointment of its
Chairperson and Members, their qualifications, conditions of services,
tenure, functions and the procedure as well as the manner of selection of
persons for appointment as Chief Justice of India, judges of the Supreme
Court, Chief Justices and other judges of the High Courts was to be provided
by law made by Parliament.
176. The Constitution (One Hundred and Twentieth Amendment) Bill was
passed by the Rajya Sabha on 5th September 2013 but the Lok Sabha was
dissolved in May 2014 before the Bill could be sent to it and the general
elections called.
177. Strangely, the Statement of Objects and Reasons completely
overlooked the fact that there already was equal participation of the
675
Paragraph 486(1)
I am somewhat uncomfortable with the word primacy while dealing with the President and the Chief
Justice of India. In the context of the appointment of judges, the word responsibility used by the LCI in its
14th Report seems more appropriate.
357
676
reiteration is not unanimous, then the President is entitled to turn down the
recommendation. The theory which the Constitution (One Hundred and
Twentieth Amendment) Bill, 2013 [and subsequently the Constitution (One
Hundred and Twenty-first Amendment) Bill, 2014] sought to demolish that
judges appoint judges is non-existent.
(d) The Constitution (One Hundred and Twenty-first Amendment) Bill,
2014
178. The fourth and final attempt (presently successful and under challenge
in these petitions) to amend the Constitution was by the introduction on 11 th
August, 2014 of the Constitution (One Hundred and Twenty-first
Amendment) Bill, 2014. This Bill was passed by the Lok Sabha on 13th
August, 2014 and by the Rajya Sabha on 14 th August, 2014. It received the
ratification of more than one half of the States as required by Article 368(2)
of the Constitution and received the assent of the President on 31st
December, 2014 when it became the Constitution (Ninety-ninth Amendment)
Act 2014.
179. It may be mentioned en passant that the learned Solicitor General was
requested to place on record the procedure adopted by the State Legislatures
for ratification of the Constitution (One Hundred and Twenty-first
Amendment) Bill, 2014 but that information was not forthcoming, for
reasons that are not known. The intention was not to question the factum of
ratification but only to understand the process and to add transparency to the
process, since there have been instances in the United States where the courts
677
358
See for example: Hammond v. Clark, 136 Ga. 313 (1911), Fahey v. Hackmann, 291 Mo. 351 (1922),
Associated Industries of Oklahoma v. Oklahoma Tax Commission, 176 Okla. 120 (1936), State of
Wisconsin v. Adam S. Gonzales, 253 Wis.2d 134 (2002), The State v. Swift, 69 Ind. 505 (1880) etc.
678
(1) The independence of the judiciary has been always recognized and
acknowledged by all concerned.
(2) Prior to Independence, the appointment of a judge to a superior
court was entirely the discretion of the Crown. The Constituent Assembly
felt that such a supreme and absolute power should not vest in the President
or the government of the day or the Chief Justice of India (as an individual)
and therefore a fetter was placed on that power by requiring the President to
mandatorily consult the Chief Justice of India (with the discretion to consult
other judges) for the appointment of a judge to the Supreme Court. For the
appointment of a judge of the High Court also, consultation with the Chief
Justice of India was mandatory. In addition, consultation with the Chief
Justice of the High Court and the Governor of the State was mandatory.
Significantly, there is no mention of consultation with anybody from civil
society.
(3) Any doubt about the individual role of the President in the process
of appointment of judges came to rest and it was clear that the President was
expected to act only on the advice of the Council of Ministers.
(4) Similarly, the Chief Justice of India is not expected to act in an
individual or personal capacity but must consult his/her senior judges before
making a recommendation for the appointment of a judge.
(5) Dr. Ambedkar and the Constituent Assembly did not accept the
unfettered discretion theory in the CAD but this view was subsequently
679
rejected in the First Judges case which brought in the ultimate power
theory propounded by Justice Bhagwati and Justice Desai.
(6) Executive interference in the appointment process (with perhaps an
informal method of take over) had started around the time of Independence
and got aggravated post Independence, peaking towards the end of the
1980s.
(7) Not a single instance was given to us where the President
recommended a person for appointment as a judge of the Supreme Court or
the High Court.
680
in terms of the Second Judges case and the Third Judges case. Historically,
giving the last word to the executive has been criticized by no less than the
Attorney-General Shri M.C. Setalvad who chaired the Law Commission of
India when the 14th Report was given. That system has not worked well at all
as noted from time to time.
(10) The National Commission to Review the Working of the
Constitution as well as a responsible judge from the House of Lords were of
the opinion that the procedure for appointment of judges as laid down in the
Second Judges case and the Third Judges case broadly serves the purpose
of maintaining the independence of the judiciary and providing a suitable
method for appointment of judges of the superior Courts.
184. This is not to say that the collegium system is perfect. Hardly so.
During the course of hearing, some critical comments were made with regard
to the appointment of some judges to this Court which, it was submitted by
the learned Attorney-General would not have been possible were it not for
the failure of the collegium system. Even the petitioners were critical of the
collegium system. However, I must express my anguish at the manner in
which an attack was launched by some learned counsel appearing for the
respondents. It was vitriolic at times, lacking discretion and wholly
unnecessary. Denigrating judges is the easiest thing to do they cannot fight
back and the surest way to ensure that the judiciary loses its independence
and the people lose confidence in the judiciary, which is hardly advisable.
681
The Bar has an equal (if not greater) stake in the independence of the
judiciary and the silence of the Bar at relevant moments is inexplicable. The
solution, in the larger canvas, is a democratic audit, an audit limited to the
judiciary and the Rule of Law. If some positive developments can be
incorporated in the justice delivery system (in the larger context) they should
be so incorporated.
185. In this context, it is interesting to recall the words of Dr. Ambedkar on
the working of the Constitution:
however good a Constitution may be, it is sure to turn out bad because
those who are called to work it, happen to be a bad lot. However bad a
Constitution may be, it may turn out to be good if those who are called to
work it, happen to be a good lot. The working of a Constitution does not
depend wholly upon the nature of the Constitution.359
186. Both the absolute executive primacy system or the ultimate power
theory and the collegium system of appointment of judges of the Supreme
Court and the High Courts were acceptable systems in their time. The
executive primacy system was, unfortunately, abused by the executive and
the judiciary could do precious little about it, bound as the judges are by the
Rule of Law. It is because of this abuse that the constitutional provisions
were revisited at the instance of the Bar of this Court and the revisit gave the
correct interpretational insight into our constitutional history and the
constitutional provisions. It is this insight that resulted in the Second Judges
case and a meaningful and pragmatic interpretation of the Constitution.
187. That the Second Judges case was correctly decided by the majority
359
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol11p11.htm
682
was accepted in the Third Judges case by the Attorney-General and, what is
more important, by the President (aided and advised by the Council of
Ministers) who did not seek a reversal of the dicta laid down in the Second
Judges case.
188. To say, as was conveyed to us during the hearing of the case, that the
collegium system has failed and that it needs replacement would not be a
correct or a fair post mortem. It is true that there has been criticism
(sometimes scathing) of the decisions of the collegium, but it must not be
forgotten that the executive had an equally important participative role in the
integrated process of the appointment of judges. That the executive adopted
a defeatist or an I-dont-care attitude is most unfortunate. The collegium
cannot be blamed for all the ills in the appointment of judges - the political
executive has to share the blame equally if not more, since it mortgaged its
constitutional responsibility of maintaining a check on what may be
described as the erroneous decisions of the collegium.
189. To say that the executive had no role to play (as was suggested to us)
is incorrect to say the least, as is clear from a close reading of the Second
Judges case and the Third Judges case. Even the President did not think so.
In fact, the President was clearly of the opinion that the executive or at least
the Head of State had a role to play in the appointment of judges. This
evident from an article titled Merit in the Appointment of Judges 360 which
quotes from an issue of India Today magazine of 25th January, 1999 the
360
683
190. All that was needed to keep the collegium system on the rails was the
unstinted cooperation of the executive and an effective implementation
strategy, with serious and meaningful introspection and perhaps some fine
tuning and tweaking to make it more effective. Unfortunately, the executive
did not respond positively, perhaps due to its misunderstanding of the
decisions of this Court.
191. On the other hand, an independent and impartial jurist, Lord
Templeman praised the integrated consultative collegium system and
recommended it as a method that the British could follow with advantage.
The learned judge wrote:
684
However, having regard to the earlier experience in India of attempts by
the executive to influence the personalities and attitudes of members of the
judiciary, and having regard to the successful attempts made in Pakistan to
control the judiciary, and having regard to the unfortunate results of the
appointment of Supreme Court judges of the United States by the President
subject to approval by Congress, the majority decision of the Supreme
Court of India in the Advocates on Record case marks a welcome assertion
of the independence of the judiciary and is the best method of obtaining
appointments of integrity and quality, a precedent method which the
British could follow with advantage.361
learned
Attorney-General
need
consideration.
The
learned
Attorney-General raised three preliminary issues: (1) The writ petitions are
premature and not maintainable since the 99th Constitution Amendment Act
and the NJAC Act have not come into force; (2) The writ petitions are
premature and not maintainable since the National Judicial Appointments
Commission has not been constituted and so there is no adverse impact of
the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC and no facts have been
pleaded by the petitioners in this regard; (3) This batch of cases ought to be
heard by a Bench of 9 (nine) or more judges since the decision of this Court
in the Second Judges case362 and the Third Judges case363 do not lay down
the correct law but require reconsideration. It was submitted that the
361
Supreme But Not Infallible, Essays in Honour of the Supreme Court of India page 48, 53
Supreme Court Advocates-on-Record Association v. Union of India, (1993) 4 SCC 441 (Nine Judges
Bench)
363
Special Reference No. 1 of 1998, (1998) 7 SCC 739 (Nine Judges Bench)
362
685
decisions have the effect of usurping the powers of the President under
Article 124(2) and Article 217(1) of the Constitution and that the judiciary
has effectively converted the appointment of judges to the Supreme Court
and the High Courts from consultation between the President and the Chief
Justice of India (as occurring in Article 124(2) of the Constitution) into
concurrence of the Chief Justice of India and giving birth to a right to
insist on the acceptance of a recommendation of the Chief Justice of India.
Moreover, the doctrine of separation of powers between the Legislature, the
Executive and the Judiciary has been thrown overboard as also the system of
checks and balances inherent in the Constitution. To decide this particular
preliminary issue, the learned Attorney-General referred to the separation of
powers in our Constitution, the law and the principles on which this Court
should proceed to decide whether an earlier or prior decision rendered
requires to be reconsidered.
193. As far as the first preliminary objection is concerned, it was raised
before the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act came into
force. Now the preliminary objection does not survive since the 99 th
Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act have in fact been brought
into force. The second preliminary objection has no substance since the
question in these petitions relates to the basic structure of the Constitution
and the independence of the judiciary. It would be facetious to say that the
writ petitions should have been filed after an adverse impact is felt by the
686
687
197. In Indira Nehru Gandhi v. Raj Narain 369 the constitutional validity of
the Constitution (Thirty-ninth Amendment) Act, 1975 was challenged. By
this Amendment Act, Article 39-A was inserted in the Constitution and the
challenge was, inter alia, to clause (4) thereof.370 While striking down the
offending clause, it was held by Justice H.R. Khanna:
A declaration that an order made by a court of law is void is normally part
of the judicial function and is not a legislative function. Although there is
in the Constitution of India no rigid separation of powers, by and large the
spheres of judicial function and legislative function have been demarcated
and it is not permissible for the legislature to encroach upon the judicial
sphere. It has accordingly been held that a legislature while it is entitled to
change with retrospective effect the law which formed the basis of the
judicial decision, it is not permissible to the legislature to declare the
366
688
judgment of the court to be void or not binding (see Shri Prithvi Cotton
Mills Ltd. v. Broach Borough Municipality, Janapada Sabha, Chhindwara
v. Central Provinces Syndicate Ltd., Municipal Corporation of the City of
Ahmedabad v. New Shorock Spg. & Wvg. Co. Ltd. and State of Tamil Nadu
v. M. Rayappa Gounder).371 (Internal citations omitted).
198. Justice Mathew held that ours is a cooperative federalism that does not
contain any rigid separation of powers and there exists a system of checks
and balances. Harold Laski was quoted as saying that Separation of powers
does not mean the equal balance of powers.372 In that context it was held
that the exercise of judicial power by the Legislature is impermissible. The
learned judge expressed the view that:
Montesquieu was the first to conceive of the three functions of
Government as exercised by three organs, each juxtaposed against others.
He realised that the efficient operation of Government involved a certain
degree of overlapping and that the theory of checks and balances required
each organ to impede too great an aggrandizement of authority by the
other two powers. As Holdsworth says, Montesquieu convinced the world
that he had discovered a new constitutional principle which was
universally valid. The doctrine of separation of governmental powers is not
a mere theoretical, philosophical concept. It is a practical, work-a-day
principle. The division of Government into three branches does not imply,
as its critics would have us think, three watertight compartments. Thus,
legislative impeachment of executive officers or judges, executive veto
over legislation, judicial review of administrative or legislative actions are
treated as partial exceptions which need explanation.373
Paragraph 190
A Grammar of Politics (Works of Harold J. Laski), 297
373
Paragraph 318
372
689
does not expressly vest the three kinds of power in three different organs
of the State. But the principle of separation of powers is not a magic
formula for keeping the three organs of the State within the strict confines
of their functions. As observed by Cardozo, J. in his dissenting opinion in
Panama Refining Company v. Ryan374 the principle of separation of powers
is not a doctrinaire concept to be made use of with pedantic rigour. There
must be sensible approximation, there must be elasticity of adjustment in
response to the practical necessities of Government which cannot foresee
today the developments of tomorrow in their nearly infinite variety. Thus,
even in America, despite the theory that the legislature cannot delegate its
power to the executive, a host of rules and regulations are passed by
non-legislative bodies, which have been judicially recognized as valid.375
200. In Minerva Mills Ltd. v. Union of India 376 Justice Bhagwati opined
that the Constitution has devised a structure for the separation of powers and
checks and balances and held:
It is clear from the majority decision in Kesavananda Bharati case that
our Constitution is a controlled Constitution which confers powers on the
various authorities created and recognised by it and defines the limits of
those powers. The Constitution is suprema lex, the paramount law of the
land and there is no authority, no department or branch of the State which
is above or beyond the Constitution or has powers unfettered and
unrestricted by the Constitution. The Constitution has devised a structure
of power relationship with checks and balances and limits are placed on
the powers of every authority or instrumentality under the Constitution.
Every organ of the State, be it the executive or the legislature or the
judiciary, derives its authority from the Constitution and it has to act within
the limits of such authority.377
690
is inevitable. The reason for this broad separation of powers is that the
concentration of powers in any one organ may to quote the words of
Chandrachud, J., (as he then was) in Indira Gandhi case by upsetting that
fine balance between the three organs, destroy the fundamental premises of
a democratic government to which we are pledged.378
202. In I.R. Coelho v. State of Tamil Nadu379 it was held by Chief Justice
Sabharwal speaking for the Court that the doctrine of separation of powers is
a part of the basic structure of the Constitution. It was held:
The separation of powers between Legislature, Executive and the
Judiciary constitutes basic structure, has been found in Kesavananda
Bharati case by the majority. Later, it was reiterated in Indira Gandhi
case. A large number of judgments have reiterated that the separation of
powers is one of the basic features of the Constitution.380
Paragraph 87
(2007) 2 SCC 1 (Nine Judges Bench)
380
Paragraph 63. This has been reiterated in paragraphs 67, 125 and 129.
381
(2010) 5 SCC 538 (Five Judges Bench)
379
691
separation is neither possible, nor desirable. Nevertheless, till this principle
of accountability is preserved, there is no violation of separation of
powers. We arrive at the same conclusion when we assess the position
within the constitutional text. The Constitution does not prohibit overlap of
functions, but in fact provides for some overlap as a parliamentary
democracy. But what it prohibits is such exercise of function of the other
branch which results in wresting away of the regime of constitutional
accountability.
Thus, the test for the violation of separation of powers must be precisely
this. A law would be violative of separation of powers not if it results in
some overlap of functions of different branches of the State, but if it takes
over an essential function of the other branch leading to lapse in
constitutional accountability.382
Paragraphs 77 and 78
(2014) 12 SCC 696 (Five Judges Bench)
384
Paragraphs 98 to 126.7. The conclusions are stated in paragraphs 126.1 to 126.7.
385
(2006) 3 SCC 643 (Five Judges Bench)
386
Paragraph 298 and 304
387
Paragraph 443
383
692
made Dr. Ambedkar turn in his grave), this executive function has been taken
over or usurped by the judiciary and that is the reason why the Second
Judges case requires to be reconsidered and the correct constitutional
position deserves to be restored. In other words, by a process of judicial
encroachment, the separation of power theory has been broken down by this
Court, in violation of the basic structure of the Constitution.
Constituent Assembly Debates and the third preliminary issue
206. In further support of his contention that the Second Judges case and
the Third Judges case do not lay down the correct law and need
reconsideration, the learned Attorney-General placed great reliance on the
CAD. It is necessary, therefore, to consider the law on the subject and then
the debates.
207. In Administrator-General of Bengal v. Prem Lal Mullick 388 the Privy
Council did not approve of a reference to debates in the Legislature as a
legitimate aid to the construction of a statute. It was held:
Their Lordships observe that the two learned Judges who constituted the
majority in the Appellate Court, although they do not base their judgment
upon them, refer to the proceedings of the Legislature which resulted in the
passing of the Act of 1874 [Administrator-Generals Act] as legitimate aids
to the construction of Section 31. Their Lordships think it right to express
their dissent from that proposition. The same reasons which exclude these
considerations when the clauses of an Act of the British Legislature are
under construction are equally cogent in the case of an Indian statute.
208. This view was partially accepted, with reference to the CAD in A.K.
Gopalan v. State of Madras389 by Chief Justice Harilal Kania who held that
388
389
693
reference may be made to the CAD with great caution and only when latent
ambiguities are to be resolved.390 The learned Chief Justice observed:
Our attention was drawn to the debates and report of the drafting
committee of the Constituent Assembly in respect of the wording of this
clause. The report may be read not to control the meaning of the article,
but may be seen in case of ambiguity. In Municipal Council of Sydney v.
The Commonwealth391 it was thought that individual opinion of members
of the Convention expressed in the debate cannot be referred to for the
purpose of construing the Constitution. The same opinion was expressed in
United States v. Wong Kim Ark.392 The result appears to be that while it is
not proper to take into consideration the individual opinions of Members
of Parliament or Convention to construe the meaning of the particular
clause, when a question is raised whether a certain phrase or expression
was up for consideration at all or not, a reference to the debates may be
permitted. In the present case the debates were referred to show that the
expression due process of law was known to exist in the American
Constitution and after a discussion was not adopted by the Constituent
Assembly in our Constitution. In Administrator General of Bengal v.
Premlal Mullick a reference to the proceedings of the legislature which
resulted in the passing of the Act was not considered legitimate aid in the
construction of a particular section. The same reasons were held as cogent
for excluding a reference to such debates in construing an Indian statute.
Resort may be had to these sources with great caution and only when latent
ambiguities are to be resolved.393
209. This view was endorsed by Fazl Ali, J who referred to the expression
due process of law which was originally interpreted by the United States
Supreme Court as referring to matters of procedure but was subsequently
widened to cover substantive law as well. The learned judge held:
In the course of the arguments, the learned Attorney-General referred us
to the proceedings in the Constituent Assembly for the purpose of showing
that the article as originally drafted contained the words without due
process of law but these words were subsequently replaced by the words
except according to procedure established by law. In my opinion, though
the proceedings or discussions in the Assembly are not relevant for the
purpose of construing the meaning of the expressions used in Article 21,
especially when they are plain and unambiguous, they are relevant to show
that the Assembly intended to avoid the use of the expression without due
process of law. In the earliest times, the American Supreme Court
construed due process of law to cover matters of procedure only, but
390
694
gradually the meaning of the expression was widened so as to cover
substantive law also, by laying emphasis on the word due.394
210. Justice Patanjali Sastri was of the same opinion and so the learned
judge held as follows:
Learned counsel drew attention to the speeches made by several members
of the Assembly on the floor of the House for explaining, as he put it, the
historical background. A speech made in the course of the debate on a
bill could at best be indicative of the subjective intent of the speaker, but it
could not reflect the inarticulate mental processes lying behind the
majority vote which carried the bill. Nor is it reasonable to assume that the
minds of all those legislators were in accord. The Court could only search
for the objective intent of the legislature primarily in the words used in the
enactment, aided by such historical material as reports of statutory
committees, preambles etc. I attach no importance, therefore, to the
speeches made by some of the members of the Constituent Assembly in
the course of the debate on Article 15 (now Article 21).395
211. Justice
Mukherjea
noted
the
concession
of
the
learned
Attorney-General that the CAD are not admissible to explain the meaning of
the words used a position quite the opposite from what is now taken by the
learned Attorney-General. The learned judge then observed that such
extrinsic evidence is best left out of account and held as follows:
The learned Attorney-General has placed before us the debates in the
Constituent Assembly centering round the adoption of this
recommendation of the Drafting Committee and he has referred us to the
speeches of several members of the Assembly who played an important
part in the shaping of the Constitution. As an aid to discover the meaning
of the words in a Constitution, these debates are of doubtful value. Resort
can be had to them' says Willoughby, with great caution and only when
latent ambiguities are to be solved. The proceedings may be of some value
when they clearly point out the purpose of the provision. But when the
question is of abstract meaning, it will be difficult to derive from this
source much material assistance in interpretation.
The learned Attorney-General concedes that these debates are not
admissible to explain the meaning of the words used and he wanted to use
them only for the purpose of showing that the Constituent Assembly when
they finally adopted the recommendation of the Drafting Committee, were
fully aware of the implications of the differences between the old form of
expression and the new. In my opinion, in interpreting the Constitution, it
394
395
695
will be better if such extrinsic evidence is left out of account. In matters
like this, different members act upon different impulses and from different
motives and it is quite possible that some members accepted certain words
in a particular sense, while others took them in a different light.396
212. Justice S.R. Das specifically stated that he expresses no opinion on the
question of admissibility or otherwise of the CAD to interpret the
Constitution.
213. In State of Travancore-Cochin v. The Bombay Co. Ltd. 397 it was
unanimously held that reference to the CAD is unwarranted and such an
extrinsic aid to the interpretation of statutes is not admissible. Speaking for
the Court, Chief Justice Patanjali Sastri held:
It remains only to point out that the use made by the learned Judges
below of the speeches made by the members of the Constituent Assembly
in the course of the debates on the draft Constitution is unwarranted. That
this form of extrinsic aid to the interpretation of statutes is not admissible
has been generally accepted in England, and the same rule has been
observed in the construction of Indian statutes see
Administrator-General of Bengal v. Prem Lal Mallick. The reason behind
the rule was explained by one of us in Gopalan case thus:
A speech made in the course of the debate on a bill could at best
be indicative of the subjective intent of the speaker, but it could not
reflect the inarticulate mental process lying behind the majority
vote which carried the bill. Nor is it reasonable to assume that the
minds of all those legislators were in accord,
or, as it is more tersely put in an American case
Those who did not speak may not have agreed with those who
did; and those who spoke might differ from each other United
States v. Trans-Missouri Freight Association.398399
214. In Golak Nath v. State of Punjab400 Chief Justice Subba Rao noted the
submissions of the petitioners, one of which was:
The debates in the Constituent Assembly, particularly the speech of Mr
Jawahar Lal Nehru, the first Prime Minister of India, and the reply of Dr
Ambedkar, who piloted the Bill disclose clearly that it was never the
396
696
intention of the makers of the Constitution by putting in Article 368 to
enable the Parliament to repeal the fundamental rights; the circumstances
under which the amendment moved by Mr H.V. Kamath, one of the
members of Constituent Assembly, was withdrawn and Article 368 was
finally adopted, support the contention that amendment of Part III is
outside the scope of Article 368.401
215. The submissions of the learned Attorney-General were also noted and
one of which was, again, diametrically opposed to the submission made
before us by the learned Attorney-General:
Debates in the Constituent Assembly cannot be relied upon for construing
Article 368 of the Constitution and even if they can be, there is nothing in
the debates to prove positively that fundamental rights were excluded from
amendment.402
216. The learned Chief Justice (speaking for the majority) referred to the
CAD and observed:
We have referred to the speeches of Pandit Jawaharlal Nehru and Dr.
Ambedkar not with a view to interpret the provisions of Art. 368, which
we propose to do on its own terms, but only to notice the transcendental
character given to the fundamental rights by two of the important
architects of the Constitution.403
217. Justice Wanchoo dealt with the issue a bit more elaborately and on a
consideration of the law (drawing support from Prem Lal Mullick and A.K.
Gopalan) held that the CAD could not be looked into for interpreting Article
368 of the Constitution and that the said Article must be interpreted on the
words thereof as they finally found place in the Constitution. It was said:
Copious references were made during the course of arguments to debates
in Parliament and it is urged that it is open to this Court to look into the
debates in order to interpret Article 368 to find out the intention of the
Constitution-makers. We are of opinion that we cannot and should not look
into the debates that took place in the Constituent Assembly to determine
the interpretation of Article 368 and the scope and extent of the provision
contained therein. It may be conceded that historical background and
401
Page 782
Page 783
403
Page 792
402
697
perhaps what was accepted or what was rejected by the Constituent
Assembly while the Constitution was being framed, may be taken into
account in finding out the scope and extent of Article 368. But we have no
doubt that what was spoken in the debates in the Constituent Assembly
cannot and should not be looked into in order to interpret Article
368..
We are therefore of opinion that it is not possible to read the speeches
made in the Constituent Assembly in order to interpret Article 368 or to
define its extent and scope and to determine what it takes in and what it
does not. As to the historical facts, namely, what was accepted or what was
avoided in the Constituent Assembly in connection with Article 368, it is
enough to say that we have not been able to find any help from the
material relating to this. There were proposals for restricting the power of
amendment under Article 368 and making fundamental rights immune
therefrom and there were counter proposals before the Constituent
Assembly for making the power of amendment all-embracing. They were
all either dropped or negatived and in the circumstances are of no help in
determining the interpretation of Article 368 which must be interpreted on
the words thereof as they finally found place in the Constitution, and on
those words we have no doubt that there are no implied limitations of any
kind on the power to amend given therein.404
698
Parliament elected - and perhaps for the most part elected directly by adult
suffrage.406
This is mentioned, without any comment, only to throw open the thought
whether the interpretation of the Constitution can be tied down forever to the
views expressed by a few Honble Members of the Constituent Assembly,
who were undoubtedly extremely learned and visionary but who nevertheless
constituted an assembly elected indirectly on a very limited franchise.
220. In Kesavananda Bharati it was held by Chief Justice Sikri that
speeches made by members of the legislature in the course of debates
relating to the enactment of a statute cannot be used as aids for interpreting
any provisions of the statute. The learned Chief Justice held that the same
rule is applicable to provisions of the Constitution as well and for this
reliance was placed, inter alia, on Prem Lal Mullick, A.K Gopalan, State of
Travancore-Cochin and Golak Nath. Explaining Union of India v. H.S.
Dhillon407 the learned Chief Justice said:
In Union of India v. H.S. Dhillon I, on behalf of the majority, before
referring to the speeches observed at p. 58 that we are however, glad to
find from the following extracts from the debates that our interpretation
accords with what was intended. There is no harm in finding confirmation
of ones interpretation in debates but it is quite a different thing to interpret
the provisions of the Constitution in the light of the debates.408
221. Apart from relying on case law, the learned Chief Justice gave an
additional reason for concluding that reliance on the CAD was not advisable
for interpreting the provisions of the Constitution. This is best understood in
the words of the learned Chief Justice:
406
Page 917
(1972) 2 SCR 331
408
Paragraph 183
407
699
There is an additional reason for not referring to debates for the purpose
of interpretation. The Constitution, as far as most of the Indian States were
concerned, came into operation only because of the acceptance by the
Ruler or Rajpramukh. This is borne out by the following extract from the
statement of Sardar Vallabhbhai Patel in the Constituent Assembly on
October 12, 1949, (CAD, Vol. X, pp. 161-63):
Unfortunately we have no properly constituted legislatures in the
rest of the States (apart from Mysore, Saurashtra and Travancore
and Cochin Union) nor will it be possible to have legislatures
constituted in them before the Constitution of India emerges in its
final form. We have, therefore, no option but to make the
Constitution operative in these States on the basis of its acceptance
by the Rulers or the Rajpramukh, as the case may be, who will no
doubt consult his Council of Ministers.
In accordance with this statement, declarations were issued by the Rulers
or Rajpramukhs accepting the Constitution.
It seems to me that when a Ruler or Rajpramukh or the people of the State
accepted the Constitution of India in its final form, he did not accept it
subject to the speeches made during the Constituent Assembly debates.
The speeches can, in my view, be relied on only in order to see if the
course of the progress of a particular provision or provisions throws any
light on the historical background or shows that a common understanding
or agreement was arrived at between certain sections of the people.409
222. Justice Hegde and Justice A.K Mukherjea also held that reliance could
not be placed on the CAD to interpret any provision of the Constitution.
Reference was made to State of Travancore-Cochin and it was held:
For finding out the true scope of Article 31(2) as it stands now, the
learned Advocate-General of Maharashtra as well as the Solicitor-General
has taken us through the history of this article. According to them the
article as it stands now truly represents the intention of the
Constitution-makers. In support of that contention, we were asked to go
through the Constituent Assembly debates relating to that article. In
particular we were invited to go through the speeches made by Pandit
Nehru, Sir Alladi Krishnaswami Ayyar, Dr Munshi and Dr Ambedkar. In
our opinion, it is impermissible for us to do so. It is a well-settled rule of
construction that speeches made by members of a Legislature in the course
of debates relating to the enactment of a statute cannot be used as aids for
interpreting any of the provisions of the statute. The same rule is
applicable when we are called upon to interpret the provisions of a
Constitution.410
The learned judges observed that no decision was brought to their notice
409
410
700
Paragraph 1368
Paragraph 2137
701
parliamentary proceedings can be used only for a limited purpose as
explained in Gopalan case.413
Paragraph 2140
Paragraph 1088
702
If the debates in the Constituent Assembly can be looked into to
understand the legislative history of a provision of the Constitution
including its derivation, that is, the various steps leading up to and
attending its enactment, to ascertain the intention of the makers of the
Constitution, it is difficult to see why the debates are inadmissible to throw
light on the purpose and general intent of the provision. After all,
legislative history only tends to reveal the legislative purpose in enacting
the provision and thereby sheds light upon legislative intent. It would be
drawing an invisible distinction if resort to debates is permitted simply to
show the legislative history and the same is not allowed to show the
legislative intent in case of latent ambiguity in the provision.415
Paragraph 1598
1992 Supp (3) SCC 217 (9 Judges Bench)
703
enacted. The speech of Dr Ambedkar on this aspect, however, stands on a
different footing. He was not only the Chairman of the Drafting
Committee which inserted the expression backward in draft Article 10(3)
[it was not there in the original draft Article 10(3)], he was virtually
piloting the draft Article. In his speech, he explains the reason behind draft
clause (3) as also the reason for which the Drafting Committee added the
expression backward in the clause. In this situation, we fail to
understand how can anyone ignore his speech while trying to ascertain the
meaning of the said expression. That the debates in Constituent Assembly
can be relied upon as an aid to interpretation of a constitutional provision
is borne out by a series of decisions of this Court Since the
expression backward or backward class of citizens is not defined in
the Constitution, reference to such debates is permissible to ascertain, at
any rate, the context, background and objective behind them. Particularly,
where the Court wants to ascertain the original intent such reference may
be unavoidable.417
231. Justice Variava (for himself and Justice Bhan) also referred to
417
Paragraph 772
(2001) 7 SCC 126
419
(2014) 9 SCC 1 (5 Judges Bench)
420
(2002) 8 SCC 481 (11 Judges Bench)
421
This conclusion appears to be doubtful
418
704
Kesavananda Bharati and held that though the CAD are not conclusive, but
in a constitutional matter where the intent of the framers of the Constitution
is to be ascertained, the Court should look into the proceedings and the
relevant data, including the speeches, which throw light on ascertaining the
intent.
232. Justice Syed Shah Quadri stated an interesting principle in the
following words:
The correct way to interpret an article is to go by its plain language and
lay bare the meaning it conveys. It would no doubt be useful to refer to the
historical and political background which supports the interpretation given
by the court and in that context the debates of the Constituent Assembly
would be the best record of understanding all those aspects. A host of
considerations might have prompted the people of India through Members
of Constituent Assembly to adopt, enact and to give to themselves the
Constitution. We are really concerned with what they have adopted,
enacted and given to themselves in these documents. We cannot and we
should not cause scar on it which would take years for the coming
generations to remove from its face.422
233. The learned judge then went on to hold, relying on Prem Lal Mullick,
A.K. Gopalan, State of Travancore-Cochin, Kesavananda Bharati and
Indra Sawhney that admissibility of speeches made in the Constituent
Assembly for interpreting provisions of the Constitution is not permissible
and that The preponderance of opinion appears to me not to rely on the
debates in the Constituent Assembly or the Parliament to interpret a
constitutional provision although they may be relevant for other purposes.
The learned judge quoted a sentence from Black Clawson International Ltd.
422
Paragraph 286
705
[1975] AC 591
Paragraph 297
425
(2002) 8 SCC 237
426
Paragraph 16
427
1995 (3) SA 391 (CC) (Eleven Judges Bench) paragraph 16
424
706
debates for the purpose of interpreting provisions of the Canadian
Constitution, although it attaches less weight to such information than the
United States Supreme Court does. It also has regard to ministerial
statements in Parliament in regard to the purpose of particular legislation.
In India, whilst speeches of individual members of Parliament or the
Convention are apparently not ordinarily admissible, the reports of drafting
committees can, according to Seervai, be a helpful extrinsic aid to
construction. Seervai cites Kania CJ in A. K. Gopalan v The State for the
proposition that whilst not taking ...into consideration the individual
opinions of Members of Parliament or Convention to construe the meaning
of a particular clause, when a question is raised whether a certain phrase or
expression was up for consideration at all or not, a reference to debates
may be permitted. The European Court of Human Rights and the United
Nations Committee on Human Rights all allow their deliberations to be
informed by travaux preparatoires.428 (Internal citations omitted)
237. It is quite clear that the overwhelming view of the various learned
judges in different decisions rendered by this Court and in other jurisdictions
as well is that: (1) A reference may be made to the CAD or to Parliamentary
debates (as indeed to any other relevant material) to understand the context
in which the constitutional or statutory provisions were framed and to gather
428
429
Paragraph 16
Paragraph 14
707
the intent of the law makers but only if there is some ambiguity or
uncertainty or incongruity or obscurity in the language of the provision. A
reference to the CAD or the Parliamentary debates ought not to be made only
because they are there;430 (2) The CAD or Parliamentary debates ought not to
be relied upon to interpret the provisions of the Constitution or the statute if
there is no ambiguity in the language used. These provisions ought to be
interpreted independently or at least, if reference is made to the CAD or
Parliamentary debates, the Court should not be unduly influenced by the
speeches made. Confirmation of the interpretation may be sought from the
CAD or the Parliamentary debates but not vice versa.
238. This discussion has been necessitated
learned Attorney-General that the Constituent Assembly did not intend that
for the appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court or of the High Court the
concurrence of the Chief Justice of India is necessary. The word
consultation in Article 124 of the Constitution and in Article 217 of the
Constitution did not and could not mean concurrence. This, according to
the learned Attorney-General is specifically and clearly borne out from the
CAD. In fact, the learned Attorney-General drew our attention to the
discussion that took place in the Constituent Assembly on 23 rd and 24th May,
1949.
239. It was submitted that under the circumstances there was no ambiguity
430
With due apologies to George Mallory who is famously quoted as having replied to the question "Why
do you want to climb Mount Everest?" with the retort "Because it's there."
708
in the meaning of the word consultation and a reference to the CAD was
necessary, applying the dictum of Chief Justice Sikri, only to confirm the
interpretation of consultation as not meaning concurrence. It is for this
reason, apart from others that the Second Judges case and the Third Judges
case required reconsideration.
240. The learned Attorney-General also drew our attention to the following
expression of opinion by Mr. T.T. Krishnamachari in the Constituent
Assembly on 27th May, 1949 in relation to clause (3) of the draft Article 122
concerning the officers and servants and expenses of the Supreme Court. 431
The contention was that it was not the intention of the Constituent Assembly
to make the Chief Justice of India or the Supreme Court above the executive
or the Legislature thereby discarding the theory of separation of powers, and
if consultation is interpreted to mean concurrence, then that would be the
inevitable result. Reliance was placed on the following speech:
While I undoubtedly support the amendment moved by Dr. Ambedkar, I
think it should be understood by the Members of this House, and I do hope
by those people who will be administering justice and also administering
the country in the future that this is a safeguard rather than an operative
provision. The only thing about it is that a matter like the employment of
staff by the Judges should be placed ordinarily outside the purview of the
Executive which would otherwise have to take the initiative to include
these items in the budget for the reason that the independence of the
Judiciary should be maintained and that the Judiciary should not feel that
they are subject to favours that the Executive might grant to them from
time to time and which would naturally influence their decision in any
matter they have to take where the interests of the Executive of the time
being happens to be concerned. At the same time, Sir, I think it should be
made clear that it is not the intention of this House or of the framers of this
Constitution that they want to create specially favoured bodies which in
themselves becomes an Imperium in Imperio, completely independent of
431
(3) The administrative expenses of the Supreme Court, including all salaries, allowances and pensions
payable to or in respect of the officers and servants of the court, shall be charged upon the revenues of
India, and any fees or other moneys taken by the court shall form part of those revenues.
709
the Executive and the Legislature and operating as a sort of superior body
to the general body politic. If that were so, I think we should be rather
chary of introducing a provision of this nature, not merely in regard to the
Supreme Court but also in regard to the Auditor-General, in regard to the
Union Public Service Commission, in regard to the Speaker and the
President of the two House of Parliament and so on, as we will thereby be
creating a number of bodies which are placed in such a position that they
are bound to come into conflict with the Executive in every attempt they
make to display their superiority. In actual practice, it is better for all these
bodies to more or less fall in line with the regulations that obtain in matters
of recruitment to the public services, conditions of promotion and salaries
paid to their staff.432
Replying to this debate, Dr. Ambedkar clarified the position that there was
no question of creating an Imperium in Imperio. Dr. Ambedkar said:
Mr. President, Sir, I would just like to make a few observations in order to
clear the position. Sir, there is no doubt that the House in general, has
agreed that the independence of the Judiciary from the Executive should be
made as clear and definite as we could make it by law. At the same time,
there is the fear that in the name of the independence of the Judiciary, we
might be creating, what my Friend Mr. T. T. Krishnamachari very aptly
called an "Imperium in Imperio". We do not want to create an Imperium in
Imperio, and at the same time we want to give the Judiciary ample
independence so that it can act without fear or favour of the Executive. My
friend, if they will carefully examine the provisions of the new amendment
which I have proposed in place of the original article 122, will find that the
new article proposes to steer a middle course. It refuses to create an
Imperium in Imperio, and I think it gives the Judiciary as much
independence as is necessary for the purpose of administering justice
without fear or favour. I need not therefore, dilate on all the provisions
contained in this new article 122..433
241. It is quite clear from the above that the endeavour of Dr. Ambedkar
was to ensure the independence of the judiciary from the executive without
creating any power imbalance and this, therefore, needed steering a middle
course whether in the appointment of judges or the officers of the Supreme
Court. There can be no doubt about this at all. But what is the independence
of the judiciary and how can it be maintained and does the 99 th Constitution
432
433
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol8p10b.htm
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol8p10b.htm
710
711
245. Justice N.H. Bhagwati also reviewed several decisions from various
jurisdictions and agreed with Chief Justice Das but drew a distinction
between reconsideration of a previous decision concerning the interpretation
436
Paragraph 17
712
85 CLR 237
713
714
439
440
441
715
public good or for any other valid and compulsive reasons, it is necessary
that the earlier decision should be revised. This Court held:
When this Court decides questions of law, its decisions are, under Article
141 binding on all courts within the territory of India and so it must be the
constant endeavour and concern of this Court to introduce and maintain an
element of certainty and continuity in the interpretation of law in the
country..That is not to say that if on a subsequent occasion, the Court is
satisfied that its earlier decision was clearly erroneous, it should hesitate to
correct the error; but before a previous decision is pronounced to be
plainly erroneous, the Court must be satisfied with a fair amount of
unanimity amongst its members that a revision of the said view is fully
justified.442
Paragraph 23
(1974) 2 SCC 402 (7 Judges Bench)
444
AIR 1967 SC 1581
443
716
which numerous cases have been decided and many transactions have taken
place is held to be not the correct law. Justice Khanna observed that new
ideas and developments in the field of law and that the fullness of experience
and indeed subsequent experience cannot be wished away. The learned judge
held:
As in life so in law things are not static. Fresh vistas and horizons may
reveal themselves as a result of the impact of new ideas and developments
in different fields of life. Law, if it has to satisfy human needs and to meet
the problems of life, must adapt itself to cope with new situations. Nobody
is so gifted with foresight that he can divine all possible human events in
advance and prescribe proper rules for each of them. There are, however,
certain verities which are of the essence of the rule of law and no law can
afford to do away with them. At the same time it has to be recognized that
there is a continuing process of the growth of law and one can retard it
only at the risk of alienating law from life itself. There should not be much
hesitation to abandon an untenable position when the rule to be discarded
was in its origin the product of institutions or conditions which have
gained a new significance or development with the progress of years. It
sometimes happens that the rule of law which grew up in remote
generations may in the fullness of experience be found to serve another
generation badly. The Court cannot allow itself to be tied down by and
become captive of a view which in the light of the subsequent experience
has been found to be patently erroneous, manifestly unreasonable or to
cause hardship or to result in plain iniquity or public inconvenience.445
252. Ganga Sugar Corporation v. State of Uttar Pradesh 446 related to the
constitutional validity of a levy under the U.P. Sugarcane (Purchase Tax) Act,
1961. The decision does not contain any detailed discussion on the subject of
reconsideration of an earlier decision of this Court. But it was nevertheless
held that decisions of a Constitution Bench must be accepted as final unless
the subject is of fundamental importance to national life or the reasoning of
the previous decision is so plainly erroneous that it is wiser to be ultimately
445
446
Paragraph 22
(1980) 1 SCC 223 (5 Judges Bench)
717
718
254. Reference was also made to several decisions earlier rendered by this
Court (including those mentioned above) and though no new or different
principles or guidelines were laid down, the law as stated by this Court was
iterated, and it was observed: It is not necessary to refer to all the cases on
the point. The broad guidelines are easily deducible from what has gone
before. The possibility of further defining these guiding principles can be
envisaged
with
further
juridical
experience,
and
when
common
256. In Gannon Dunkerley & Co. v. State of Rajasthan 450 the question
related to the imposition of tax on the transfer of property in goods involved
in the execution of works contracts. The power to impose this tax became
449
450
Paragraph 13
(1993) 1 SCC 364
719
720
In the assessment of the facts, the Court had assumed certain principles,
and sought precedential support from decisions which were irrelevant and
had followed a groove chased amidst a context which has long since
crumbled.454 Had the facts been closely scrutinised in the proper
perspective, it could have led and can only lead to the conclusion that
CSIR is a State within the meaning of Article 12.
Should Sabhajit Tewary still stand as an authority even on the facts merely
because it has stood for 25 years? We think not. Parallels may be drawn
even on the facts leading to an untenable interpretation of Article 12 and a
consequential denial of the benefits of fundamental rights to individuals
who would otherwise be entitled to them and
[T]here is nothing in our Constitution which prevents us from
departing from a previous decision if we are convinced of its error and
its baneful effect on the general interests of the public.
Since on a re-examination of the question we have come to the conclusion
that the decision was plainly erroneous, it is our duty to say so and not
perpetuate our mistake. 455 (Internal citations have been omitted).
258. One of the more interesting aspects of Pradeep Kumar Biswas is that
out of the 7 (seven) learned judges constituting the Bench, 5 learned judges
overruled the unanimous decision of another set of 5 learned judges in
Sabhajit Tewary. Two of the learned judges in Pradeep Kumar Biswas
found that Sabhajit Tewary had been correctly decided. In other words,
while a total of 7 learned judges took a particular view on an issue of fact
and law, that view was found to be incorrect by 5 learned judges, whose
decision actually holds the field today. Is the weight of numbers irrelevant?
Is it that only the numbers in a subsequent Bench are what really matters?
What would have been the position if only 4 learned judges in Pradeep
Kumar Biswas had decided to overrule Sabhajit Tewary while the remaining
3 learned judges found no error in that decision? Would a decision rendered
unanimously by a Bench of 5 learned judges stand overruled by the decision
Sabhajit Tewary was a unanimous decision of 5 learned judges of this Court. To
conclude that it sought precedential support from decisions which were irrelevant
is, with respect, rather uncharitable.
455
Paragraph 59 to 61
454
721
261. It follows from this that where a matter is of great importance, this
Court may refer the issue to a larger Bench to reconsider an earlier decision
of this Court.
262. In the Second Judges case it was observed by Justice Pandian that an
456
Paragraph 10
722
263. There is absolutely no dispute or doubt that this Court can reconsider
(and set aside) an earlier decision rendered by it. But what are the
circumstances under which the reconsideration can be sought? This Court
has debated and discussed the issue on several occasions as mentioned above
and the broad principles that can be culled out from the various decisions
suggest that:
(1) If the decision concerns an interpretation of the Constitution,
perhaps the bar for reconsideration might be lowered a bit (as in
457
458
Paragraph 17
Paragraph 19
723
724
merely because a view different from or contrary to what has been expressed
earlier is preferable is no reason to reconsider an earlier decision. The
endeavour of this Court must always be to ensure that the law is definite and
certain and continuity in the interpretation of the law is maintained.
In this regard, Raghubir Singh presents an interesting picture. Section
23(2) of the Land Acquisition Act, 1894 (as amended in 1984) was
interpreted
by
this
Court
on
14th
February,
1985
in
K.
May,
1989
in
Raghubir
Singh
and
the
law
laid
in
725
(8) Whether a decision has held the field for a long time or not is not
of much consequence. In Bengal Immunity a recent decision delivered by
the Constitution Bench was overruled; in Pradeep Kumar Biswas a decision
holding the field for a quarter of a century was overruled.
(9) Significantly, this Court has taken note of and approved the view
that the changing times might require the interpretation of the law to be
readjusted keeping in mind the infinite and variable human desires and
changed conditions due to development with the progress of years. The
interpretation of the law, valid for one generation may not necessarily be
valid for subsequent generations. This is a reality that ought to be
acknowledged as has been done by this Court in Maganlal Chhaganlal and
by Chief Justice Dickson of the Canadian Supreme Court in The Queen v.
Beauregard.462 Similarly, the social context or contemporary social
conditions or modern conceptions of public policy cannot be overlooked.
Oliver Wendell Holmes later a judge of the Supreme Court of the United
States put it
462
[1986] 2 SCR 56 wherein it is stated: With respect to the first of these arguments, I do not think s.100 [of
the Constitution Act, 1867] imposes on Parliament the duty to continue to provide judges with precisely the
same type of pension they received in 1867. The Canadian Constitution is not locked forever in a 119-year old
casket. It lives and breathes and is capable of growing to keep pace with the growth of the country and its
people. Accordingly, if the Constitution can accommodate, as it has, many subjects unknown in
1867--airplanes, nuclear energy, hydroelectric power-- it is surely not straining s. 100 too much to say that the
word `pensions', admittedly understood in one sense in 1867, can today support federal legislation based on a
different understanding of `pensions'.
726
rather pithily when he said that: But the present has a right to govern itself
so far as it can; and it ought always to be remembered that historic continuity
with the past is not a duty, it is only a necessity.463
264. It is trite that the Constitution is a living document 464 and it is also wise
to remember, in this context, what was said in R.C. Poudyal v. Union of
India465 that:
In the interpretation of a constitutional document, words are but the
framework of concepts and concepts may change more than words
themselves. The significance of the change of the concepts themselves is
vital and the constitutional issues are not solved by a mere appeal to the
meaning of the words without an acceptance of the line of their growth. It
is aptly said that the intention of a Constitution is rather to outline
principles than to engrave details.466
265. On the basis of the law as laid down by this Court and considering the
historical developments over the last six decades, it was submitted by the
learned Attorney-General that a fundamental and significant question as to
the interpretation of the Constitution has arisen; that the Second Judges case
and the Third Judges case did not correctly appreciate the Constituent
Assembly Debates on the Judiciary and that the time has now come to make
a course correction.
Conclusions on the preliminary issue
463
The law, so far as it depends on learning, is indeed, as it has been called, the government of the living
by the dead. To a very considerable extent no doubt it is inevitable that the living should be so governed.
The past gives us our vocabulary and fixes the limits of our imagination; we cannot get away from it. There
is, too, a peculiar logical pleasure in making manifest the continuity between what we are doing and what
has been done before. But the present has a right to govern itself so far as it can; and it ought always to be
remembered that historic continuity with the past is not a duty, it is only a necessity.
"Learning and Science", speech at a dinner of the Harvard Law School
Association in honor of Professor C. C. Langdell (June 25, 1895); reported in Speeches
by Oliver Wendell Holmes (1896). p. 67-68
464
I.R. Coelho v. State of Tamil Nadu, (2007) 2 SCC 1 paragraph 42
465
1994 Supp (1) SCC 324
466
1994 Supp (1) SCC 324 paragraph 124
727
467
In his concluding speech, Br. Rajendra Prasad used the expression distribution of powers and not
separation of powers. See: http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol11p12.htm
728
729
the President while Article 145 enables the Supreme Court to make rules for
regulating the practice and procedure of the Court with the approval of the
President.
268. There is quite clearly an entire host of parliamentary and legislative
checks placed on the judiciary whereby its administrative functioning can be
and is controlled, but these do not necessarily violate the theory of separation
of powers or infringe the independence of the judiciary as far as decision
making is concerned. As has been repeatedly held, the theory of separation
of powers is not rigidly implemented in our Constitution, but if there is an
overlap in the form of a check with reference to an essential or a basic
function or element of one organ of State as against another, a constitutional
issue does arise. It is in this context that the 99th Constitution Amendment
Act has to be viewed whether it impacts on a basic or an essential element
of the independence of the judiciary, namely, its decisional independence.
269. The learned Attorney-General is not right in his submission that the
Second Judges case overlooked the separation of powers and the CAD and
incorrectly interpreted the provisions of the Constitution particularly Article
124(2) thereof. This is a rather narrow understanding of the Second Judges
case which, amongst others, considered the interpretation of Article 50 of the
Constitution, constitutional history and conventions, the entire spectrum of
issues relating to the appointment of judges in the context of the
independence of the judiciary, transparency and sharing of information
730
270. The learned Attorney-General is also not right in reducing the Second
Judges case to only one aspect the decision of this Court has to be
appreciated as a part of the larger constitutional scheme relating to the
independence of the judiciary. The learned Attorney-General may or may not
468
731
agree with the interpretation given by this Court to the constitutional scheme
but that is no indication that the theory of the separation of powers has
broken down. If there is an interpretational error, it can be corrected only by
the judiciary, or by a suitable amendment to the Constitution that does not
violate its basic structure.
271. No one thought that this Court, in the Second Judges case, had
erroneously interpreted or misunderstood the constitutional scheme
concerning the appointment of judges and the independence of the judiciary.
There were some problem areas and these were referred to this Court in the
form of questions raised by the President seeking the advisory opinion of this
Court in the Third Judges case. The correctness of the decision rendered in
the Second Judges case was not in doubt and to remove any
misunderstanding in this regard the learned Attorney-General categorically
stated in the Third Judges case that the Union of India is not seeking a
review or reconsideration of the judgment in the Second Judges case.
Therefore, neither the President nor the Union of India nor anybody else for
that matter sought a reconsideration of the Second Judges case. There is no
reason (apart from an absence of a reason at law) why such a request should
be entertained at this stage, except on a fanciful misunderstanding of the law
by the Union of India.
272. The contention of the learned Attorney-General is that the
appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court or a High Court is an executive
732
function and that has been taken over by the judiciary by a process of
judicial encroachment through a right to insist thereby breaking down the
separation of power theory. It is not possible to accept this line of thought.
The appointment of a judge is an executive function of the President and it
continues to be so. However, the constitutional convention established even
before Independence has been that a judge is appointed only if the Chief
Justice of India or the Chief Justice of the High Court gives his/her nod to
the appointment. This position continued even after Independence. Justice
Kuldip Singh summarized the appointments position in the Second Judges
case in the following words:
(i) The executive had absolute power to appoint the Judges under the
Government of India Act, 1935. Despite that all the appointments made
thereunder were made with the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India.
(ii) A convention had come to be established by the year 1948 that
appointment of a Judge could only be made with the concurrence of the
Chief Justice of India.
(iii) All the appointments to the Supreme Court from 1950 to 1959 were
made with the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India. 210 out of 211
appointments made to the High Courts during that period were also with
the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India.
(iv) Mr Gobind Ballabh Pant, Home Minister of India, declared on the
floor of the Parliament on November 24, 1959 that appointment of Judges
were virtually being made by the Chief Justice of India and the executive
was only an order-issuing authority.
(v) Mr Ashoke Sen, the Law Minister reiterated in the Parliament on
November 25, 1959 that almost all the appointments made to the Supreme
Court and the High Courts were made with the concurrence of the Chief
Justice of India.
(iv) Out of 547 appointments of Judges made during the period January 1,
1983 to April 10, 1993 only 7 were not in consonance with the views
expressed by the Chief Justice of India.471
273. These facts and figures clearly indicate that at least since 1935, if not
earlier, the appointment of judges was made in accordance with the view of
471
Paragraph 371
733
the Chief Justice of India or the Chief Justice of the High Court as the case
may be. There were aberrations but these appear to have mainly taken place
only after Independence, as mentioned above. But even in those cases where
there were aberrations pre-1959 (with the Chief Justice of the High Court
having been by-passed) the concurrence of the Chief Justice of India was
taken. The executive, therefore, never had real primacy in the matter of
appointment of judges. But, post the First Judges case the executive exerted
its newly given absolute primacy in the appointment of judges and the
aberrations increased. Surely, the executive cannot take advantage of the
aberrations caused at its instance and then employ them as an argument that
no constitutional convention existed regarding the concurrence of the Chief
Justice of India. On the contrary, the aberrations indicate the stealthy attempt
of the political executive to subvert the independence of the judiciary
through appointments that were not necessarily merit-based, and the
submissions advanced before us suggest that henceforth the independence of
the judiciary may not necessarily be sacrosanct. It is for this reason that the
Bar has fought back to preserve and protect the existing conventions and
practices and will, hopefully maintain its vigil.
274. In The Pocket Veto case472 the US Supreme Court referred to a long
standing practice as an interpretation to a constitutional provision, which
would be equally applicable to India. It was said:
472
734
The views which we have expressed as to the construction and effect of
the constitutional provision here in question are confirmed by the practical
construction that has been given to it by the Presidents through a long
course of years, in which Congress has acquiesced. Long settled and
established practice is a consideration of great weight in a proper
interpretation of constitutional provisions of this character. Compare
Missouri Pac. Ry. Co. v. Kansas473; Myers v. United States474; and State v.
South Norwalk475 in which the court said that a practice of at least twenty
years' duration on the part of the executive department, acquiesced in by
the legislative department, while not absolutely binding on the judicial
department, is entitled to great regard in determining the true construction
of a constitutional provision the phraseology of which is in any respect of
doubtful meaning.
735
736
the dicta laid down by this Court. The path taken by this Court was in
consonance with the views of the Constituent Assembly, in that in the
appointment of judges, no constitutional functionary could act in an
individual capacity but the Chief Justice of India and other judges were well
qualified to give the correct advice to the President in a matter of this sort,
and that ought to be accepted as long as it was unanimous.
277. The debate on 24th May, 1949 discloses that a variety of options were
available before the Constituent Assembly with regard to the procedure for
the appointment of judges of the Supreme Court and the High Court.
278. One of the available methods was to have the appointment of a judge
approved by the Council of State. This was opposed by Mr. R.K. Sidhwa
(C.P. & Berar: General) who was of the opinion that if the appointment is left
to the Council of State then there is a possibility of canvassing in which
event the issue of ability etc. of a person recommended for appointment as a
judge will cease to be relevant. Mr. Sidhwa was of the opinion that this
method would be the same as an election, although Prof. K.T. Shah thought
otherwise. The proposal was also opposed by Mr. Biswanath Das (Orissa:
General) who referred to this method of appointment as laying down a very
dangerous principle.
279. Another method of appointment discussed was to leave the process
entirely to the President. Mr. Rohini Kumar Chaudhari (Assam: General)
apparently supported that view and went on to suggest that the amendment
737
738
739
final say in the matter then the judiciary is, in a sense, under some other
authority and therefore not independent to that extent. This would be a
rejection of the views of Dr. Ambedkar and a negation of the views of the
Constituent Assembly.
283. From the debates of the Constituent Assembly it is evident that Dr.
Ambedkars objection was to the suggestion that only the Chief Justice of
India (as an individual) should have the final say in the matter. There is
nothing to suggest that the Constituent Assembly had any objection to an
integrated consultative participatory process as mentioned in the Second
Judges case and the Third Judges case or, as Dr. Rajeev Dhavan described
it as institutional participation in the matter of appointment of judges. The
objection only was to one person (the President or the Chief Justice of India)
having a final say in the matter and that one person (the Chief Justice of
India) could possibly suffer from the same frailties as any one of us and this
is what Dr. Ambedkar sought to emphasize in his objection. It must be
appreciated that when the debate took place (on 24 th May, 1949) the
appointment of judges was, due to the insertion of clause (5)a in Article 62 of
the Draft Constitution477 considered to be the responsibility of the President
acting on his own and not through the Council of Ministers. That this theory
was in the process of being given up (and was actually given up) is a
477
740
different matter altogether. Alternatively, if the thinking at that time was that
the President was to act only the advice of the Council of Ministers (and not
as an individual having unfettered discretion) there can today possibly be no
objection to the Chief Justice of India acting institutionally on the views of
his/her colleagues and not, as desired by Dr. Ambedkar, as an individual. In
other words, constitutionalism in India has undergone a positive
transformation and the objection that Dr. Ambedkar had to any individual
having the final say is rendered non-existent. In view of Samsher Singh the
President cannot act in an individual capacity (except to a limited extent) and
in view of the Second Judges case and the Third Judges case the Chief
Justice of India cannot act in an individual capacity (except to a limited
extent). The Constitution being an organic and living document must be and
has been interpreted positively and meaningfully.
284. It is this philosophy, of the Constitution being an organic and living
document that ought to be positively and meaningfully interpreted, that is to
be found in Samsher Singh. It is this constructive interpretation read with
the CAD that made the advice of the Council of Ministers binding on the
President and not a take it or leave it advice. Similarly, consultation with
the Chief Justice of India has to be understood in this light and not as a
consulted and opinion rejected situation.
285. It is not correct to suggest, as did the learned Attorney-General, that
the theory of separation of powers in the Constitution has been torpedoed by
741
742
743
289. This is not to say that the Second Judges case and the Third Judges
case do not leave any gaps. Perhaps better institutionalization and fine tuning
of the scheme laid down in these decisions is required, but nothing more.
But, in view of the submission made by the learned Attorney-General that
the only question for consideration is the constitutional validity of the 99th
Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act the issue of reconsideration
becomes academic and it is not at all necessary at present to express any
further view on this. By the 99th Constitution Amendment Act the word
consultation has been deleted from Article 124(2) and Article 217(1) of the
Constitution. Therefore the question whether that word has been correctly
interpreted in the Second Judges case or not is today completely academic.
A new constitutional regime has been put in place and that has to be tested as
it is. It is only if the 99th Constitution Amendment Act is held as violating the
basic structure of the Constitution and is declared unconstitutional that the
fine tuning and filling in the gaps in the Second Judges case and the Third
Judges case would arise.
290. Hence the only question now is whether the 99 th Constitution
Amendment Act violates the basic structure of the Constitution and to decide
this question it is not necessary to reconsider the Second Judges case or the
Third Judges case. This is apart from the fact that reconsideration is not
warranted at law, even on merits.
744
Rule of Law
291. On the merits of the controversy before us, it is necessary to proceed
on the basis that there is no doubt that the CAD, the Constitution and judicial
pronouncements guarantee the independence of the judiciary. Does the
independence of the judiciary include the appointment of a judge? According
to the learned Attorney-General, the appointment of judges is a part of the
independence of the judiciary, but not a predominant part.
292. Before considering these issues, it is necessary to appreciate the role
of the Rule of Law in our constitutional history. It has been said: Ultimately,
it is the rule of law, not the judges, which provides the foundation for
personal freedom and responsible government.479
293. The Rule of Law is recognized as a basic feature of our Constitution.
It is in this context that the aphorism, Be you ever so high, the law is above
you is acknowledged and implemented by the Judiciary. If the Rule of Law
is a basic feature of our Constitution, so must be the independence of the
judiciary since the enforcement of the Rule of Law requires an independent
judiciary as its integral and critical component.
294. Justice Mathew concluded in Indira Nehru Gandhi that according to
some judges constituting the majority in Kesavananda Bharati the Rule of
Law is a basic structure of the Constitution.480
479
Judicial Independence and the Rule of Law by Jonathan K. Van Patten, Volume 2 Benchmark page 117,
129 (1986)
480
Paragraph 335
745
Paragraph 149
Paragraph 27 and paragraph 83
483
Paragraph 320
484
Paragraph 634
485
Paragraph 56
486
Paragraph 331
487
Paragraph 421
488
Paragraph 502
489
(1991) 4 SCC 699 (Five Judges Bench)
482
746
299. This view was reiterated by the learned judge in yet another dissent,
that is, in Krishna Swami v. Union of India.493
300. In Union of India v. Madras Bar Association494 speaking for the
Court, Justice Raveendran held:
The rule of law has several facets, one of which is that disputes of citizens
will be decided by Judges who are independent and impartial; and that
disputes as to legality of acts of the Government will be decided by Judges
who are independent of the executive.495
490
Paragraph 16
(1994) 3 SCC 569 (Five Judges Bench)
492
Paragraph 412
493
(1992) 4 SCC 605 paragraph 66
494
(2010) 11 SCC 1 (Five Judges Bench)
495
Paragraph 101
491
747
301. Finally, in State of Tamil Nadu it was unanimously held by the Bench
speaking through Chief Justice Lodha that the independence of the judiciary
is fundamental to the Rule of Law:
Independence of courts from the executive and legislature is fundamental
to the rule of law and one of the basic tenets of Indian Constitution.
Separation of judicial power is a significant constitutional principle under
the Constitution of India.496
302. The view that the Rule of Law and the independence of the judiciary
go hand in hand and are a part of the basic structure of the Constitution has
been acknowledged in several other decisions as well and is no longer in
dispute, nor was it disputed by any of the learned counsel before us. It is,
therefore, not necessary to cite a train of cases in this regard, except to
conclude that the Rule of Law and the independence of the judiciary are
intertwined and inseparable and a part of the basic structure of our
Constitution.
Independence of the judiciary its nature and content
303. What are the attributes of an independent judiciary? It is impossible to
define them, except illustratively. At this stage, it is worth recalling the
words of Sir Ninian Stephen, a former Judge of the High Court of Australia
who memorably said: [An] independent judiciary, although a formidable
protector of individual liberty, is at the same time a very vulnerable
institution, a fragile bastion indeed.497 It is this fragile bastion that needs
496
497
Paragraph 126.2
Southey Memorial Lecture, 1981
748
498
Former President of the Supreme Court of the United Kingdom and Lord Chief Justice of England and
Wales
499
Article 124(2)
500
Article 124(4)
749
Article 125
Article 112(2)(d)
503
Article 113
504
Article 217
505
Article 218
506
Article 202
507
Article 112(3)(d)
502
750
but shall not be submitted to the vote of the Legislative Assembly. 508 The
conditions of service of a High Court judge are governed by the High Court
Judges (Salaries and Conditions of Service) Act, 1954 in terms of Article 221
of the Constitution.
310. The entire package of rights and protections ensures that a judge
remains independent and is free to take a decision in accordance with law
unmindful of the consequences to his/her continuance as a judge. This does
not mean that a judge may take whatever decision he/she desires to take. The
parameters of decision making and discretion are circumscribed by the
Constitution, the statute and the Rule of Law. This is the essence of
decisional independence, not that judges can do as they please.
311. In this context, Justice Anthony M. Kennedy of the US Supreme Court
had this to say before the United States Senate Committee on the Judiciary
(Judicial Security and Independence) on 14th February, 2007:
Judicial independence is not conferred so judges can do as they please.
Judicial independence is conferred so judges can do as they must. A
judiciary with permanent tenure, with a sufficient degree of separation
from other branches of government, and with the undoubted obligation to
resist improper influence is essential to the Rule of Law as we have come
to understand that term.509
Article 203
http://www.judiciary.senate.gov/imo/media/doc/kennedy_testimony_02_14_07.pdf
510
[1895] 1 Q.B. 668, 670
509
751
maliciously and contrary to good faith. By the common law of England it
is the law that no such action will lie.
516
The administrative
752
expenses of the Supreme Court, including expenses related to its officers and
servants shall be charged upon the Consolidated Fund of India.517
314. Significantly, no discussion shall take place in Parliament with respect
to the conduct of a judge of the Supreme Court or the High Court, except in
proceedings for impeachment.518 Similarly, the Legislature of a State shall
not discuss the conduct of a judge of the Supreme Court or the High Court in
the discharge of his or her duties.519
315. In addition to the above, there are other general protections available
to an individual judge or to the institution as such. Through Article 50 520
which is a provision in Part IV of the Constitution (Granville Austin in The
Constitution: Cornerstone of a Nation describes Part III and Part IV of the
Constitution as the conscience of the Constitution)521 the judiciary shall be
insulated from executive interference. Justice Krishna Iyer speaking for
himself and Justice Fazl Ali pointed out in Sankalchand Sheth that:
Under the general law of civil liability (Tort) words spoken or written in
the discharge of his judicial duties by a Judge of the High Court are
absolutely privileged and no action for defamation can lie in respect of
such words. This absolute immunity is conferred on the Judges on the
ground of public policy, namely, that they can thereby discharge their duty
fearlessly.522
Article 146. The corresponding constitutional provision for the High Court is Article 229.
Article 121
519
Article 211
520
Article 50: The State shall take steps to separate the judiciary from the executive in the public services of
the State.
521
Page 50
522
Paragraph 77
518
753
word committed, done or spoken by him when, or in the course of, acting or
purporting to act in the discharge of his official or judicial duty or function.
This is in addition to the protection given by Section 77 of the Indian Penal
Code which provides that: Nothing is an offence which is done by a Judge
when acting judicially in the exercise of any power which is, or which in
good faith he believes to be, given to him by law.
317. In the overall conspectus and structure of the independence of the
judiciary, it was stated in the First Judges case by Justice D.A. Desai that:
Independence of judiciary under the Constitution has to be interpreted
within the framework and the parameters of the Constitution. 523 It may be
added that the framework and parameters of the law are also required to be
taken into consideration. Justice Bhagwati put it quite succinctly when he
said:
The concept of independence of the judiciary is not limited only to
independence from executive pressure or influence but it is a much wider
concept which takes within its sweep independence from many other
pressures and prejudices. It has many dimensions, namely, fearlessness of
other power centres, economic or political, and freedom from prejudices
acquired and nourished by the class to which the Judges belong.524
523
524
Paragraph 709
Paragraph 27
754
755
Constitution, Dr. Ambedkar said that it had been the desire for a long time
that there should be a separation of the judiciary from the executive and a
demand for this had been continuing ever since the Congress (party) was
founded. The British Government, however, did not give any effect to this
demand. Dr. Ambedkar moved for the insertion of Article 39A in the Draft
Constitution in the following words:
I do not think it is necessary for me to make any very lengthy statement in
support of the amendment which I have moved. It has been the desire of
this country from long past that there should be separation of the judiciary
from the executive and the demand has been continued right from the time
when the Congress was founded. Unfortunately, the British Government
did not give effect to the resolutions of the Congress demanding this
particular principle being introduced into the administration of the country.
We think that the time has come when this reform should be carried out. It
is, of course, realized that there may be certain difficulties in the carrying
out of this reform; consequently this amendment has taken into
consideration two particular matters which may be found to be matters of
difficulty. One is this: that we deliberately did not make it a matter of
fundamental principle, because if we had made it a matter of fundamental
principle it would have become absolutely obligatory instantaneously on
the passing of the Constitution to bring about the separation of the judiciary
and the executive. We have therefore deliberately put this matter in the
chapter dealing with directive principles and there too we have provided
that this reform shall be carried out within three years, so that there is no
room left for what might be called procrastination in a matter of this kind.
Sir, I move.528
323. Mr. B. Das (Orissa: General) opposed the amendment on the ground
that when the people were harassed by the British Government, the feeling
527
39-A. That State shall take steps to secure that, within a period of three years from the commencement of
this Constitution, there is separation of the judiciary from the executive in the public services of the State.
528
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol7p12.htm
756
was that no justice was given and that is why there was a demand for the
separation of the judiciary from the executive. After Independence that
suspicion did not exist and therefore it was essential to examine whether
separation was necessary.
324. The debate continued the next day on 25th November, 1948 when, as
soon as the Constituent Assembly met, Dr. Ambedkar moved an amendment
for the deletion of certain words from Article 39A of the Draft Constitution.
As a result of this proposed amendment, Article 39A would read as follows:
The State shall take steps to separate the judiciary from the executive in
the public services of the State.
325. During the course of the debate on 25th November, 1948 a self-evident
truth came into focus. It was pointed out by Pandit Jawaharlal Nehru (United
Provinces: General) that the Constitution is expected to last a long time and
that it should not be rigid. As far as the basic nature of the Constitution is
concerned it must deal with fundamental aspects of the political, social,
economic and other spheres and not with the details which are matters for
legislation. It was stated in this context as follows:
Coming to this present amendment, if I may again make some general
observations with all respect to this House, it is this: that I have felt that
the dignity of a Constitution is not perhaps maintained sufficiently if one
goes into too great detail in that Constitution. A Constitution is something
which should last a long time, which is built on a strong foundation, and
which may of course be varied from time to time it should not be rigid
nevertheless, one should think of it as something which is going to last,
which is not a transitory Constitution, a provisional Constitution, a
something which you are going to change from day to day, a something
which has provisions for the next year or the year after next and so on and
so forth. It may be necessary to have certain transitory provisions. It will
be necessary, because there is a change to have some such provisions, but
so far as the basic nature of the Constitution is concerned, it must deal with
757
the fundamental aspects of the political, the social, the economic and other
spheres, and not with the details which are matters for legislation. You will
find that if you go into too great detail and mix up the really basic and
fundamental things with the important but nevertheless secondary things,
you bring the basic things to the level of the secondary things too. You lose
them in a forest of detail. The great trees that you should like to plant and
wait for them to grow and to be seen are hidden in a forest of detail and
smaller trees. I have felt that we are spending a great deal of time on
undoubtedly important matters, but nevertheless secondary matters
matters which are for legislation, not for a Constitution. However, that is a
general observation.529
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol7p13.htm
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol7p13.htm
758
judiciary and expressed the view that as far back as in 1852 when public
opinion in Bengal began to express itself in an organized manner that the
matter of separation was first mooted. In other words, the separation of the
executive from the judiciary had been in demand for almost 100 years.
328. Dr. Bakshi Tek Chand was of the view that with Independence, the
necessity of this reform had become greater. The Honble Member cited
three illustrative instances of interference with the judiciary by Ministers of
some Provinces and members of political parties in the fair administration of
justice. Dr. Bakshi Tek Chand gave these extremely telling examples and it is
best to quote what was said:
One word more I have to say in this connection and that is, that with the
advent of democracy and freedom, the necessity of this reform has become
all the greater. Formerly it was only the district magistrate and a few
members of the bureaucratic Government from whom interference with the
judiciary was apprehended, but now, I am very sorry to say that even the
Ministers in some provinces and members of political parties have begun to
interfere with the administration of justice. Those of you, who may be
reading news paper reports of judicial decisions lately, must have been
struck with this type of interference which has been under review in the
various High Courts lately. In one province we found that in a case pending
in a Criminal Court, the Ministry sent for the record and passed an order
directing the trying Magistrate to stay proceedings in the case. This was
something absolutely unheard of. The matter eventually went up to the
High Court and the learned Chief Justice and another Judge had to pass
very strong remarks against such executive interference with the
administration of justice
In another province a case was being tried against a member of the
Legislative Assembly and a directive went from the District Magistrate to
the Magistrate trying the case not to proceed with it further and to release
the man. The Magistrate who was a member of the Judicial Service and
was officiating as a Magistrate had the strength to resist this demand. He
had all those letters put on the record and eventually the matter went to the
High Court and the Chief Justice of the Calcutta High Court made very
strong remarks about this matter.
Again in the Punjab, a case has recently occurred in which a Judge of the
High Court, Mr. Justice Achru Ram, heard a habeas corpus petition and
delivered a judgment of 164 pages at the conclusion of which he observed
that the action taken by the District Magistrate and the Superintendent of
759
Police against a member of the Congress Party was mala fide and was the
result of a personal vendetta. These were his remarks.
In these circumstances, I submit that with the change of circumstances and
with the advent of freedom and the introduction of democracy, it has
become all the more necessary to bring about the separation of the judiciary
from the executive at the earliest possible opportunity.531
329. The debate concluded on 25th November, 1948 with the Constituent
Assembly eventually accepting the insertion of Article 39A in the Draft
Constitution. This is now Article 50 in our Constitution.
330. The importance of the debate must be looked at not only from a
historical perspective but also what was intended for the future by the
Constituent Assembly. In the past there had been unabashed interference by
the executive in the administration of justice by the subordinate judiciary and
this definitely needed to be checked. In that sense, the debate on 24 th and 25th
November, 1948 was a precursor to the debate on Article 103 of the Draft
Constitution held on 23rd and 24th May, 1949. By that time it was becoming
clear (if it was not already clear) to the Constituent Assembly that there
should be no interference by the executive in the administration of justice and
that it was not necessary to provide for every detail in the Draft Constitution.
That constitutional conventions existed prior to Independence were known,
but that they were required to be continued after Independence was of equal
significance.
331. With the need for avoiding details in the Constitution, the Draft
Constitution did not specifically provide for the independence of the judiciary
other than the subordinate judiciary. If this is looked at quite plainly, it would
531
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol7p13.htm
760
appear anachronistic to hold a view that Article 39A of the Draft Constitution
required the subordinate judiciary to be independent and separate from the
executive but it was not necessary for the superior judiciary to be
independent or separate. Such an obvious anachronism cannot be attributed
to the Constituent Assembly. One must, therefore, assume that either the
superior judiciary was already independent (and this needed no iteration) or
that if it was not independent then, like the subordinate judiciary, it must be
made independent, with the executive not being permitted to interfere in the
administration of justice. Either way, separation between the judiciary and the
executive with the intention of having an independent judiciary was a
desirable objective.
332. No one can doubt and, indeed, even the learned Attorney-General did
not doubt that the independence of the judiciary is absolutely necessary. But,
the independence of the judiciary is not an end in itself. Instead, the aim is
to secure an independent judiciary that will discharge its fundamental
responsibilities, which include a crucial role in upholding the rule of law. 532
In addition, the judiciary should clearly be separate from the executive.
333. By way of digression, a word may also be said about the financial
independence of the judiciary. In a letter of 15th June, 2008 forwarding the
Report of the Task Force on Judicial Impact Assessment it was pointed out
by Justice M. Jagannadha Rao (Retired) to the Minister for Law and Justice
532
J. van Zyl Smit, The Appointment, Tenure and Removal of Judges under Commonwealth Principles: A
Compendium and Analysis of Best Practice (Report of Research Undertaken by Bingham Centre for the
Rule of Law) paragraph 0.2.9
761
534
Granville Austin Working a Democratic Constitution: The Indian Experience page 124
Second Judges case, paragraph 49, 335 and 447.
762
observed that in
respect of the commissioning of all officers of the United States, the clauses
in the Constitution and the laws of the United States seem to contemplate
three distinct operations, namely:
1. The nomination. This is the sole act of the president, and is completely
voluntary.
2. The appointment. This is also the act of the president, and is also a
voluntary act, though it can only be performed by and with the advice and
consent of the senate.
3. The commission. To grant a commission to a person appointed, might
perhaps be deemed a duty enjoined by the constitution. He shall, says
that instrument, commission all the officers of the United States.536
336. Transposing this to the appointment of judges in our country, the first
step is a recommendation (or nomination) of persons for appointment as
judges. Historically, the recommendation is made by the Chief Justice of
India for the appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court and by the Chief
Justice of a High Court for appointment of a judge to the High Court.
Occasionally, the Chief Minister of a State also makes a recommendation,
but that is required to be routed through the Chief Justice of the High Court.
There is no instance of the President recommending any person for
appointment as a judge of the Supreme Court.
337. The second step is the appointment of a judge and this is possible only
535
536
763
Contributors: Professor Dr Jutta Limbach, Professor Dr Pedro Villalon, Roger Errera, The Rt Hon Lord
Lester of Herne Hill QC, Professor Dr Tamara Morschakova, The Rt Hon Lord Justice Sedley, Professor Dr
Andrzej Zoll. Available at http://www.interights.org/document/142/index.html
764
The independence of the judiciary is one of the cornerstones of the rule of
law. Rather than being elected by the people, judges derive their authority
and legitimacy from their independence from political or other
interference. It is clear from the existing international standards that the
selection and appointment of judges plays a key role in the safeguarding of
judicial independence and ensuring the most competent individuals are
selected.
342. Jack Straw was the Lord Chancellor in the United Kingdom from 2007
to 2010. He delivered the 64th series of Hamlyn Lectures in 2012 titled
Aspects of Law Reform An Insiders Perspective. The 3rd lecture in that
series was delivered by him on 4th December, 2012 on Judicial
Appointments. In that lecture, he says:
The appointment of judges - by whom, according to what standards and
process, and with what outcome is of critical importance. To maintain a
judiciary that is independent, which makes good decisions, and in whom
the public can continue to have confidence, we need to appoint the most
meritorious candidates and secure a judiciary that is as reflective as
possible of the society it is serving.
538
As agreed by Law Ministers and endorsed by the Commonwealth Heads of Government Meeting, Abuja,
Nigeria, 2003
539
http://thecommonwealth.org/sites/default/files/history-items/documents/LatimerHousePrinciples.pdf
765
And we need to get it right first time, every time, because, once appointed
to a full-time salaried position, judges may not be removed from office
other than in the most extreme of circumstances.540
Page 52
766
346. In the Second Judges case Justice Pandian was quite explicit and
expressed the view that the selection and appointment of a proper and fit
candidate to the superior judiciary is inseparable from the independence of
the judiciary and a vital condition in securing it.543 Similarly, Justice Kuldip
Singh also held that there cannot be an independent judiciary when the
power of appointment of judges rests with the executive and that the
independence of the judiciary is inextricably linked and connected with the
constitutional process of appointment of judges of the higher judiciary.544
541
Paragraph 1033
Paragraph 886
543
Paragraph 49
544
Paragraph 335
542
767
Justice Verma, speaking for the majority, expressed the view that all
constitutional authorities involved in the process of appointing judges of the
superior courts should be fully alive to the serious implications of their
constitutional obligation and be zealous in its discharge in order to ensure
that no doubtful appointment can be made. 545 The learned judge further said
that the independence of the judiciary can be safeguarded by preventing the
influence of political consideration in making appointment of judges to the
superior judiciary.546
347. There is, therefore, no doubt that the appointment of a judge to the
Supreme Court or the High Court is an integral part of the independence of
the judiciary. It is not possible to agree with the learned Attorney-General
when he says that though the appointment of a judge is a part of the
independence of the judiciary, it is but a small part and certainly not a
predominant part. I would say that it is really the foundational part of the
independence of the judiciary.
348. Shimon Shetreet has this to say on the appointment of judges:
In any system, the methods of appointment have direct bearing on both
the integrity and independence of the judges. Weak appointments lower the
status of the judiciary in the eyes of the public and create a climate in
which the necessary independence of the judiciary is likely to be
undermined. Similarly, political appointments that are seen by the public
as not based on merit may arouse concern about the judges independence
and impartiality on the bench. The quality of judicial appointments
depends upon the process and standards applied by the appointing
authorities, yet every appointment system has its limitation. It is difficult to
predict what sort of judge a man or woman will be and irreversible
mistakes in judicial appointments are bound to occur, even when the
method of appointment is fair and efficient and the standards are high, as
545
546
Paragraph 431
Paragraph 447
768
they are in England. Such errors in selection apply equally to appointing
persons who were unfit for occupying a judicial office as well as failing to
appoint a person who might have been a good judge.547
To enable the judiciary to achieve its objectives and perform its functions,
it is essential that judges be chosen on the basis of proven competence,
integrity and independence.550
The mode of appointment of judges must be such as will ensure the
appointment of persons who are best qualified for judicial office. It must
provide safeguards against improper influences being taken into account so
that only persons of competence, integrity and independence are
appointed.551
Judges on Trial: The Independence and Accountability of the English Judiciary, Chapter 4
As amended at Manila on 28th August, 1997. This has been referred to in Vishaka v. State of Rajasthan,
(1997) 6 SCC 241 in paragraph 11 of the Report.
549
Clause 3
550
Clause 11
551
Clause 12
552
The six values are: Independence, Impartiality, Integrity, Propriety, Equality, Competence and Diligence
548
769
held and is held that the process for appointment and the actual appointment
of a judge to a High Court or the Supreme Court is a predominant part of the
independence of the judiciary and, therefore, an integral part of the basic
structure of the Constitution.
351. Therefore, the procedure for the appointment of judges of the Supreme
Court or the High Courts can impact on the independence of the judiciary
and the basic structure of the Constitution.
It is not necessary, for the purposes of this discussion, to get into the controversy whether the
recommendation of a person to be considered for appointment should originate from the executive or the
judiciary.
770
who
may
eventually
be
appointed
judge.
In
the
554
555
771
556
557
772
773
774
not from the days of the Government of India Act, 1919 then certainly from
the days of the Government of India Act, 1935. This constitutional
convention has been exhaustively dealt with by Justice Kuldip Singh in the
Second Judges case and it was concluded that a constitutional convention is
as binding as constitutional law.559 In any event, there is no cogent reason to
discard a constitutional convention if it is working well. At this stage, it is
useful to recall the comment of Chief Justice Beg in State of Rajasthan v.
Union of India560 that: constitutional practice and convention become so
interlinked with or attached to constitutional provisions and are often so
important and vital for grasping the real purpose and function of
constitutional provisions that the two cannot often be viewed apart. This is
precisely what has happened in the present case where constitutional
conventions and practices are so interlinked to the constitutional provisions
that they are difficult to disassemble.
362. It is this constitutional interpretation and constitutional convention that
results in binding the recommendation of the Chief Justice of India on the
executive that is objected to by the learned Attorney-General as being
contrary to the Constitution as framed and it is this that is sought to be
corrected by the 99th Constitution Amendment Act.
363. The issue may be looked at from yet another angle. Assuming, the
executive rejects the recommendation of the Chief Justice of India even after
559
560
775
its unanimous reiteration, what is the solution to the impasse that is created?
The answer is to be found in Samsher Singh and reiterated in Sankalchand
Sheth. It was held in Samsher Singh that in such an event, the decision of
the executive is open to judicial scrutiny. It was said:
In all conceivable cases consultation with that highest dignitary of Indian
justice will and should be accepted by the Government of India and the
Court will have an opportunity to examine if any other extraneous
circumstances have entered into the verdict of the Minister, if he departs
from the counsel given by the Chief Justice of India.561
Paragraph 149
Paragraph 41
776
that the judiciary should have a final say in the matter so as not to make the
consultation process a mere formality, is quite apparent from the fact that the
Constituent Assembly deliberately drew a distinction between the
appointment by the President of a judge of the Supreme Court and a judge of
the High Court (on the one hand) and the appointment by the President of
other constitutional authorities. For the appointment of a judge, it is
mandated in the Constitution that the President must consult the Chief
Justice of India. However, to appoint the Comptroller and Auditor General
under Article 148 of the Constitution (for example), the President is under no
such obligation to consult anybody even though the position is one of vital
importance. Dr. Ambedkar had said in this regard:
I cannot say I am very happy about the position which the Draft
Constitution, including the amendments which have been moved to the
articles relating to the Auditor-General in this House, assigns to him.
Personally speaking for myself, I am of opinion that this dignitary or
officer is probably the most important officer in the Constitution of India.
He is the one man who is going to see that the expenses voted by
Parliament are not exceeded, or varied from what has been laid down by
Parliament in what is called the Appropriation Act. If this functionary is to
carry out the duties - and his duties, I submit, are far more important than
the duties even of the judiciary - he should have been certainly as
independent as the Judiciary. But, comparing the articles about the
Supreme Court and the articles relating to the Auditor-General, I cannot
help saying that we have not given him the same independence which we
have given to the Judiciary, although I personally feel that he ought to have
far greater independence than the Judiciary itself.563
http://parliamentofindia.nic.in/ls/debates/vol8p11a.htm
777
564
565
778
judges violates the basic structure of the Constitution. Can the Judiciary be
independent if the appointment process is in the hands of the National
Judicial Appointments Commission?
779
(b) The Bill may be moved in either House of Parliament; (c) The Bill ought
to be passed in each House by a majority of the total membership of that
House and by a majority of not less than two-thirds of the members of that
House present and voting; (d) The Bill shall be presented to the President
who shall give his assent to the Bill and thereupon the Constitution shall
stand amended in accordance with the terms of that Bill.
371. There is a proviso to Article 368 of the Constitution and for the
present purposes, the further requirement is that if such amendment seeks to
make any change in Chapter IV of Part V (The Union Judiciary) and
Chapter V of Part VI (The High Courts in the States) the amendment shall
also require to be ratified by the Legislatures of the States by resolution to
that effect passed by those Legislatures before the Bill making provision for
such amendment is presented to the President for assent.
372. As far the Constitution (One Hundred and Twenty-first Amendment)
Bill, 2014 is concerned, there is no doubt or dispute that the procedure
mentioned above was followed and that it received the assent of the
780
781
377. Justice Shelat and Justice Grover looked at the text of Article 368 as it
stood prior to its amendment by the 24th Constitution Amendment Act and
observed that there is intrinsic evidence to suggest that the amending power
of Parliament is limited. However widely worded the power might be, it
cannot be used to render the Constitution to lose its character or nature or
identity and it has to be exercised within the framework of the Constitution.
566
Paragraph 287
Article 8 and 10 of the UDHR are relevant in this regard:
Article 8: Everyone has the right to an effective remedy by the competent national tribunals for
acts violating the fundamental rights granted him by the constitution or by law.
Article 10: Everyone is entitled in full equality to a fair and public hearing by an independent and
impartial tribunal, in the determination of his rights and obligations and of any criminal charge against him.
568
Paragraph 475
567
782
378. Justice Hegde and Justice Mukherjea observed that Article 368 cannot
be interpreted in a narrow and pedantic manner but must be given a broad
and liberal interpretation. It was observed that the word amendment has no
precise meaning and that it is a colourless word. In fact, the words
amendment and amend have been used in the Constitution in different
places with different connotations. Notwithstanding this, the learned judges
were of the view that the meaning of these expressions cannot be as
expansive as to enable Parliament to change the personality of the
Constitution since its scheme and structure proceed on the basis that there
are certain basic features which are expected to be permanent. Therefore,
the amending power under Article 368 of the Constitution is subject to
implied limitations.
379. Having considered all these factors, the learned judges concluded that:
On a careful consideration of the various aspects of the case, we are
convinced that the Parliament has no power to abrogate or emasculate the
basic elements or fundamental features of the Constitution such as the
sovereignty of India, the democratic character of our polity, the unity of
the country, the essential features of the individual freedoms secured to the
569
Paragraph 546
783
citizens. Nor has the Parliament the power to revoke the mandate to build a
welfare State and egalitarian society. These limitations are only illustrative
and not exhaustive. Despite these limitations, however, there can be no
question that the amending power is a wide power and it reaches every
Article and every part of the Constitution. That power can be used to
reshape the Constitution to fulfil the obligation imposed on the State. It can
also be used to reshape the Constitution within the limits mentioned
earlier, to make it an effective instrument for social good. We are unable to
agree with the contention that in order to build a welfare State, it is
necessary to destroy some of the human freedoms. That, at any rate is not
the perspective of our Constitution.570
380. Justice Khanna dwelt on the basic structure of the Constitution and
expressed the view that amendment postulates the survival of the old
Constitution without loss of its identity and the retention of the basic
structure or framework of the old Constitution. It was held:
Although it is permissible under the power of amendment to effect
changes, howsoever important, and to adapt the system to the requirements
of changing conditions, it is not permissible to touch the foundation or to
alter the basic institutional pattern. The words amendment of the
Constitution with all their wide sweep and amplitude cannot have the
effect of destroying or abrogating the basic structure or framework of the
Constitution.
381. Thereafter, Justice Khanna travelled much further than necessary and
held that as long as the basic structure and framework of the Constitution is
retained, the plenary power of amendment would include within itself the
power to add, alter or repeal the various articles including those relating to
fundamental rights. The rationale for this was given a little later in the
judgment in the following words:
The word amendment in Article 368 must carry the same meaning
whether the amendment relates to taking away or abridging fundamental
rights in Part III of the Constitution or whether it pertains to some other
provision outside Part III of the Constitution. No serious objection is taken
to repeal, addition or alteration of provisions of the Constitution other than
those in Part III under the power of amendment conferred by Article 368.
The same approach, in my opinion, should hold good when we deal with
570
Paragraph 666
784
amendment relating to fundamental rights contained in Part III of the
Constitution. It would be impermissible to differentiate between scope and
width of power of amendment when it deals with fundamental right, and
the scope and width of that power when it deals with provisions not
concerned with fundamental rights.571
Paragraph 1435
Paragraph 1537
573
Paragraphs 251 and 252. Justice Bhagwati also adverts to this in Minerva Mills v. Union of India, (1980)
3 SCC 625.
572
785
Perhaps to avoid any doubts and since as many as nine judgments were
delivered by the thirteen judges constituting the Bench, a summary of the
conclusions was prepared. This summary was signed by nine of the thirteen
judges. Among the nine signatories were two learned judges who were in the
minority. One of the conclusions agreed upon by the nine learned judges who
signed the summary was: Article 368 does not enable Parliament to alter the
basic structure or framework of the Constitution.
Judicial review of an amendment to the Constitution
385. In Indira Nehru Gandhi it was held that an amendment to the
Constitution can be challenged only on the ground of violation of the basic
structure, while a statute cannot be so challenged. A statute can be
challenged only if it is passed by a Legislature beyond its legislative
competence or if it offends Article 13 of the Constitution.574
The constitutional amendments may, on the ratio of the Fundamental
Rights case,575 be tested on the anvil of basic structure. But apart from the
principle that a case is only an authority for what it decides, it does not
logically follow from the majority judgment in the Fundamental Rights
case that ordinary legislation must also answer the same test as a
constitutional amendment. Ordinary laws have to answer two tests for their
validity: (1) The law must be within the legislative competence of the
legislature as defined and specified in Chapter I, Part XI of the
574
13. Laws inconsistent with or in derogation of the fundamental rights (1) All laws in force in the
territory of India immediately before the commencement of this Constitution, in so far as they are
inconsistent with the provisions of this Part, shall, to the extent of such inconsistency, be void.
(2) The State shall not make any law which takes away or abridges the rights conferred by this Part
and any law made in contravention of this clause shall, to the extent of the contravention, be void.
(3) In this article, unless the context otherwise requires,
(a) law includes any Ordinance, order, bye-law, rule, regulation, notification, custom or usage
having in the territory of India the force of law;
(b) laws in force includes laws passed or made by a Legislature or other competent authority in
the territory of India before the commencement of this Constitution and not previously repealed,
notwithstanding that any such law or any part thereof may not be then in operation either at all or
in particular areas.
(4) Nothing in this article shall apply to any amendment of this Constitution made under Article
368.
575
Kesavananda Bharati
786
Constitution, and (2) it must not offend against the provisions of Article
13(1) and (2) of the Constitution. Basic structure, by the majority
judgment, is not a part of the fundamental rights nor indeed a provision of
the Constitution. The theory of basic structure is woven out of the
conspectus of the Constitution and the amending power is subjected to it
because it is a constituent power. The power to amend the fundamental
instrument cannot carry with it the power to destroy its essential features
this, in brief, is the arch of the theory of basic structure. It is wholly out
of place in matters relating to the validity of ordinary laws made under the
Constitution.
388. Finally, in Ashoka Kumar Thakur v. Union of India 578 it was held
that a law can be challenged if it violates a provision of the Constitution but
an amendment to the Constitution can be challenged only if it violates a
576
787
basic feature of the Constitution which is a part of its basic structure. It was
held:
For determining whether a particular feature of the Constitution is part of
the basic structure or not, it has to be examined in each individual case
keeping in mind the scheme of the Constitution, its objects and purpose
and the integrity of the Constitution as a fundamental instrument for the
countrys governance. It may be noticed that it is not open to challenge the
ordinary legislations on the basis of the basic structure principle. State
legislation can be challenged on the question whether it is violative of the
provisions of the Constitution. But as regards constitutional amendments,
if any challenge is made on the basis of basic structure, it has to be
examined based on the basic features of the Constitution.
390. For the purposes of the present discussion, I would prefer to follow the
view expressed by a Bench of seven learned judges in State of Karnataka v.
Union of India that it is only an amendment of the Constitution that can be
challenged on the ground that it violates the basic structure of the
Constitution a statute cannot be challenged on the ground that it violates
579
788
the basic structure of the Constitution. [The only exception to this perhaps
could be a statute placed in the Ninth Schedule of the Constitution]. The
principles for challenging the constitutionality of a statute are quite different.
Challenge to the 99th Constitution Amendment Act the preliminaries
(a) Limitations to the challenge
391. The first submission made by the learned Attorney-General for
upholding the constitutionality of the 99th Constitution Amendment Act was
on the basis of Kesavananda Bharati. It was submitted that a Constitution
Amendment Act can be challenged as violating the basic structure of the
Constitution within limited parameters, that is, only if it emasculates the
Constitution, or abrogates it or completely changes its fundamental features
so as to destroy its identity or personality or shakes the pillars on which it
rests. While accepting that the independence of the judiciary is one such
pillar, it was submitted that a change in the method and procedure in the
appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court or a High Court does not
emasculate, abrogate or shake the foundations or the pillars of the
independence of the judiciary. Consequently the 99th Constitution
Amendment Act does not fall foul of the basic structure of the Constitution.
392. This argument fails to appreciate that a majority of the learned judges
constituting the Bench that decided Kesavananda Bharati were of the
opinion that it is enough to declare a constitutional amendment as violating
the basic structure if it alters the basic structure. Undoubtedly, some of the
learned judges have used very strong words in the course of their judgment
789
emasculate, destroy, abrogate, and substantially change the identity etc. but
when it came to stating what is the law actually laid down, the majority
decided that Article 368 does not enable Parliament to alter the basic
structure or framework of the Constitution.580
393. This was reiterated and explained by Justice Khanna in Indira Nehru
Gandhi. The words destroy and abrogate etc. were used with reference to
the words amendment and amendment of the Constitution which is to say
that amendment and amendment of the Constitution cannot be interpreted
expansively as meaning destroy or abrogate etc. but have a limited
meaning. The words destroy and abrogate etc. were not used in the
context of destroying or abrogating the basic structure of the Constitution.
The learned judge clearly said that the power of amendment under Article
368 [of the Constitution] does not enable the Parliament to alter the basic
structure of [or] framework of the Constitution. In fact, this was the
precise submission of learned counsel for the election petitioner, namely, that
the constitutional amendment affects the basic structure or framework of the
Constitution and is, therefore, beyond the amending power under Article 368
[of the Constitution].581 The learned judge explained this crucial distinction
in the following words:
The proposition that the power of amendment under Article 368 does not
enable Parliament to alter the basic structure of framework of the
Constitution was laid down by this Court by a majority of 7 to 6 in the case
of His Holiness Kesavananda Bharati v. State of Kerala. Apart from other
580
Justice Khanna refers to this conclusion in paragraph 198 in the decision rendered in Indira Nehru
Gandhi
581
Paragraph 173
790
reasons which were given in some of the judgments of the learned Judges
who constituted the majority, the majority dealt with the connotation of the
word amendment. It was held that the words amendment of the
Constitution in Article 368 could not have the effect of destroying or
abrogating the basic structure of the Constitution. Some of us who were
parties to that case took a different view and came to the conclusion that
the words amendment of the Constitution in Article 368 did not admit of
any limitation. Those of us who were in the minority in Kesavananda case
may still hold the same view as was given expression to in that case. For
the purpose of the present case, we shall have to proceed in accordance
with the law as laid down by the majority in that case.582
394. While dealing with the constitutional validity of Clause (4) of Article
329-A of the Constitution as introduced by the 39th Constitution Amendment
Act, Justice Khanna expressed the view that if a principle, imperative rule or
postulate of the basic structure of the Constitution is violated, then the
constitutional amendment loses its immunity from attack.
The question to be decided is that if the impugned amendment of the
Constitution violates a principle which is part of the basic structure of the
Constitution, can it enjoy immunity from an attack on its validity because
of the fact that for the future, the basic structure of the Constitution
remains unaffected. The answer to the above question, in my opinion,
should be in the negative. What has to be seen in such a matter is whether
the amendment contravenes or runs counter to an imperative rule or
postulate which is an integral part of the basic structure of the Constitution.
If so, it would be an impermissible amendment and it would make no
difference whether it relates to one case or a large number of cases. If an
amendment striking at the basic structure of the Constitution is not
permissible, it would not acquire validity by being related only to one case.
To accede to the argument advanced in support of the validity of the
amendment would be tantamount to holding that even though it is not
permissible to change the basic structure of the Constitution, whenever the
authority concerned deems it proper to make such an amendment, it can do
so and circumvent the bar to the making of such an amendment by
confining it to one case. What is prohibited cannot become permissible
because of its being confined to one matter.583
791
structure of the Constitution inasmuch as (1) it abolishes the forum without
providing for another forum for going into the dispute relating to the
validity of the election of the appellant and further prescribes that the said
dispute shall not be governed by any election law and that the validity of
the said election shall be absolute and not consequently be liable to be
assailed, and (2) it extinguishes both the right and the remedy to challenge
the validity of the aforesaid election.584
584
Paragraph 213
Paragraph 264 and 265
586
Paragraph 651
587
Paragraph 663
585
792
397. The issue again came up for consideration in Minerva Mills v. Union
of India.588 The question in that case was whether Section 4 and Section 55
of the 42nd Constitution Amendment Act transgress the limitation of the
amending power of Article 368 of the Constitution. Speaking for himself and
the other learned judges in the majority (Justice A.C Gupta, Justice N.L.
Untwalia and Justice P.S. Kailasam) it was held by Chief Justice
Chandrachud that:
In Kesavananda Bharati, this Court held by a majority that though by
Article 368 Parliament is given the power to amend the Constitution, that
power cannot be exercised so as to damage the basic features of the
Constitution or so as to destroy its basic structure. The question for
consideration in this group of petitions under Article 32 is whether
Sections 4 and 55 of the Constitution (42nd Amendment) Act, 1976
transgress that limitation on the amending power.589
793
I am unable to agree with Justice Chelameswar when he says that the basic structure and basic
features convey different ideas. Lexicographically yes, but constitutionally speaking no. they are two
dimensions of the same picture. In any event, for the present discussion, the distinction, if any, is not
relevant.
592
(1983) 1 SCC 147 (Five Judges Bench)
593
Paragraph 11
594
Paragraph 77-A
794
it must be noted that Sanjeev Coke did not disagree with Minerva Mills in
its understanding of Kesavananda Bharati.
399. More recently, in M. Nagaraj v. Union of India595 it was held
(rephrasing Justice Khanna in Indira Nehru Gandhi) that the basic structure
doctrine is really a check on the amending power of Parliament. The basic
structure of the Constitution consists of constitutional principles that are so
fundamental that they limit the amending power of Parliament. It was
concluded that the basic structure theory is based on the concept of
constitutional identity (rephrasing Justice Bhagwati in Minerva Mills). It
was then said:
400. The controversy is now set at rest with the decision rendered in I.R.
Coelho where alteration of the basic structure has been accepted as the test to
595
795
And again,
In Kesavananda Bharati case the majority held that the power of
amendment of the Constitution under Article 368 did not enable
Parliament to alter the basic structure of the Constitution.598
The attack, therefore, is not on the basic structure of the Constitution but on
the amending power of Parliament.
401. The learned Attorney-General placed reliance on the following
passage from the judgment of Justice Krishna Iyer in Bhim Singhji v. Union
of India599 to contend that for a constitutional amendment to violate the basic
structure, it must be shocking, unconscionable or an unscrupulous travesty of
the quintessence of equal justice. That case dealt with the constitutional
validity of the Urban Land (Ceiling and Regulation) Act, 1976 which was
placed in the Ninth Schedule to the Constitution by the 40 th Constitution
Amendment Act, 1976 and therefore had the protection of Article 31-B and
Article 31-C of the Constitution. In that context, it was held that the question
of the basic structure of the Constitution does not arise if the constitutional
validity of legislation (as distinguished from a constitutional amendment) is
under challenge. It was then said:
596
796
The question of basic structure being breached cannot arise when we
examine the vires of an ordinary legislation as distinguished from a
constitutional amendment. Kesavananda Bharati cannot be the last refuge
of the proprietariat when benign legislation takes away their excess for
societal weal. Nor, indeed, can every breach of equality spell disaster as a
lethal violation of the basic structure. Peripheral inequality is inevitable
when large-scale equalisation processes are put into action. If all the
Judges of the Supreme Court in solemn session sit and deliberate for half a
year to produce a legislation for reducing glaring economic inequality their
genius will let them down if the essay is to avoid even peripheral
inequalities. Every large cause claims some martyr, as sociologists will
know. Therefore, what is a betrayal of the basic feature is not a mere
violation of Article 14 but a shocking, unconscionable or unscrupulous
travesty of the quintessence of equal justice. If a legislation does go that
far it shakes the democratic foundation and must suffer the death
penalty.600
402. This decision dealt with a statute placed in the Ninth Schedule of the
Constitution and is, therefore, a class apart as far as the present discussion is
concerned.
403. From this analysis, it must be concluded that if a constitutional
amendment alters the basic structure of the Constitution, then it can and
should be declared unconstitutional. What is of importance is the width of
power test propounded by Mr. Palkhivala in Kesavananda Bharati and
adopted in M. Nagaraj and now rechristened in I.R. Coelho as the direct
impact and effect test which means the form of an amendment is not
relevant, its consequence would be [the] determinative factor.601
404. In the light of the above discussion the question, therefore, is this:
How does the 99th Constitution Amendment Act alter the basic structure of
the Constitution, if at all? There is no doubt or dispute that the independence
of the judiciary is a basic structure of the Constitution. I have already held
600
601
Paragraph 20
Paragraph 70 and 151
797
that the appointment of a judge to the Supreme Court and a High Court is an
integral part of the independence of the judiciary. Therefore, has the
introduction of the National Judicial Appointments Commission by the 99 th
Constitution Amendment Act so altered the appointment process as to impact
on the independence of the judiciary thereby making the 99 th Constitution
Amendment Act unconstitutional? The learned Attorney-General
602
603
798
Paragraph 661
(1981) 4 SCC 675 (Five Judges Bench)
606
Paragraph 7
605
799
judges with another wherein the constitutional role giving significant value
to the opinion of the Chief Justice of India is substantively diminished or
perhaps eliminated and substituted by the NJAC. The question is not whether
the alternative model is good or not good but whether it is constitutionally
valid or not.
(c) Basis of judgment is removed
411. The third submission was that Article 124(2) of the Constitution has
been amended by the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and, therefore, the
basis of the judgment delivered by this Court in the Second Judges case has
been completely taken away or that the Constitution has been amended with
the result that that judgment cannot now be used to interpret Article 124(2)
of the Constitution as it is today. In other words, the challenge to the 99 th
Constitution Amendment Act will have to be adjudicated independently and
regardless of the law laid down in the Second Judges case or the Third
Judges case.
412. In Shri Prithvi Cotton Mills Ltd. v. Broach Borough Municipality 607
it was said by Chief Justice Hidayatullah that granted legislative competence,
it is not sufficient to declare merely that the decision of the Court shall not
bind for that is tantamount to reversing the decision in exercise of judicial
power which the Legislature does not possess or exercise. A Courts decision
must always bind unless the conditions on which it is based are so
607
800
fundamentally altered that the decision could not have been given in the
altered circumstances. It was said:
Granted legislative competence, it is not sufficient to declare merely that
the decision of the Court shall not bind for that is tantamount to reversing
the decision in exercise of judicial power which the Legislature does not
possess or exercise. A courts decision must always bind unless the
conditions on which it is based are so fundamentally altered that the
decision could not have been given in the altered circumstances.
Ordinarily, a court holds a tax to be invalidly imposed because the power
to tax is wanting or the statute or the rules or both are invalid or do not
sufficiently create the jurisdiction. Validation of a tax so declared illegal
may be done only if the grounds of illegality or invalidity are capable of
being removed and are in fact removed and the tax thus made legal.
Sometimes this is done by providing for jurisdiction where jurisdiction had
not been properly invested before. Sometimes this is done by re-enacting
retrospectively a valid and legal taxing provision and then by fiction
making the tax already collected to stand under the re-enacted law.
Sometimes the Legislature gives its own meaning and interpretation of the
law under which tax was collected and by legislative fiat makes the new
meaning binding upon courts. The Legislature may follow any one method
or all of them and while it does so it may neutralise the effect of the earlier
decision of the court which becomes ineffective after the change of the
law. Whichever method is adopted it must be within the competence of the
legislature and legal and adequate to attain the object of validation.608
413. Similarly, in Indira Nehru Gandhi it was held by Chief Justice Ray as
follows:
The effect of validation is to change the law so as to alter the basis of any
judgment, which might have been given on the basis of old law and thus
make the judgment ineffective. A formal declaration that the judgment
rendered under the old Act is void, is not necessary. If the matter is
pending in appeal, the appellate court has to give effect to the altered law
and reverse the judgment. The rendering of a judgment ineffective by
changing its basis by legislative enactment is not an encroachment on
judicial power but a legislation within the competence of the Legislature
rendering the basis of the judgment non est.
Paragraph 4
(1996) 11 SCC 428
801
judgment by a retrospective amendment of the legal provision concerned.
610
It was further stated, relying upon Shri Prithvi Cotton Mills Ltd. as follows:
It is now well settled by a catena of decisions of this Court that unless the
legislature by enacting a competent legislative provision retrospectively
removes the substratum or foundation of any judgment of a competent
court the said judgment would remain binding and operative and in the
absence of such a legislative exercise by a competent legislature the
attempt to upset the binding effect of such judgments rendered against the
parties would remain an incompetent and forbidden exercise which could
be dubbed as an abortive attempt to legislatively overrule binding
decisions of courts. 611
610
Paragraph 5
Paragraph 5
612
(1994) 6 SCC 77
613
Paragraph 11
611
802
The principle which emerges from these authorities is that the legislature
can change the basis on which a decision is given by the Court and thus
change the law in general, which will affect a class of persons and events
at large. It cannot, however, set aside an individual decision inter partes
and affect their rights and liabilities alone. Such an act on the part of the
legislature amounts to exercising the judicial power of the State and to
functioning as an appellate court or tribunal.615
417. More recently, in State of Tamil Nadu this Court approved the
following conclusion arrived at in Indian Aluminium Co. v. State of
Kerala616:
In exercising legislative power, the legislature by mere declaration,
without anything more, cannot directly overrule, revise or override a
judicial decision. It can render judicial decision ineffective by enacting
valid law on the topic within its legislative field fundamentally altering or
changing its character retrospectively. The changed or altered conditions
are such that the previous decision would not have been rendered by the
court, if those conditions had existed at the time of declaring the law as
invalid. It is also empowered to give effect to retrospective legislation with
a deeming date or with effect from a particular date. The legislature can
change the character of the tax or duty from impermissible to permissible
tax but the tax or levy should answer such character and the legislature is
competent to recover the invalid tax validating such a tax on removing the
invalid base for recovery from the subject or render the recovery from the
State ineffectual. It is competent for the legislature to enact the law with
retrospective effect and authorise its agencies to levy and collect the tax on
that basis, make the imposition of levy collected and recovery of the tax
made valid, notwithstanding the declaration by the court or the direction
given for recovery thereof.617
803
removed the basis of the judgment delivered by this Court in the Second
Judges case the constitutional validity of the said amendment will
nevertheless need to be tested on that assumption, keeping in mind the above
decisions.
(d) Wisdom of an amendment to the Constitution
419. The next submission of the learned Attorney-General was that the
wisdom of Parliament in enacting the 99 th Constitution Amendment Act
cannot be disputed. Hence, this Court ought not to substitute its own views
on the necessity or otherwise of the 99th Constitution Amendment Act over
the law laid down in the Second Judges case.
420. In Lochner v. New York618 Justice Oliver Wendell Holmes famously
stated (in dissent) almost a century ago:
This case is decided upon an economic theory which a large part of the
country does not entertain. If it were a question whether I agreed with that
theory, I should desire to study it further and long before making up my
mind. But I do not conceive that to be my duty, because I strongly believe
that my agreement or disagreement has nothing to do with the right of a
majority to embody their opinions in law.
In other words, one may or may not agree with the content or wisdom of a
legislation, but that has nothing to do with the correctness or otherwise of the
majority decision taken by a Legislature. This view has been followed in our
country as well.
421. The Courts in our country do not question the wisdom or expediency
of the Legislature enacting a statute, let alone a constitutional amendment.
618
198 US 45
804
423. The Payment of Bonus Act, 1965 and the scheme for payment of
minimum bonus were under challenge in Jalan Trading Company (P) Ltd v.
Mill Mazdoor Sabha Union.620 Speaking for the Court, Justice J.C. Shah
observed that the wisdom of the scheme selected by the Legislature may be
open to debate but it would not be invalid merely because some fault can be
found with the scheme. It was said:
Whether the scheme for payment of minimum bonus is the best in the
circumstances, or a more equitable method could have been devised so as
to avoid in certain cases undue hardship is irrelevant to the enquiry in
hand. If the classification is not patently arbitrary, the Court will not rule it
discriminatory merely because it involves hardship or inequality of burden.
With a view to secure a particular object a scheme may be selected by the
Legislature, wisdom whereof may be open to debate; it may even be
demonstrated that the scheme is not the best in the circumstances and the
choice of the legislature may be shown to be erroneous, but unless the
enactment fails to satisfy the dual test of intelligible classification and
rationality of the relation with the object of the law, it will not be subject to
judicial interference under Article 14. Invalidity of legislation is not
established by merely finding faults with the scheme adopted by the
Legislature to achieve the purpose it has in view.
619
620
805
426. Justice A.N. Ray expressed his view in the following words: Courts
are not concerned with the wisdom or policy of legislation. The Courts are
equally not concerned with the wisdom and policy of amendments to the
Constitution.624
427. Justice Jaganmohan Reddy expressed the same sentiments when the
learned judge said:
The citizen whose rights are affected, no doubt, invokes the aid of the
judicial power to vindicate them, but in discharging its duty, the Courts
have nothing to do with the wisdom or the policy of the Legislature.625
621
Paragraph 288
Paragraph 317
623
Paragraph 532
624
Paragraph 909
625
Paragraph 1106
622
806
that this was not justiciable. The Court cannot substitute its opinion for that
of Parliament in this regard. It was held:
Whether the amendment is in fact, an improvement or not, in my opinion,
is not a justiciable matter, and in judging the validity of an amendment the
courts would not go into the question as to whether the amendment has in
effect brought about an improvement. It is for the special majority in each
House of Parliament to decide as to whether it constitutes an improvement;
the courts would not be substituting their own opinion for that of the
Parliament in this respect. Whatever may be the personal view of a judge
regarding the wisdom behind or the improving quality of an amendment,
he would be only concerned with the legality of the amendment and this,
in its turn, would depend upon the question as to whether the formalities
prescribed in Article 368 have been complied with.626
429.
With reference to the Lochner dissent, Justice Khanna noted that the
430. Justice Khanna reiterated his views in Indira Nehru Gandhi wherein
the learned judge held:
Before dealing with the question as to whether the impugned amendment
affects the basic structure of the Constitution, I may make it clear that this
Court is not concerned with the wisdom behind or the propriety of the
impugned constitutional amendment. These are matters essentially for
those who are vested with the authority to make the constitutional
626
807
amendment. All that this Court is concerned with is the constitutional
validity of the impugned amendment.632
431. Justice Chandrachud also expressed the same view, that is to say:
The subject-matter of constitutional amendments is a question of high
policy and courts are concerned with the interpretation of laws, not with
the wisdom of the policy underlying them.633
Paragraph 176
Paragraph 661
634
(2008) 2 SCC 254
635
Paragraph 19
633
808
the subject of criticism. In fact, Mr. Fali Nariman who led the submissions
on behalf of the Advocates on Record Association was quite critical of the
collegium system of appointments. Some of the learned counsel for the
respondents went overboard in their criticism. But personal opinions do not
matter. Lord Templeman of the House of Lords was of the view that the
collegium system of appointments is best suited to ensure the independence
of the judiciary but there are other eminent persons who are critical of the
Second Judges case.
435. In the final analysis, therefore, the Courts must defer to the wisdom of
the Legislature and accept their views, as long as they are within the
parameters of the law, nothing more and nothing less. The constitutional
validity of the 99th Constitution Amendment Act cannot be tested on
opinions, however strong they may be or however vividly expressed.
(e) Needs of the people
436. It was also submitted by the learned Attorney-General that Parliament
is aware of the needs of the people and the people want a change from the
collegium system of appointment of judges. Parliament has responded to this
demand and this Court should not reject this demand only because it believes
that the collegium system is working well and that the 99th Constitution
809
Amendment Act introduces a different system which reduces the role of the
judiciary in making appointments by taking away its primacy in this regard.
437. Apart from the presumption that an enactment is constitutionally valid,
there is also a presumption that the Legislature understands and correctly
appreciates the needs of the people. This was observed in Charanjit Lal
Chowdhuri and reliance was placed on the following passage from
Middleton v. Texas Power and Light Co.636:
It must be presumed that a legislature understands and correctly
appreciates the need of its own people, that its laws are directed to
problems made manifest by experience and that its discriminations are
based upon adequate grounds.
810
no substitute for the duty vested in the Courts to interpret the Constitution
and to uphold its provisions without fear or favour. If public opinion were
to be decisive there would be no need for constitutional adjudication. The
protection of rights could then be left to Parliament, which has a mandate
from the public, and is answerable to the public for the way its mandate is
exercised, but this would be a return to parliamentary sovereignty, and a
retreat from the new legal order established by the 1993 Constitution.
This Court cannot allow itself to be diverted from its duty to act as an
independent arbiter of the Constitution by making choices on the basis that
they will find favour with the public. Justice Powell's comment in his
dissent in Furman v Georgia bears repetition:
...the weight of the evidence indicates that the public generally has
not accepted either the morality or the social merit of the views so
passionately advocated by the articulate spokesmen for abolition.
But however one may assess amorphous ebb and flow of public
opinion generally on this volatile issue, this type of inquiry lies at
the periphery - not the core - of the judicial process in
constitutional cases. The assessment of popular opinion is
essentially a legislative, and not a judicial, function.639
So too does the comment of Justice Jackson in West Virginia State Board
of Education v Barnette:
The very purpose of a Bill of Rights was to withdraw certain
subjects from the vicissitudes of political controversy, to place
them beyond the reach of majorities and officials and to establish
them as legal principles to be applied by the courts. One's right to
life, liberty, and property, to free speech, a free press, freedom of
worship and assembly and other fundamental rights may not be
submitted to vote; they depend on the outcome of no elections.640
811
but unpopular decision. All of us are bound by the Constitution and judges
have to abide by the oath of office to uphold the Constitution and the laws,
even if the decision is unpopular or unacceptable to Parliament. This is the
essence of judicial review otherwise no law passed by Parliament (obviously
having a popular mandate) could be struck down as unconstitutional.
(f) Passage of time
442. Finally, it was submitted by the learned Attorney-General that the
passage of time over the last over sixty years has shown that the system of
appointment of judges that was originally operational (in which the
executive has the ultimate power) and the collegium system (in which the
judiciary had shared responsibility) had both yielded some negative results.
It was submitted that millions of cases are pending, persons who should have
been appointed as judges were not recommended for appointment and
persons who did not deserve to be judges were not only appointed but were
brought to this Court. The 99th Constitution Amendment Act seeks to correct
the imbalances created over a period of time and since constitutional
experiments are permissible, the 99th Constitution Amendment Act should be
allowed to pass muster.
443. There is no doubt that with the passage of time changes take place in
society and in the development of the law. In fact, the only constant is
change.
642
812
The
Constitution and the laws may have to be changed to suit those needs. No
single generation can bind the course of the generation to come.643
445. Justice Khanna expressed the view (and this was relied on by the
learned Attorney-General) that the Constitution is also intended for the future
and must contain ample provision for experiment and trial. This is what
Justice Khanna said:
It has also to be borne in mind that a Constitution is not a gate but a road.
Beneath the drafting of a Constitution is the awareness that things do not
stand still but move on, that life of a progressive nation, as of an
individual, is not static and stagnant but dynamic and dashful. A
Constitution must therefore contain ample provision for experiment and
trial in the task of administration. A Constitution, it needs to be
emphasised, is not a document for fastidious dialectics but the means of
ordering the life of a people. It had its roots in the past, its continuity is
reflected in the present and it is intended for the unknown future.644
446. A little later on in the judgment, the learned judge cited Abrams v.
United States645 and quoting Justice Holmes said:
643
Paragraph 634
Paragraph 1437
645
250 US 616 (1919)
644
813
447. Fortunately for the people of the country, the independence of the
judiciary is not a task of administration nor is the Constitution of India a
failed experiment nor is there any need for making provision for another. If
the basic structure of the Constitution is to be changed, through
experimentation or otherwise, then its overthrow is necessary. It is not a
simple document that can be experimented with or changed through a cut
and paste method. Even though the independence of the judiciary is a basic
structure of the Constitution and being a pillar of democracy it can be
experimented with, but only if it is possible without altering the basic
structure. The independence of the judiciary is a concept developed over
centuries to benefit the people against arbitrary exercise of power. If during
experimentation, the independence of the judiciary is lost, it is gone forever
and cannot be regained by simply concluding that the loss of independence is
a failed experiment. The independence of the judiciary is not physical but
metaphysical. The independence of the judiciary is not like plasticine that it
can be moulded any which way.
448. This is not to say that the Constitution must recognize only physical
changes with the passage of time certainly not. New thoughts and ideas
are generated with the passage of time and a line of thinking that was
646
Paragraph 1563
814
acceptable a few decades ago may not be acceptable today and what is
acceptable today may not be acceptable a decade hence. But basic concepts
like democracy, secularism, Rule of Law, independence of the judiciary, all
of which are constituents of the basic structure of our Constitution are
immutable as concepts, though nuances may change. A failed experiment of
these basic concepts would lead to disastrous consequences. It is not possible
as an experiment to try out a monarchy or a dictatorship or to convert India
into a religious State for about ten or fifteen years and see how the
experiment works. Nor is it possible to suspend the Rule of Law or take
away the independence of the judiciary for about ten or fifteen years and see
how the experiment works. These concepts are far too precious for
experimentation.
449. Yes, the Constitution has to be interpreted as a living organic
document for years and years to come, but within accepted parameters. It
was said by Chief Justice Dickson of the Canadian Supreme Court in The
Queen v. Beauregard647:
The Canadian Constitution is not locked forever in a 119-year old casket. It
lives and breathes and is capable of growing to keep pace with the growth of
the country and its people. Accordingly, if the Constitution can
accommodate, as it has, many subjects unknown in 1867--airplanes, nuclear
energy, hydroelectric power -- it is surely not straining section 100 too much
to say that the word pensions, admittedly understood in one sense in 1867,
can today support federal legislation based on a different understanding of
pensions.648
647
648
815
450. It is this that Justice Khanna possibly had in mind when the learned
judge spoke of the unknown future.
Challenge to a statute and the package deal
451. The learned Attorney-General also adverted to the legal bases for
challenging a statute. This was necessary since he desired to segregate the
challenge to the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act. In
principle, the segregation would be justified, but as far as this case is
concerned, the learned Attorney-General had argued that the 99 th
Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act were a package deal and in
this he is correct. Both were discussed and debated in both Houses of
Parliament almost at the same time, both were sent to the President for assent
at the same time and were in fact assented to at the same time and finally
both were notified at the same time. The only difference was that while the
99th Constitution Amendment Act had to undergo the ratification process, the
NJAC Act did not. It was therefore a package deal presented to the country
in which the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act were so
interlinked that one could not operate without reference to the other. In fact,
Mr. Nariman submitted that the NJAC Act should also have undergone the
ratification process, but he was unable to support his argument with any law,
judicial precedent, convention or practice. This question is left open for
greater discussion at an appropriate stage should the occasion arise.
816
454. This view was followed in Public Services Tribunal Bar Assn v. State
of U.P.650 in the following words:
The constitutional validity of an Act can be challenged only on two
grounds viz. (i) lack of legislative competence; and (ii) violation of any of
the fundamental rights guaranteed in Part III of the Constitution or of any
other constitutional provisions. In State of A.P. v. McDowell & Co this
Court has opined that except the above two grounds there is no third
ground on the basis of which the law made by the competent legislature
can be invalidated and that the ground of invalidation must necessarily fall
within the four corners of the aforementioned two grounds.
455. Earlier, this Court had taken a much broader view of the issue of a
challenge to a statute in Chhotabhai Jethabhai Patel v. Union of India.651 It
was held therein that apart from the question of legislative competence and
violation of Article 13 of the Constitution, a statute could be challenged if its
649
817
1992 Supp (2) SCC 651 paragraph 61 and 62 (Five Judges Bench)
818
459. Similarly, Justice B.P. Jeevan Reddy (speaking for Justice J.S. Verma,
Justice S.C. Agrawal, Justice A.S. Anand, Justice B.N. Kirpal and himself)
held in Mafatlal Industries Ltd. v. Union of India654:
It is equally well-settled that mere possibility of abuse of a provision by
those in charge of administering it cannot be a ground for holding the
provision procedurally or substantively unreasonable. In Collector of
Customs v. Nathella Sampathu Chetty, this Court observed: The
possibility of abuse of a statute otherwise valid does not impart to it any
element of invalidity. It was said in State of Rajasthan v. Union of India,
it must be remembered that merely because power may sometimes be
abused, it is no ground for denying the existence of power. The wisdom of
man has not yet been able to conceive of a government with power
sufficient to answer all its legitimate needs and at the same time incapable
of mischief. (Also see Commr., H.R.E. v. Sri Lakshmindra Thirtha
Swamiar of Sri Shirur Mutt. (Internal citations omitted)
819
460. Before dealing with the substantive issue of the challenge before us, it
may be mentioned that Mr. Fali S. Nariman contended that Parliament did
not have the competence to pass the NJAC Act until the 99 th Constitution
Amendment Act was brought into force or at least it had the assent of the
President. It is not possible to accept this submission since the passage of
the 99th Constitution Amendment Act
was
655
820
462. In Raja Ram Pal v. Lok Sabha656 the question of the extent of judicial
review of parliamentary matters came up for consideration. Speaking for
Justices K.G. Balakrishnan, D.K. Jain and himself, it was held by Chief
Justice Sabharwal, with reference to the CAD that procedural irregularities in
Parliament cannot undo or vitiate what happens within its four walls, that is,
internal parliamentary proceedings. However, proceedings that are
substantively illegal or unconstitutional, as opposed to irregular are not
protected from judicial scrutiny by Article 122(1) of the Constitution.657
463. Insofar as the NJAC Act is concerned, nothing has been shown by way
of any substantive illegality in its passage or anything unconstitutional in its
passage in the sense that any provision of the Constitution or any substantive
rule regulating parliamentary activity has been violated. At best, it can be
argued that procedurally there was a violation but our attention was drawn to
the rules of procedure and the decision taken in accordance with the rules
which indicate that there was no procedural violation in the introduction of
the NJAC Act and its passage. Justice Khehar has elaborately dealt with this
issue in substantial detail in his draft judgment and it is not necessary to
repeat what has been said.
656
657
821
Supreme Court or a High Court, it does not mean that the President can
decline to appoint a person as a judge without any rhyme or reason nor does
it mean that the President can appoint any eligible person as a judge. Under
the Government of India Act, 1919 and the Government of India Act, 1935
the Crown had the unfettered discretion to do both or either. The Constituent
Assembly did not give this unfettered power to the President and, therefore,
mandated consultation between the President and the Chief Justice of India
for the appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court. There were reasons for
this as mentioned above. Prior to the 99 th Constitution Amendment Act,
under Article 124(2) of the Constitution, the President had the discretion to
consult some other judges of the Supreme Court or the High Courts, as the
President thought necessary for the purpose. The same constitutional
position prevailed (mutatis mutandis) so far as the appointment of a judge of
a High Court under Article 217(1) of the Constitution was concerned.
Article 124(2) of the Constitution had three basic ingredients: The power of
the President to appoint a judge of the Supreme Court; a mandatory
requirement of consultation with the Chief Justice of India; a discretionary
consultation with other judges of the Supreme Court and the High Courts.
465. The 99th Constitution Amendment Act has completely changed this
constitutional position and has changed the role of the President in the
appointment process as also substantially modified the mandatory
consultation with the Chief Justice of India and substituted or replaced the
822
entire process by a recommendation of the NJAC. The table below gives the
textual changes made in Article 124(2) of the Constitution.
Pre- Amendment provisions
124. Establishment and constitution of
Supreme Court. - (1) There shall be a
Supreme Court of India consisting of a
Chief Justice of India and, until Parliament
by law prescribes a larger number, of not
more than seven other Judges.
Post-Amendment provisions
124. Establishment and constitution of
Supreme Court. - (1) There shall be a
Supreme Court of India consisting of a
Chief Justice of India and, until Parliament
by law prescribes a larger number, of not
more than seven other Judges.
466. The composition of the NJAC is provided for in Article 124A of the
Constitution. Therefore, Article 124A of the Constitution and Article 124(2)
are required to be read in conjunction with each other. The Chief Justice of
India is the Chairperson of the NJAC. The members of the NJAC are two
other judges of the Supreme Court next to the Chief Justice of India, the
Union Minister in charge of Law and Justice and two eminent persons to be
823
824
825
make Rules to carry out the provisions of the NJAC Act (Section 12 thereof).
The Rules and Regulations framed by the Central Government and by the
NJAC shall be laid before Parliament and these may be modified if both the
Houses of Parliament agree to the modification and Parliament may also
provide that a Rule or Regulation shall have no effect (Section 13 thereof).
474. The sum and substance of the controversy is this: If the establishment
of the NJAC by the 99th Constitution Amendment Act alters the basic
structure of the Constitution, the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the
NJAC Act must be declared unconstitutional. Since the establishment of the
NJAC by Article 124A of the Constitution is integral to the 99 th Constitution
Amendment Act and the NJAC Act and they are not severable and cannot
stand alone, they too must be declared unconstitutional.
475. While considering the constitutional validity of the 99th Constitution
Amendment Act and the NJAC Act it is necessary to deal with a submission
made with reference to the Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (CRA) passed by
the British Parliament. This is because it was referred, in the course of
submissions, on more than one occasion. It was sought to be suggested that
judges in the UK Supreme Court are appointed by the Judicial Appointments
Commission constituted in terms of the CRA and there is nothing wrong if a
somewhat similar procedure is adopted by our Parliament where judges of
the High Courts and the Supreme Court are recommended by the NJAC.
826
476. The CRA and its working was adverted to by Jack Straw, the Lord
Chancellor from 2007 to 2010. At that time the Lord Chief Justice was the
head of the judiciary in the UK but the Lord Chancellor was nevertheless
responsible for upholding the independence of the judiciary. In the 3 rd
lecture on Judicial Appointments delivered on 4th December, 2012 of the
64th series of Hamlyn Lectures titled Aspects of Law Reform An Insiders
Perspective he said:
The CRA provided for the establishment of an independent Judicial
Appointments Commission (JAC).
The JAC was made responsible for operating the appointments process and
making recommendations to the Lord Chancellor for all but the most
senior appointments. For these very senior appointments (to the Court of
Appeal, and the offices of Head of Division, Lord Chief Justice, and the
president, deputy president and members of the UK Supreme court),
separate provision was made for recommendations to be made to the Lord
Chancellor by specially constituted selection panels.
For each appointment, the JAC, or the specially constituted selection
panel,
was required to make one recommendation to the Lord Chancellor.658
In practice, as I found out through painful experience, there were a
number of problems with this set-up.659
I accept that the role of the Lord Chancellor in relation to High Court and
Court of Appeal appointments should be limited. But for the two groups
of our most senior judges, and for different reasons, in my view the Lord
Chancellor should have a greater role than is provided for by the
Constitutional Reform Act, or than is likely to be provided for by the
current Crime and Courts Bill.
The two groups of judges I am talking about are, first, the most senior
members of the Court of Appeal that is, the Heads of Division and Lord
Chief Justice- and, second, the members of the UK Supreme Court. The
conclusion is the same, but the arguments are different.660
658
Page 54
Page 55
660
Page 56
659
827
CRA read with Schedule 8 thereof and the selection panel consists of (a) the
President of the Supreme Court, (b) the Deputy President of the Supreme
Court, (c) one member each of (i) the Judicial Appointments Commission,
(ii) the Judicial Appointments Board for Scotland, (iii) the Northern Ireland
Judicial Appointments Commission. At least one member in category (c)
must be non-legally qualified. With this sort of a composition of the
specially constituted selection panel Jack Straw could not go against the
wishes of the judiciary in respect of one appointment, as obliquely referred
to by him below:
All of this is already recognized, in principle at least, by the
Constitutional Reform Act, which provides that these two groups of very
senior appointments should not be made by the normal Judicial
Appointments Commission process.
The reality of a connection between the senior judiciary and the executive
is also recognized in almost every other jurisdiction. By far the most usual
approach elsewhere in the world, including in well-functioning
common-law jurisdictions, is for the relevant minister to be recommended
three to five names, and for that minister then to be able to choose from
among these nominees. In the United Kingdom we are very unusual in
insisting that the minister receives one name alone. This is explicable only
in the context of where we have come from: the untrammeled discretion of
the Lord Chancellor until the mid 1990s, the non-statutory nature of the
pre-2005 arrangements, the opaque decision-making process and the
mounting criticism of it.
But these literally peculiar arrangements for these very senior
appointments, intended to create a partnership approach between the
judiciary and the Lord Chancellor in recognition of the requirements of the
offices in question, have proved to be unsatisfactory.
Both the detailed wording and the expectation in practice make it very
difficult for the Lord Chancellor to exercise even his limited powers to
reject or request a reconsideration of a recommendation. As is a matter of
record in the press, there was one occasion when, as Lord Chancellor, I
sought to use these powers.
Since I have always observed the confidentiality necessary for the
consideration of such appointments, I am not here going into any detail. I
hope, however, that it will be accepted that I would not have sought to
exercise these powers unless I believed that I had good grounds within the
Act for doing so I did good grounds, as many can now see. I went to
considerable lengths to ensure that my actions could not be construed,
which they were not remotely, as party political. In the event, the matter
828
was not seen through to a conclusion. Partisans to the appointment not
anyone directly involved in the process leaked extensive detail to the
press, an election was looming; I confirmed the appointment.661
477. Adverting to this lecture and the actual working of the CRA, it is said
that for making senior level judicial appointments, it is impossible for the
Lord Chancellor to against the wishes of the judiciary. In a recent article
published in Public Law it is said:
Judicial appointments are the next biggest change, responsibility for
which has shifted from the executive in the form of the Lord Chancellor, to
the judiciary. Formally the process is managed by the independent Judicial
Appointments Commission (JAC), but in practice the process is heavily
influenced by the judiciary at every stage. The Lord Chief Justice is
consulted at the start of each competition. Judges prepare case studies and
qualifying tests. Judges write references. A judge sits on the panels that
interview candidates; and judges are consulted in statutory consultation.
On the JAC, 7 of the 15 commissioners are judges. Once the JAC has
completed its selection, at lower levels (Circuit judges and below) all
judicial appointments are now formally made by the Lord Chief Justice,
and tribunal appointments are made by the Senior President of Tribunals.
The Lord Chief Justice and SPT are now responsible for 97 per cent of all
judicial appointments. At more senior levels appointments are still
formally decided by the Lord Chancellor; but in practice it has proved
impossible for the Lord Chancellor to go against the wishes of the
judiciary.662
So much for the appointment process in the UK and the judges appointing
judges criticism in India!
478. It is not possible for any one of us to comment (one way or another) on
the CRA except to say that it is not advisable to rely on values of judicial
independence and conventions and systems of the appointment of judges in
other countries without a full understanding of their problems and issues. We
ought to better understand the situation in our country (and the decisions
661
Page 57-59
Public Law (2015): Judicial Independence and Accountability in the UK have both emerged stronger as
a result of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005 by Robert Hazell
662
829
rendered by this Court) and how best to protect and preserve judicial
independence in the circumstances that exist in our country and not have
grand illusions of the systems in place in other countries.
Validity of Articles 124A and 124(2) of the Constitution - the package
deal
479. The submission of the learned Attorney-General (as mentioned above)
is that the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act are a
package deal and one cannot be appreciated without the other. The
discussion will be in the light of this submission.
480. At the outset, it is important to note that the package is incomplete.
The 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act raise a series of
unanswered questions. For example, how is the NJAC expected to perform
its duties? Will there be any transparency in the working of the NJAC and if
so to what extent? Will privacy concerns of the candidates be taken care of?
Will issues of accountability of the NJAC be addressed? The learned
Attorney-General submitted that a large number of hypothetical issues and
questions have been raised not only by the petitioners but also by the Bench
and it is not possible to answer all of them in the absence of a composite law
and regulations being framed in accordance with the postulates of the 99 th
Constitution
Amendment
Act.
This
submission
of
the
learned
830
taken care of, the package deal presented to the country is an empty package
with the wrapping paper in the form of the NJAC Act and a ribbon in the
form of the 99th Constitution Amendment Act. If it is not possible to answer
all the questions in the absence of a composite law, rules and regulations,
what was the hurry in bringing the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the
NJAC Act into force as a half-baked measure?
481. It is true that the Constitution cannot specify and incorporate each and
every detail, particularly procedural details.663 But the same time, the
substantive requirements of the NJAC scheme must be apparent from the
99th Constitution Amendment Act read with the NJAC Act, particularly when
it seeks to overthrow an existing method of appointment of judges that
maintains the independence of the judiciary. Vital issues cannot be left to be
sorted out at a later date through supplementary legislation or supplementary
subordinate legislation, otherwise an unwholesome hiatus would be created,
making matters worse.
482. The package deal must survive as whole or fall as a whole there
cannot be piecemeal existence.
483. Viewed in this light, the constitutional validity of Article 124(2) read
with Article 124A of the Constitution as introduced by the 99th Constitution
Amendment Act is suspect for several reasons.
(a) The NJAC and the role of the President
663
See State of Punjab v. Salil Sablok, (2013) 5 SCC 1 paragraph 115 of the Report.
831
484. Article 124(2) of the Constitution requires the NJAC constituted under
Article 124A thereof to make a recommendation to the President for the
appointment of a judge of the Supreme Court or a High Court. Mr. Fali S.
Nariman pointed out that as far as the NJAC is concerned, it is not clear
whether the President means the President acting in his/her individual
capacity or the Council of Ministers. The President certainly cannot mean
the individual otherwise the procedure for appointment of judges postulated
by the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act would be
creating an Imperium in Imperio which the Constituent Assembly
deliberately avoided. On the other hand, if the President means the Council
of Ministers, then on what basis can the Council of Ministers/President ask
the NJAC (under the proviso to Section 7 of the NJAC Act) to reconsider its
view? The Council of Ministers/President is already represented as a voting
member in the NJAC through the Law Minister. Can the President/Council
of Ministers/Prime Minister ask for reconsideration of a recommendation
made by the NJAC to which the Law Minister (a member of the Cabinet) is a
party? Would this be permissible particularly since the Law Minister
represents the Union Government/President in the NJAC and would it not go
against
the
well
established
principle
of
Cabinet
responsibility?
832
833
taken away, even if the recommendation is not unanimous, and thereby the
importance of the President is considerably downsized.
486. Additionally, the decision of the President is, in one sense, made to
depend upon the opinion of two members of the NJAC, who may in a given
case be the two eminent persons nominated to the NJAC in terms of Article
124A(1)(d) of the Constitution. These two eminent persons can actually
stymie a recommendation of the NJAC for the appointment of a judge by
exercising a veto conferred on each member of the NJAC by the second
proviso to sub-section (2) of Section 5 of the NJAC Act, and without
assigning any reason. In other words, the two eminent persons (or any two
members of the NJAC) can stall the appointment of judges without reason.
That this may not necessarily happen with any great frequency is not
relevant that such a situation can occur is disturbing. As a result of this
provision, the responsibility of making an appointment of a judge effectively
passes over, in part, from the President and the Chief Justice of India to the
members of the NJAC, with a veto being conferred on any two unspecified
members, without any specific justification. This is a very significant
constitutional change brought about by the 99 th Constitution Amendment Act
which not only impinges upon but radically alters the process of appointment
of judges, by shifting the balance from the President and the Chief Justice of
India to the NJAC. To make matters worse, the President cannot even seek
the views of anybody (other judges or lawyers or civil society) which was
834
835
836
Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act the Chief Justice of India is
reduced to a mere voting statistic. Designating the Chief Justice of India as
the Chairperson of the NJAC is certainly not a solace or a solution to
downsizing the head of the Judiciary.
491. The participation of the judiciary as an institution in the NJAC is also
farcical. The 99th Constitution Amendment Act does not postulate a veto
being conferred on any person in the NJAC. But the NJAC Act effectively
gives that power to all members of the NJAC despite the 99th Constitution
Amendment Act. This is evident from the provisions of the NJAC Act which
enable two persons, one of them being the Law Minister to veto the
unanimous opinion of the three participating judges (including the Chief
Justice of India). Therefore, even if the Judiciary as a whole and as an
institution (that is the three participating judges) is in favour of a particular
appointment, that unanimous opinion can be rendered worthless by any two
other members of the NJAC, one of whom may very well include the Law
Minister representing the political executive and another having perhaps
nothing to do with justice delivery. This is certainly not what the
Constitution, as framed, postulated or intended.
492. To get over this outlandish situation it was suggested (as an alternative
argument) by Mr. K.K. Venugopal appearing for the State of Madhya
Pradesh that the unanimous opinion of the three participating judges should
have overriding weight, that is a veto over a veto or a tie break vote. Mr.
837
838
eminent person and the Law Minister (whose opinion is subject to the
opinion of the Council of Ministers, whom he/she represents); the
unanimous opinion of the judiciary as an institution, an opinion that was
respected (and deservedly so) counts for virtually nothing with the passage
of the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act; the Chief Justice
of India is rendered, by the 99th Constitution Amendment Act to a mere
voting statistic and one among six in the NJAC virtually stripping him/her of
the constitutional responsibility of appointing judges to the superior courts
and denuding him/her of the authority conferred by history, constitutional
convention and the Constitution; the Chief Justice of India and the institution
of the judiciary is now subject to a veto by civil society in its decisions. The
entire scheme of appointment of judges postulated by the Constituent
Assembly is made topsy-turvy by the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and
the NJAC Act. If this does not alter the basic structure of the Constitution,
what does?
(c) Eminent persons and the veto
495. The inspiration for having eminent persons in the NJAC comes from
the Report of the NCRWC which made this recommendation as a part of the
democratic process of selecting a judge of the Supreme Court or the High
Court. Article 124A(1)(d) of the Constitution provides for two eminent
persons to be nominated as members of the NJAC. The nomination is by a
Committee consisting of the Prime Minister, the Chief Justice of India and
839
the Leader of the Opposition in the Lok Sabha or where there is no such
Leader, then the Leader of the single largest Opposition Party in the Lok
Sabha. The first proviso mandates that one of the eminent persons shall be
nominated from amongst persons belonging to the Scheduled Castes, the
Scheduled Tribes, Other Backward Classes, Minorities or Women.
496. The apprehension expressed by some learned counsel appearing for
the petitioners is that since no guidelines have been laid down for the
nomination of the two eminent persons, there is a possibility that persons
who are not really eminent may be nominated to the NJAC or that their
appointment will be politically motivated. So also, acknowledged eminent
persons might not be nominated to the NJAC. But then, who is an eminent
person?
497. In A.K. Roy v. Union of India664 reference was made to the difficulty
in framing precise definitions. Although the decision pertained to preventive
detention and criminal law, the following observation is pertinent in the
context of the present discussion:
840
498. It is also necessary to notice the view expressed in the Second Judges
case by Justice Verma speaking for the majority. The learned judge was of
the opinion that arbitrariness in the exercise of discretion can be minimized
through a collective decision. It was observed as follows:
The rule of law envisages the area of discretion to be the minimum,
requiring only the application of known principles or guidelines to ensure
non-arbitrariness, but to that limited extent, discretion is a pragmatic need.
Conferring discretion upon high functionaries and, whenever feasible,
introducing the element of plurality by requiring a collective decision, are
further checks against arbitrariness. This is how idealism and pragmatism
are reconciled and integrated, to make the system workable in a
satisfactory manner. Entrustment of the task of appointment of superior
judges to high constitutional functionaries; the greatest significance
attached to the view of the Chief Justice of India, who is best equipped to
assess the true worth of the candidates for adjudging their suitability; the
opinion of the Chief Justice of India being the collective opinion formed
after taking into account the views of some of his colleagues; and the
executive being permitted to prevent an appointment considered to be
unsuitable, for strong reasons disclosed to the Chief Justice of India,
provide the best method, in the constitutional scheme, to achieve the
constitutional purpose without conferring absolute discretion or veto upon
either the judiciary or the executive, much less in any individual, be he the
Chief Justice of India or the Prime Minister.666
499. Justice Pandian in a separate but concurring opinion held the same
view and expressed it in the following words:
It is essential and vital for the establishment of real participatory
democracy that all sections and classes of people, be they backward
classes or Scheduled Castes or Scheduled Tribes or minorities or women,
should be afforded equal opportunity so that the judicial administration is
also participated in by the outstanding and meritorious candidates
belonging to all sections of the society and not by any selective or insular
group. 667
500. In Centre for PIL v. Union of India668 the question related to the
appointment of the Central Vigilance Commissioner and the Vigilance
Commissioners under the Central Vigilance Commission Act, 2003. The
666
Paragraph 468
Paragraph 216(3)
668
(2011) 4 SCC 1
667
841
842
669
843
of
significance
is
the
decision-taking
(as
distinguished
from
844
It was held in Ishwar Chandra v. Satyanarain Sinha, (1972) 3 SCC 383 in paragraph 10 of the Report:
where there is no rule or regulation or any other provision for fixing the quorum, the presence of the
majority of the members would constitute it a valid meeting and matters considered thereat cannot be held
to be invalid.
845
508. Finally, it was argued that the requirement that one eminent person
should be from a specified category as mentioned in the first proviso to
Article 124A(1)(d) of the Constitution is discriminatory and serves no
purpose at all. In response, the learned Attorney-General submitted that the
presence of an eminent person, outside the field of law would bring about a
much needed diversity in the appointment of judges. The experience in the
United Kingdom, as explained by Jack Straw, does not seem to bear out this
assumption. In his lecture, he stated: The assumption on diversity nave as
it turned out was that if we changed the process, we would change the
outcome. In any event, which category should or should not be represented
in the NJAC through an eminent person is essentially a matter of policy and
that policy does not appear to be perverse in any manner, but does require a
rethink.
509. The real cause for unhappiness is the second proviso to Section 5(2) of
the NJAC Act which effectively confers a veto on each member of the
NJAC. What is objectionable about the veto (a part of the package deal
referred to by the learned Attorney-General) is that it can also be exercised
by two eminent persons whose participation in the appointment process was
not even imagined by the Constituent Assembly. Article 124(2) of the
Constitution (prior to its amendment) had only two constitutional authorities
involved in the appointment process the President and the Chief Justice of
India. The 99th Constitution Amendment Act has introduced a third and a
846
847
513. Similarly, Justice Kuldip Singh also mentioned that the Union of India
is the single largest litigant in the country. The learned judge said:
674
Paragraph 207
848
In S.P. Gupta case this Court construed the words in Articles 124(2) and
217(1) of the Constitution by taking the clock back by forty years. The
functioning of the Apex Judiciary during the last four decades, the
expanding horizon of, judicial review, the broader concept of
independence of judiciary, practice and precedents in the matter of
appointment of judges which ripened into conventions and the role of the
executive being the largest single litigant before the courts, are some of the
vital aspects which were not adverted to by this Court while interpreting
the constitutional provisions.675
514. The learned judge expressed the same sentiment far more
emphatically in the following words:
Then the question which comes up for consideration is, can there be an
independent judiciary when the power of appointment of judges vests in
the executive? To say yes, would be illogical. The independence of
judiciary is inextricably linked and connected with the constitutional
process of appointment of judges of the higher judiciary. Independence of
Judiciary is the basic feature of our Constitution and if it means what we
have discussed above, then the Framers of the Constitution could have
never intended to give this power to the executive. Even otherwise the
Governments - Central or the State - are parties before the Courts in large
number of cases. The Union Executive have vital interests in various
important matters which come for adjudication before the Apex Court. The
executive - in one form or the other - is the largest single litigant before the
courts. In this view of the matter the judiciary being the mediator between the people and the executive - the Framers of the Constitution
could not have left the final authority to appoint the Judges of the Supreme
Court and of the High Courts in the hands of the executive. This Court in
S.P. Gupta case proceeded on the assumption that the independence of
judiciary is the basic feature of the Constitution but failed to appreciate
that the interpretation, it gave, was not in conformity with broader facets of
the two concepts - independence of judiciary and judicial review which are interlinked.676
In view of this, there can be no doubt that the Government of India is a major
litigant and for a Cabinet Minister to be participating (and having a veto) in
the actual selection of a judge of a High Court or the Supreme Court is
extremely anomalous.677
675
Paragraph 327
Paragraph 335
677
The position that the State is a major litigant in the country remains the same even today.
676
849
515. Historically, and I have quoted chapter and verse from virtually every
relevant committee in this regard, the executive was always intended to be
kept out of the decision-taking process in the matter of appointment of
judges. What is sought to be achieved by including the Law Minister in the
NJAC is to cast a doubt on the wisdom of legal luminaries, Dr. Ambedkar
and the Constituent Assembly in keeping the executive out of the
decision-taking process in the appointment of judges.
516. Nevertheless, it is true that inputs from the executive are important in
the process of taking a decision whether a person should or should not be
appointed as a judge of a High Court or the Supreme Court. But providing
inputs by the executive is quite different from the process of taking a
decision by the executive or the executive being involved in the process of
taking a decision. While it must be acknowledged that the Law Minister is
only one of six in the NJAC but being a Cabinet Minister representing the
entire Cabinet and the Government of India in the NJAC, the Law Minister
is undoubtedly a very important and politically powerful figure whose views
can, potentially, have a major impact on the views that other members of the
NJAC may hold. Since the Law Minister is, by virtue of the office held,
potentially capable of influencing the decision of a member of the NJAC, it
would be inappropriate for the Law Minister to be a part of the
decision-taking process. The selection process must not only be fair but must
appear to be fair.
850
517. It must be realized and appreciated that the tectonic shift in several
countries towards constituting a judicial appointment commission is taking
place only to ensure that the executive does not have a role in the
appointment of judges. The learned Attorney-General supported the shift but
if the trend is to be taken seriously, the Law Minister can have no place in
any commission or, as in the present case, in the NJAC. Therefore, while the
99th Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act attempt to set up a body
intended to be independent of the executive, the NJAC that has been set up
has an important member of the political executive as a part of this body,
which is rather anachronistic.
518. It must also be realized that as mentioned in the First Judges case two
countries Australia (today having a total of about 200 judges in the High
Court and the State Supreme Courts) and New Zealand (today having a total
of about 20 judges [in the Supreme Court and in the Court of Appeal]) were
veering round to having a judicial appointment commission for the higher
judiciary.678 We were informed during the hearing of these petitions that
these countries have not, even after four decades, established such
commissions, while our country seems to be in a great rush to do so. The
issues, debates, discussions and considerations in these countries would be
678
Justice Bhagwati: We may point out that even countries like Australia and New Zealand have veered
round to the view that there should be a Judicial Commission for appointment of the higher judiciary. As
recently as July 1977 the Chief Justice of Australia publicly stated that the time had come for such a
commission to be appointed in Australia. So also in New Zealand, the Royal Commission on the Courts
chaired by Mr Justice Beattle, who has now become the Governor-General of New Zealand, recommended
that a Judicial Commission should consider all judicial appointments including appointments of High Court
Judges. [Paragraph 31]
851
different from ours, but merely because these and other countries are looking
towards a judicial appointment commission is no reason for India to do so. A
reference was also made to South Africa but, as everyone knows, diversity
issues in that country are of great concern post apartheid. It is, therefore,
odious to compare the judicial appointment systems in other countries with
our country and to lift ideas and concepts that might be workable in those
countries without considering whether they could be adopted or adapted in
our country.
519. In Australia, an article suggesting adoption of the UK Judicial
Appointments Commission introduced by the CRA has this to say about
judicial appointments and political patronage (which might be possible in the
NJAC as established):
While the collective strength and quality of the Australian judiciary is not
in doubt, it is the case that particular appointments have attracted criticism,
either in relation to the character and ability of the individual chosen or
their conduct while in office. It is a notorious fact that judicial officers
have been appointed, including to the High Court, whose character and
intellectual and legal capacities have been doubted and whose
appointments have been identified as instances of political patronage.
852
involvement in the appointment process to greater transparency and
accountability, while preserving all the existing constitutional
arrangements for ensuring decisional independence. 679
679
Appointing Australian Judges: A New Model by Simon Evans and John Williams, [2008] Sydney Law
Review Volume 30 page 295. See http://sydney.edu.au/law/slr/slr30_2/Evans.pdf
680
http://www.sabar.co.za/law-journals/2010/december/2010-december-vol023-no3-pp43-48
.pdf
853
522. It was pointed out by the learned Attorney-General that at all times
since Independence, the Law Minister has been a part of the process in the
appointment of judges. In fact it is through the Law Minister that important
inputs are placed before the Chief Justice of India particularly with regard to
matters that the Chief Justice of India may not be aware of, such as the
antecedents and personal traits of the person being considered for
appointment as a judge. There is, therefore, no reason to now exclude the
Law Minister from this process.
681
http://www.lawsociety.org.bw/news/Position%20Paper%20on%20Appointment%20of%20Judges
%20Final%2014%20june%202012%20'Final'.pdf
854
855
independence of the judiciary has always been pivoted around the exclusion
of the executive in decision-taking, but the inclusion of the Law Minister in
the NJAC is counter-productive, historically counter-majoritarian and goes
against the grain of various views expressed in various committees more so
since the Law Minister can exercise a veto in the decision-taking body; the
presence of the Law Minister in the NJAC is totally unnecessary and
ill-advised; the presence of the Law Minister in the NJAC casts a doubt on
the principle of Cabinet responsibility.
(e) The NJAC and the impact on mandatory consultation
526. Article 124(2) of the Constitution as originally framed made it
mandatory for the President to consult the Chief Justice of India in the
appointment of judges. The rationale behind this has already been discussed.
The 99th Constitution Amendment Act completely does away with the
mandatory consultation. The President is not expected to consult anybody in
the appointment process he/she is expected to act only on the
recommendation of the NJAC. The authority that the President had to turn
down a recommendation made by the collegium, if it was not unanimous, is
now taken away from the President who is obliged to accept a
recommendation from the NJAC even if it is not unanimous. This is a
considerable whittling down of the authority of the President and a drastic
change in the appointment process and in a sense reduces the President (as
856
682
This may be contrasted with the direct exchange of views between the President and the Chief Justice of
India referred to earlier.
857
858
529. It is for the Chief Justice of India as the head of the judiciary to
manage the justice delivery system and it is for him/her to take the final call
whether the antecedents or personal traits of a person will or will not
interfere in the discharge of functions as a judge or will, in any manner,
impact on the potential of becoming a good judge. As stated by Jack Straw,
what is important is that it is necessary to get it right the first time and every
time. There can be a situation where the personal traits of a person may be
such as to disqualify that person from being appointed as a judge and there
can be a situation where the personal traits, though objected to, would not
have any impact whatsoever on the potential of that person becoming a good
judge. For example, in the recent past, there has been considerable debate
and discussion, generally but not relating to the judiciary, with regard to
issues of sexual orientation. It is possible that the executive might have an
objection to the sexual orientation of a person being considered for
appointment as a judge but the Chief Justice of India may be of the opinion
that that would have no impact on his/her ability to effectively discharge
judicial functions or the potential of that person to be a good judge. 683 In
situations such as this, it is the opinion of the Chief Justice of India that
should have greater weight since, as mentioned earlier, it is for the Chief
Justice of India to efficiently and effectively manage the justice delivery
system and, therefore, the last word should be with the Chief Justice of India,
683
Australia and South Africa have had a gay judge on the Bench. The present political executive in India
would perhaps not permit the appointment of a gay person to the Bench.
859
unanimously expressed.
530. The 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act not only
reduce the Chief Justice of India to a number in the NJAC but also convert
the mandatory consultation between the President and the Chief Justice of
India to a dumb charade with the NJAC acting as an intermediary. On earlier
occasions,
Parliament
enhanced
its
power
through
constitutional
amendments, which were struck down, inter alia, in Indira Nehru Gandhi
and
Minerva
Mills.684
The
99th
Constitution
Amendment
Act
unconstitutionally minimizes the role of the Chief Justice of India and the
judiciary to a vanishing point in the appointment of judges. It also
considerably downsizes the role of the President. This effaces the basic
structure of the independence of the judiciary by sufficiently altering the
process of appointment of judges to the Supreme Court and the High Court,
or at least alters it unconstitutionally thereby striking at the very basis of the
independence of the judiciary.
531. The entire issue may be looked at in another light: Why did the
Constituent Assembly make it mandatory for the President to consult the
Chief Justice of India for the appointment of judges of the Supreme Court or
the High Court when equally important, if not more important constitutional
684
In I.R. Coelho v. State of Tamil Nadu, (2007) 2 SCC 1 this Court observed in paragraph 138 of the
Report: The relevance of Indira Gandhi case, Minerva Mills case and Waman Rao case [(1981) 2 SCC
362] lies in the fact that every improper enhancement of its own power by Parliament, be it clause (4) of
Article 329-A or clauses (4) and (5) of Article 368 or Section 4 of the 42nd Amendment has been held to be
incompatible with the doctrine of basic structure as they introduced new elements which altered the identity
of the Constitution or deleted the existing elements from the Constitution by which the very core of the
Constitution is discarded. They obliterated important elements like judicial review. They made directive
principles en bloc a touchstone for obliteration of all the fundamental rights and provided for insertion of
laws in the Ninth Schedule which had no nexus with agrarian reforms.
860
861
because of the perceived importance of appointing judges, the
appointments process breeds contention.685
534. The Constituent Assembly was well aware of the misuse and abuse of
power by the executive, having fought for our freedom and knew and
understood the value of an independent judiciary. It is for this reason that the
Constituent Assembly gave prime importance to the independence of the
judiciary and perhaps spent more time debating it than any other topic.
535. In this regard, it is worth recalling the submission of Mr. Palkhivala in
Kesavananda Bharati while laying the basis for the width of power test
(later adopted in M. Nagaraj) that:
the test of the true width of a power is not how probable it is that it may
be exercised but what can possibly be done under it; that the abuse or
misuse of power is entirely irrelevant; that the question of the extent of the
power cannot be mixed up with the question of its exercise and that when
the real question is as to the width of the power, expectation that it will
685
Carly Van Orman, Introduction to the Symposium: The Judicial Process Appointments Process, 10 Wm.
& Mary Bill Rts. J. 1 (2001), http://scholarship.law.wm.edu/wmborj/vol10/iss1/2
686
The Appointment and Removal of Judges by Sir Anthony Mason AC KBE, formerly Chief Justice of
Australia http://www.judcom.nsw.gov.au/publications/education-monographs-1/monograph1/fbmason.htm
862
never be used is as wholly irrelevant as an imminent danger of its use. The
court does not decide what is the best and what is the worst. It merely
decides what can possibly be done under a power if the words conferring it
are so construed as to have an unbounded and limitless width, as claimed
on behalf of the respondents.687
536. Now, consider this - given the width of the power available under the
99th Constitution Amendment Act if committed judges are appointed (as was
propagated at one point of time and it can get actualized after the 99 th
Constitution Amendment Act) then no one can expect impartial justice as
commonly understood from a committed Supreme Court or a High Court.
The Constituent Assembly wished to completely avoid this and that is why
considerable importance was given to the process of appointing judges and
the independence of the judiciary. Common to all forms of judicial function
is independent, impartial and neutral adjudication, though there is a question
as to the possibility of achieving completely neutral adjudication.688 The 99th
Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act lead to the clear possibility
of a committed judiciary being put in place. If this does not violate the basic
structure of the Constitution, what does?
537. The sum and substance of this discussion is that mandatory
consultation between the President and the Chief Justice of India postulated
in the Constitution is by-passed bringing about a huge alteration in the
process of appointment of judges; the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and
the NJAC Act have reduced the consultation process to a farce a
687
Paragraph 531
The Appointment and Removal of Judges by Sir Anthony Mason AC KBE, formerly Chief Justice of
Australia http://www.judcom.nsw.gov.au/publications/education-monographs-1/monograph1/fbmason.htm
688
863
864
865
mandates the NJAC to elicit in writing the views of the Governor and the
Chief Minister of the State before recommending a person for appointment
as a judge of the High Court, but not the views of the Chief Justice, who is
reduced to a mere nominating officer, whose assigned task is over as soon as
the nomination is made.
541. The combined effect of the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and
Section 6 of the NJAC Act is that the entire control over the appointment of a
judge of a High Court is taken over by the NJAC and the paradigm is
completely altered with the Chief Justice of a High Court downgraded from
a mandatory consultant, and the originator of a recommendation for
appointment as postulated by Article 217(1) of the Constitution as
conventionally understood, to someone who merely makes a nomination and
thereafter is not required to be consulted one way or the other with respect to
the nomination made. This drastic change in the process of appointment of a
judge of a High Court obviously has a very long term impact since it is
ultimately from the cadre of High Court judges that most Supreme Court
judges would be appointed, if the existing practice is followed. This in turn
will obviously have a long term impact on the independence of the judiciary
apart from completely altering the process for appointment of a judge of a
High Court.
542. The appointment of judges is a very serious matter and it is difficult to
understate its importance. Referring to a view expressed by Shimon
866
Shimon Shetreet, Judges on Trial (North-Holland Publishing Company, Amsterdam, (1976), p 46.
Akkas, Sarkar Ali (2004) "Appointment of Judges: A Key Issue of Judicial Independence," Bond Law
Review: Vol. 16: Iss. 2, Article 8. Available at: http://epublications.bond.edu.au/blr/vol16/iss2/8
691
(1992) 2 SCC 428
690
867
Constitution
Amendment
Act
has
achieved.
The
learned
868
appointment of judges - the first chapter being one in which the executive
had the ultimate power in the appointment process and the second chapter
being one in which the Executive and the Judiciary have a shared
responsibility with the judiciary having institutional participation. This may
be so, but through the 99th Constitution Amendment Act the NJAC takes
away the responsibility not only of the executive but also the shared
responsibility of the judiciary and the executive, completely decapitating the
appointment system given to us by the Constituent Assembly a system that
ensures the independence of the judiciary.
546. Working
within
the
parameters
suggested
by
the
learned
Constitution Amendment Act and the NJAC Act, rather than a piecemeal
discussion or a dissection of each provision, there can be little doubt that
869
870
delineated in the NJAC Act and, as mentioned above, the rules and
regulations under the Act have not been framed. It is therefore difficult to
appreciate the functions that the convenor is expected to perform.
550. That apart, the Secretary is an officer of the government and is not
answerable to the NJAC. The Secretary is paid a salary and allowances from
the government coffers. This is quite unlike officers of the High Courts or
the Supreme Court who are directly answerable to their respective Chief
Justice. Moreover, their salary and allowances are charged upon the
Consolidated Fund of India. The independence of these officers is
maintained while that of the Secretary to the Government of India in the
Department of Justice is not. Moreover, the Secretary holds a transferable
position and can be changed at the whims and fancies of the executive,
depriving the NJAC of continuity and, in a sense, leaving it high and dry
whenever it pleases the executive. This is clearly objectionable. However, to
be fair to the learned Attorney-General, it was submitted that if necessary a
Registrar in the Supreme Court may be appointed as the convenor, but with
respect that is not at all an answer to the issue raised.
Transparency
871
693
(2014) 14 SCC 50
Paragraph 4
695
(1985) 1 SCC 641
696
1973 3 All ER 54
697
(1975) 4 SCC 428
694
872
873
privacy, but at the same time, since the information is supplied in confidence,
it is possible to argue that it ought not to be disclosed to third party
unconcerned persons. Also, if the recommendation is not accepted by the
President, does the recommended person have a right to non-disclosure of
the adverse information supplied by the President? These are difficult
questions to which adequate thought has not been given and merely on the
basis of a right to know, the reputation of a person cannot be whitewashed in
a dhobi-ghat.
Doctrine of Revival
557. The learned Solicitor-General submitted that when a law is amended
and the amendment is declared unconstitutional, the pre-amendment law
does not revive. Therefore, even if the 99 th Constitution Amendment Act is
declared as altering the basic structure of the Constitution, Article 124(2) of
the Constitution as it existed prior to the 99th Constitution Amendment Act
will not automatically revive and the collegium system will not resurface.
558. An interesting discussion is to be found in this regard in West U.P.
Sugar Mills Assn. v. State of U.P.699 This Court referred to B.N. Tewari v.
Union of India700 and Firm A.T.B. Mehtab Majid & Co. v. State of
Madras701 in both of which it was held that if a statutory rule substitutes a
rule and the new rule is struck down or declared invalid, the substituted or
old rule does not revive since it ceased to exist on its substitution. The same
699
874
560. In State of T.N. v. K. Shyam Sunder704 the two extant views on the
subject have been noted. In paragraph 56 of the Report, it is pointed out that
on the repeal of a statute it is effectively obliterated from the statute books
and even if the amending [repealing] statute is declared unconstitutional on
the ground of lack of legislative competence in the Legislature, the repealed
statute will not revive. This is what was said:
In State of U.P. v. Hirendra Pal Singh this Court held: (SCC p. 314, para
22)
22. It is a settled legal proposition that whenever an Act is
repealed, it must be considered as if it had never existed. The
object of repeal is to obliterate the Act from the statutory books,
except for certain purposes as provided under Section 6 of the
General Clauses Act, 1897. Repeal is not a matter of mere form but
is of substance. Therefore, on repeal, the earlier provisions stand
obliterated/abrogated/wiped out wholly i.e. pro tanto repeal.
Thus, undoubtedly, submission made by the learned Senior Counsel on
behalf of the respondents that once the Act stands repealed and the
amending Act is struck down by the Court being invalid and ultra
vires/unconstitutional on the ground of legislative incompetence, the
repealed Act will automatically revive is preponderous [preposterous] and
702
875
needs no further consideration. This very Bench in State of U.P. v.
Hirendra Pal Singh, after placing reliance upon a large number of earlier
judgments particularly in Ameer-un-Nissa Begum v. Mahboob Begum,
B.N. Tewari v. Union of India, India Tobacco Co. Ltd. v. CTO, Indian
Express Newspapers (Bombay) (P) Ltd. v. Union of India, West U.P. Sugar
Mills Assn. v. State of U.P., Zile Singh v. State of Haryana, State of Kerala
v. Peoples Union for Civil Liberties and Firm A.T.B. Mehtab Majid and
Co. reached the same conclusion. (Internal citations omitted)
There does appear to be a doubt (if not a subtle conflict of views) that needs
to be resolved in the sense that if a statute is repealed and obliterated from
the statute books, under what circumstances does the obliteration vanish, if at
all. However, none of these decisions make any reference to an amendment
of the Constitution, and for the present it is not necessary to dive into that
controversy. This is for the simple reason that the issue requires considerable
debate, of which we did not have the benefit. Justice Khehar has elaborately
dealt with this issue in his draft judgment but I would like to leave the
question open for debate on an appropriate occasion. 561.But,
quite
apart
876
on the facts of this case, the result would be calamitous. The simple reason is
that if the 99th Constitution Amendment Act is struck down as altering the
basic structure of the Constitution and if Article 124(2) in its original form is
not revived then Article 124(2) of the Constitution minus the words deleted
(by the 99th Constitution Amendment Act) and minus the words struck down
(those inserted by the 99th Constitution Amendment Act) would read as
follows:
Article 124(2) as it was Article 124(2) after the 99th Article 124(2) after
originally
Constitution Amendment Act
the 99th Constitution
Amendment is struck
down and the original
Article 124(2) is not
revived
(2) Every Judge of the (2) Every Judge of the Supreme (2) Every Judge of the
Supreme Court shall be Court shall be appointed by the Supreme Court shall
appointed by the President by President by warrant under his be appointed by the
warrant under his hand and hand
and
seal
on
the President by warrant
seal after consultation with recommendation of the National under his hand and
such of the Judges of the Judicial
Appointments seal and shall hold
Supreme Court and of the Commission referred to in article office until he attains
High Courts in the States as 124A and shall hold office until the age of sixty-five
the President may deem he attains the age of sixty-five years:
necessary for the purpose and years:
shall hold office until he
attains the age of sixty-five
years:
562. This would give absolute power to the President to appoint a judge to
the Supreme Court without consulting the Chief Justice of India (and also to
appoint a judge to a High Court). The result of accepting his submission
would be to create a tyrant, as James Madison put it in the Federalist Papers
No. 47:
877
The accumulation of all powers, legislative, executive, and judiciary, in
the same hands, whether of one, a few, or many, and whether hereditary,
self-appointed, or elective, may justly be pronounced the very definition of
tyranny.
563. This was put to the learned Solicitor-General and it was also put to
him that if his submissions are correct, then it would be better for the Union
of India to have the 99th Constitution Amendment Act struck down so that
absolute power resides in the President making him/her an Imperium in
Imperio as far as the appointment of judges is concerned. The learned
Solicitor-General smiled but obviously had no answer to give. It must,
therefore, be held that the constitutional provisions amended by the 99 th
Constitution Amendment Act spring back to life on the declaration that the
99th Constitution Amendment Act is unconstitutional.
Conclusions
564. Very briefly, Dr. Ambedkar was of the view that the President should
have some discretion but not unfettered discretion in the appointment of
judges. The Second Judges case acknowledged that the President has the
discretion to turn down a recommendation made by the Chief Justice of
India, but only under certain circumstances. This was the fetter on the
discretion of the President. However, the 99th Constitution Amendment Act
and the NJAC Act have completely taken away the discretion of the
President to turn down a recommendation for the appointment of a judge,
reducing the constitutional significance of the President.
878
565. Dr. Ambedkar was of the view that the President should have the
discretion to consult judges of the Supreme Court and the High Courts in
respect of a recommendation for appointment by the Chief Justice of India.
The President was
presented, by Second Judges case and the Third Judges case, with the result
of the consultation exercise carried out by the Chief Justice of India which
the Chief Justice of India was mandated to do. It is over and above this that
the President was entitled to consult other judges of the Supreme Court or
the High Courts. However, the 99th Constitution Amendment Act and the
NJAC Act have taken away this freedom of consultation from the President,
who has no option but to take into account only the recommendation of the
NJAC and not travel beyond that. Once again, the constitutional significance
and importance of the President is considerably reduced, if not taken away.
566. Dr. Ambedkar was opposed to the concurrence of the Chief Justice of
India (as an individual) in respect of every appointment of a judge. The
Second Judges case made it mandatory for the Chief Justice of India to take
the opinion of other judges and also left it open to the Chief Justice of India
to consult persons other than judges in this regard. The opinion of the Chief
Justice of India ceased to be an individual opinion (as per the desire of Dr.
Ambedkar) but became a collective or institutional opinion, there being a
great deal of difference between the two. However, the 99th Constitution
Amendment Act and the NJAC Act have considerably limited and curtailed
879
880
881
New Delhi;
16th October, 2015
.....J
(Madan B. Lokur)
REPORTABLE
IN THE SUPREME COURT OF INDIA
CIVIL ORIGINAL JURISDICTION
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 13 OF 2015
Supreme Court Advocates-on-RecordAssociation and another
Petitioner(s)
Versus
Union of India
Respondent(s)
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 14 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 18 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 23 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 24 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 70 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 83 OF 2015
WITH
TRANSFER PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 391 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 108 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 124 OF 2015
AND
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 209 OF 2015
KURIAN, J.:
ORDER
883
705
884
Bangalore
Principles
of
Judicial
Conduct,
2002
885
Principle:
Impartiality is essential to the proper discharge
of the judicial office. It applies not only to the
decision itself but also to the process by which
the decision is made.
Application:
2.1 A judge shall perform his or her judicial
duties without favour, bias or prejudice.
2.2 A judge shall ensure that his or her
conduct, both in and out of court,
maintains and enhances the confidence
of the public, the legal profession and
litigants in the impartiality of the judge
and of the judiciary.
2.3 A judge shall, so far as is reasonable, so
conduct himself or herself as to minimise
the occasions on which it will be
necessary for the judge to be disqualified
from hearing or deciding cases.
2.4 A judge shall not knowingly, while a
proceeding is before, or could come
before, the judge, make any comment
that might reasonably be expected to
affect the outcome of such proceeding or
impair the manifest fairness of the
process. Nor shall the judge make any
comment in public or otherwise that
might affect the fair trial of any person or
issue.
2.5 A judge shall disqualify himself or herself
from participating in any proceedings in
which the judge is unable to decide the
matter impartially or in which it may
appear to a reasonable observer that the
judge is unable to decide the matter
impartially. Such proceedings include, but
are not limited to, instances where
2.5.1the judge has actual bias or
prejudice concerning a party or
personal knowledge of disputed
evidentiary facts concerning
the proceedings;
886
887
888
889
890
708
891
informed
person,
on
correct
facts,
would
issues
have
been
succinctly
discussed
by
the
892
above
principles
are
universal
in
application.
893
......J.
(KURIAN JOSEPH)
New Delhi;
October 16, 2015.
REPORTABLE
Versus
Union of India
Respondent(s)
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 23 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 70 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 83 OF 2015
WITH
TRANSFER PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 391 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 108 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 124 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 14 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 18 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 24 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 209 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 309 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 310 OF 2015
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 323 OF 2015
WITH
TRANSFER PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 971 OF 2015
AND
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO. 341 OF 2015
895
JUDGMENT
KURIAN, J.:
Entia Non Sunt Multiplicanda Sine Necessitate (Things should
not be multiplied without necessity). This is the first thought
which came to my mind after reading the judgments
authored by my noble brothers Khehar, Chelameswar, Lokur
and Goel, JJ., exhaustively dealing with the subject. The
entire gamut of the issue has been dealt with from all
possible angles after referring extensively to the precedents,
academic
discourses
and
judgments
of
various
other
709
896
897
Samsher
Singh
case (supra) and yet there was not even a reference to that
judgment in the lead judgment! Had there been a proper
advertence to Samsher Singh case (supra), probably there
would not have been any need for the Second Judges Case.
898
899
900
901
902
of
the
Constitution,
has
dealt
with
typology
of
903
904
requirements
structures.
of
the
relationships
among
which
according
to
him,
is
seldom
used
in
intra
Court
in
State
v.
Arizona
Independent
711
Manu/USSC/0060/2015
905
Arizona's
Constitution,
removing
redistricting
commission,
the
Arizona
Independent
906
Legislature
challenged
the
map
which
the
and
it
contradicts
precedents
from
both
907
908
and
demonstrate.
As
held
in
Samsher
Singh
909
it
will
quake
the
Constitution.
Once
the
in
post-Emergency,
which
corrected
the
non-judicial
elements
would
ultimately
lead
to
910
structural
distribution
of
powers,
and
hence,
it
is
impermissible.
One word on the consequence. Though elaborate arguments
have
been
amendment
addressed
that
is
down,
struck
even
the
if
the
constitutional
Collegium
does
not
impermissible,
the
pre-amended
provisions
inferential
conclusion.
Legal
parlance
and
911
912
......J.
(KURIAN JOSEPH)
New Delhi;
October 16, 2015.
REPORTABLE
IN THE SUPREME COURT OF INDIA
ORIGINAL JURISDICTION
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NO.13 OF 2015
VERSUS
UNION OF INDIA
RESPONDENT
WITH
WRIT PETITION (CIVIL) NOS.23 OF 2015,
70 OF 2015, 83 OF 2015, T.P. (C) NO. 391 OF
2015, W.P. (C) NOS. 108 OF 2015, 124 OF
2015, 14 OF 2015, 18 OF 2015, 24 OF 2015,
209 OF 2015, 309 OF 2015, 310 OF 2015 AND
323 OF 2015
JUDGMENT
ADARSH KUMAR GOEL, J.
Introduction
1.
Articles 124, 127, 128, 217, 222, 224 and 231 of the
Constitution
of
India
(the
Constitution)
deal
with
the
914
Act)
inter
alia
seeks
to
amend
these
Act,
2014
(the
NJAC
Act),
enacted
Judicial
Appointments
Commission
(NJAC).
The
brothers.
I prefer
of
Appointment
and
915
3.1
Broadly
the
procedure
laid
down
in
the
first
fit
to
hold
the
office.
For
this
purpose,
made
with
the
other
judges
under
Article
124(2).
For appointment as
judges of the Supreme Court, the CJI initiates the proposal and
forwards his recommendation to the Union Minister of Law who
puts up the matter to the PM, who in turn advises the
President. Opinion of the CJI is formed in consultation with four
senior most judges and if successor CJI is not in the said four
senior most judges, he is also made part of the collegium. CJI
also ascertains the views of the senior most judge in the
Supreme Court who hails from the High Court from where a
person recommended comes.
memorandum
thereof
and
its
substance
is
Once appointment is
916
917
The
CJI
consults two senior most Judges and also takes into account
the views of the Chief Justice and Judges of the High Court
(consulted by the Chief Justice) and those Judges of the
Supreme Court who are conversant with the affairs of the
candidate.
the Union Law Minister along with the correspondence with his
colleagues. If the Law Minister considers it expedient to refer
back the name for opinion of the State Constitutional
Authorities, opinion of the CJI must be obtained.
The Law
918
Consent of
CJI also
919
Reference
may
also
be
made
to
the
unamended
Court
must
emanate
from
the
CJI
and
for
713
714
Paras 210, 214, Pandian, J., Paras 361 to 376, Kuldip Singh, J., Para 486, Verma, J., Para 505, Punchhi, J. in Second
Judges case
920
Reference
Amendment.
appointments
may
now
be
made
to
the
impugned
transfers
will
now
be
on
the
Requirement of
The
921
922
mentions
that
this
Court
had
interpreted
the
word
The
923
Amendment and the Act have been brought into force, the
Commission has not been constituted so far, as two eminent
persons have not been so far appointed.
7.2
Key
Constitutional
unamended
provisions
and
the
924
Justice
of
India,
the
Governor of the State, and,
in the case of appointment
of a Judge other than the
Chief Justice, the Chief
Justice of the High court, and
shall hold office, in the case of
an additional or acting Judge, as
provided in Article 224, and in
any other case, until he attains
the age of sixty two years:
7.3
925
Rival Contentions
8.
and
includes
insulating
the
judiciary
from
non-judges
appointing
in
judges
to
higher
courts,
926
Supreme
Court
and
the
High
Courts.
Thus,
the
appointment of
(ii)
(iii)
927
(iv)
(v)
(vi)
10.
(ix)
(x)
(xi)
of
is
judiciary
an
is
executive
only
act
and
appointment.
the
judiciarys
928
UOIs
(Article
124(4);
Parliaments
power
to
regulate
929
In several
The
(1996) 4 SCC 49
930
summed up as follows:(a)
(b)
(c)
(d)
(e)
(f)
(g)
(h)
Accountability
and
transparency
in
functioning of every constitutional organ
was part of democracy in which case
931
(j)
(k)
12.
932
933
934
xxxxx
xxxxx
935
xxxxx
xxxxx
According to the
936
The amendment
Discussion
A.
Concept of Basic Features As Limitation on Power
of the
Parliament to amend the Constitution
15.
amend
the
Constitution
and
procedure
therefor.
In
937
a bench of 13-Judges.
717
(Para 284, Sikri, CJ.) ; (Para 583, Shelat & Grover, JJ.); (Para 651 Hegde & Mukherjea, JJ.); (Para 1162,
Reddy, J.) and (Para 1426, Khanna, J.)
718
Paras 292, 582, 666, 1159, 1426
938
The court
Sikri, CJ.
power,
if
accepted,
could
damage
the
very
939
Shelat
&
Grover,
JJ.
observed
that
the
Constitution makers did not desire that the citizens will not
enjoy the basic freedoms, equality, freedom of religion etc. so
that dignity of an individual is maintained. The economic and
social changes were to be made without taking away dignity of
the individual. The vital provisions of Part III or Part IV could
not be cut out or denuded of their identity.
Hegde and
940
Even best of the Government was not averse to have more and
more powers to carry out their plans and programmes which
they believe to be in public interest, but freedom once lost
could hardly be regained.
The development
could
democracy.
be
no
justice,
liberty
or
equality
without
independence. They were included with the hope that one day
victory of people would bloom in India. They connect Indias
future, present and past. The demand for Fundamental Rights
had its inspiration in Magna Carta, the English Bill of Rights,
the French Revolution, the American Bill of Rights incorporated
in the US Constitution.
941
942
Court
in
the
course
of
challenge
to
Thirty-Ninth
The features
720
Para 1535 A. (Khanna, J.) In my opinion, the second part of Article 31-C is liable to be quashed
943
He added
that undoubted unamendable basic features are :(i) India is a Sovereign Democratic Republic; (ii)
Equality of status and opportunity shall be secured
to all its citizens; (iii) The State shall have no
religion of its own and all persons shall be equally
entitled to freedom of conscience and the right
freely to profess, practise and propagate religion
and that (iv) the Nation shall be governed by a
Government of laws not of men.
Para 663 - For determining whether a particular feature of the Constitution is a part of its basic structure,
one has perforce to examine in each individual case the place of the particular feature in the scheme of our
Constitution, its object and purpose, and the consequences of its denial on the integrity of the Constitution
as a fundamental instrument of country's governance. But it is needless for the purpose of these appeals to
ransack every nook and cranny of the Constitution to discover the bricks of the basic structure. Those that
are enumerated in the majority judgments are massive enough to cover the requirements of Shri Shanti
Bhushan's challenge.
723
Khanna and Mathew, JJ held that free and fair election was essential for democracy and was part of
basic structure. Chandrachud, J. held that right of equality was part of basic structure which was violated.
Ray, CJ held that rule of law was basic structure of the Constitution which was violated.
944
will be violated.
This Court
Para 688
(1980) 3 SCC 625
945
Fine balance
The
726
Para 56
Paras 17 and 88
728
Paras 12, 88
729
Paras 21, 86 and 87
730
(1997) 3 SCC 261
727
946
Constitution.
Judicial review by constitutional courts was held to be part of basic structure. (Paras 77, 78)
(2007) 2 SCC 1
947
Fundamental Rights under Articles 14, 15, 19 and 21 were held to be part of basic structure. (Paras 109
and 147)
734
(2006) 8 SCC 212
948
735
Conclusion:
15.9 It can safely be held that a constitutional amendment has
to pass the test of basic structure. Whether or not the basic
structure was violated has to be finally determined by this
Court from case to case.
B.
16.
949
Independence of
of
judiciary
be
maintained
even
Can the
if
the
950
is
part
Constitution.
of
unamendable
basic
feature
of
the
As
By an amendment,
951
This
Court
observed
that
Constitutional
736
required
1981 Supp. SCC 87, Para 30 (Primacy in appointment of judges is held to be of Central Government by
holding that obligation of the President (the Central Government) was only to consult the judiciary which
could not be treated as binding)
737
Para 25, Pandian J. (Second Judges Case) : Reasons which led to reconsideration of First Judges case
738
1991 Supp (1) SCC 574 Paras 31-34, 42-46
952
It was
953
CJI
and
correctness
of
the
said
opinion
required
954
The State
The Law
955
of
powers,
with
the
Directive
Principles
of
741
742
Para 357
Para 392
956
the CJI.
On that
that
appointment
of
judges
was
part
of
957
16.11
decisions
conclusively
recognise
primacy
of judiciary
in
17.
958
Union
of
India
vs.
1977 (4) SCC 193 (referred to in Paras 125 to 130 Second Judges case)
959
Parliament.
are framed with the approval of the President and are subject
to the law made by the Parliament. Parliament could confer
supplementary powers on the Supreme Court. Conditions of
service of officers and servants of the Supreme Court are
subject to law made by the Parliament. The rules framed by
the CJI require approval of the President. There was inter play
of Executive and Legislature in the functioning of the judiciary.
Independence of judges was in respect of their security of
tenure and service conditions. Manner of appointment did not
affect
independence
of
judiciary.
Executive
appointing
Primacy of
ignores
accountability.
the
principles
of
transparency
and
960
issue and also the fact that an amendment has now been
brought about, the earlier decisions need to be revisited.
17.2 The stand of learned Attorney General and other learned
counsel appearing for the respondents was contested by
learned counsel for the petitioners. It was submitted that all
issues sought to be raised by the respondents were duly
considered by the Bench of nine-judges.
The Central
The expert
role
for
appointment of judges.
the
Executive
or
Legislature
in
Frequent
746
961
On settled principles, no
Gannon Dunkerly vs. State of Rajasthan, 1993 (1) SCC 364, paras 28 to 31
2nd Judges case, Paras 19 to 22
962
Legislature.
The
Judicial
Appointment
Commissions
earlier
as
laid
down
in
First
Judges
case.
In
963
was
introduced
recommendation
of
with
National
different
Commission
composition
to
review
on
the
2013 did not provide for any composition and left the
composition to be provided for by the Parliament. Validity of
such proposed Commissions was never tested as such
Commissions never came into existence.
17.5
No case is
18.
The Bill was introduced in the light of 121st Report of the Law Commission.
964
of
powers
between
Legislature,
Executive
and
that
the
said
organs
have
exceeded
their
965
of
Speakers
in
recognizing
or
otherwise
the
There are
competence
of judiciary
which
sustains
democracy.
If
The
Independence of
S.R. Bommai vs. UOI (1994) 3 SCC 1; Rameshwar Prasad vs. UOI (2006) 2 SCC 1; M.C. Mehta vs.
Kamal Nath (1997) 1 SCC 388
753
Kihoto Hollohan vs. Zachillhu (1992) Supp. (2) 651
966
case
The report
Para 64
(2012) 10 SC 603
756
Paras 1.21 to 1.23, 7.1 and 7.2
755
967
binding
precedents
which
do
not
require
been recorded :
(i)
968
normally
to
be
accepted
thereby
according primacy to the judiciary;
The Executive being major litigant and role of
judiciary being to impartially decide
disputes between citizen and the State, the
Executive could not have decisive say in
appointing judges;
Doctrine of separation of powers under the
Constitution required primacy of judiciary
in appointing judges;
Since
Referring
to
the
constitutional
scheme,
its
757
Reasons for holding the primacy in appointment of judges to be with the judiciary have been summarized
by Pandian, J. in Para 195 (Second Judges case)
969
18.5
to
the
Executive
or
with
concurrence
of
the
certain
purposes761,
the
basic
features
of
Indian
in
appointment
of
judges
could
not
be
970
predominant.
The
762
CJI764.
CJI765.
Paras 184 & 192, Second Judges case (In para 192 reference is made to famous statement of Dr.
Ambedkar about unsuitability of UK and US models in this regard)
763
Para 14
764
Para 19
765
Para 20
971
972
770
(iii)
(iv)
(v)
The
appointment
of
judges
was
inextricably linked with the independence
of judiciary and even in the matter of
appointment of district judges, the
conclusive say was of the High Courts and
not of the Government775.
Para 505, Punchhi, J.; 210, 214, Pandian, J.; Paras 361 to 376, Kuldip Singh, J.
Paras 84 and 197, Pandian, J; Paras 428 and 439, Verma, J; Para 334, Kuldip Singh, J
772
Paras 56, 72 to 74 and 207, Pandian, J.
773
Paras 55 to 57, Pandian, J.
774
Para 195 Pandian, J and Para 450, Verma, J.;
771
973
18.8
(vi)
(vii)
(viii)
(ix)
Paras 447 to 463, Verma, J.; Paras 195 to 197, Pandian, J.; Paras 335 and 380, Kuldip Singh, J. (Para
215, Pandian, J. Appointments and control of district judges is with the High Courts)
776
Para 25(6), Pandian, J.
777
14th Report of the Law Commission is referred to in paras 64 and 65 by Pandian, J.; 121st Report of Law
Commission is referred to in Paras 184 to 191 and 204, Pandian, J.
778
Paras 383 to 387, Kuldip Singh, J. (However, CJI was not to be the persona designata but as spokesman
of the judiciary in the manner laid down in the judgment.)
779
Second Judges case (Paras 74 to 81)
974
It may be
not
interfere
with
the
primacy
of
judiciary
in
975
is
against
the
basic
780
structure
as
far
as
976
18.9
Shri Prithvi Cotton Mills Ltd. vs. Broach Borough Municipality, 1969 (2) SCC 283
977
In speech dated 25.11.1949 on conclusion of proceedings of the Constituent Assembly (Page 975 of the
CAD).
*In his speech as President of the Constituent Assembly quoted in Para 429 of the Second Judges
case)
978
those organs of the State depend are the people
and the political parties they will set up as their
instruments to carry out their wishes and their
politics.
To the same effect Dr. Rajendra Prasad* said :If the people who are elected are capable and
men of character and integrity, they would be able
to make the best even of a defective Constitution.
If they are lacking in these, the Constitution
cannot help the country. After all, a Constitution
like a machine is a lifeless thing. It acquires life
because of the men who control it and operate it,
and India needs today nothing more than a set of
honest men who will have the interest of the
country before them.
retain
the
basic
appointment of judges.
structure
of
the
Constitution
in
979
In Manoj Narula
Learned
980
The primacy of
alters
or
19.
Attorney
General
submitted
that
basic
In judging the
981
982
life. The Constitution itself sets out principles for an
expanding future and is obligated to endure for
future ages to come and consequently it has to be
adapted to the various changes that may take
place in human affairs.
Amendment
was
consonant
with
and
983
Moreover,
three
of the six
members are from the judiciary and thus, the right to reject
was available to the judges, while the executive alone cannot
exercise the right to reject. Even in Second Judges case it
is observed that the process of appointment is a participatory
process. An area relating to suitability of candidates such as
his antecedents and personal character may be better known
to consultees other than the CJI. The expression, eminent
person is well known and it means distinguished in character
or attainments or by success in any walk of life. The
expression distinguished is used in Article 124 (3) providing
for eligibility criteria for judges of the Supreme Court. Since
the
high
powered
committee
comprising
three
high
which
can
be
trusted
to
select
the
most
984
In other
bodies also there are provisions for non judges. For example,
Consumer Protection Act. Reservation in favour of minorities,
women, Scheduled Castes, Scheduled Tribes and OBC will
have the effect of sensitizing other members for the problems
to be faced by these sections. Even in the report of National
Commission to Review the Working of the Constitution
(NCRWC), also known as Venkatachalliah Commission, a
provision
for
an
eminent
person
was
made
without
788
985
Opportunity must be allowed for vindicating
reasonable belief by experience.
To the same effect are the observations in T.N.
Education
Deptt.
Ministerial
and
General
Subordinate Services Assn. v. State of T.N. [(1980)
3 SCC 97] (SCR at p. 1031) (Krishna Iyer, J.). It is
equally well-settled that mere possibility of abuse
of a provision by those in charge of administering
it cannot be a ground for holding the provision
procedurally or substantively unreasonable. In
Collector of Customs v. Nathella Sampathu Chetty
[ 1962 (3) SCR 786], this Court observed: The
possibility of abuse of a statute otherwise valid
does not impart to it any element of invalidity. It
was said in State of Rajasthan v. Union of India
[(1977) 3 SCC 592] (SCR at p. 77), it must be
remembered that merely because power may
sometimes be abused, it is no ground for denying
the existence of power. The wisdom of man has
not yet been able to conceive of a government
with power sufficient to answer all its legitimate
needs and at the same time incapable of
mischief. (Also see Commr., H.R.E. v. Sri
Lakshmindra Thirtha Swamiar of Sri Shirur Mutt
[ (1954) SCR 1005] (SCR at p. 1030).
986
people of high integrity, merit, rectitude and
honesty are appointed to these constitutional
positions.
with
the
CJI
representing
the
judiciary.
987
cannot
be
held
independence of judiciary.
to
be
conducive
to
the
988
Law Minister
and
the nominated
Such provision is
The nature of
989
If an appointment is
990
Such
790
Kesavananda Bharati case Para 531; Maneka Gandhi vs. UOI (1978) 1 SCC 248 Para 19; I.R. Coelho
case Para 149
791
V.G. Row vs. State of Madras (1952) SCR 597
991
should,
as
nearly
as
possible,
have
same
792
Madhav Rao Jivaji Rao Scindia vs. UOI [1971 (1) SCC 85],
Rustom Cavasjee Cooper vs. Union of India [1970 (1) SCC 248]
794
Bennett Coleman & Co. Ltd. vs. Union of India [1972 (2) SCC 788]
795
S.R. Bommai vs. UOI [(1994) 3 SCC 1]
796
Kesavananda Bharati case Para 531; Maneka Gandhi vs. UOI (1978) 1 SCC 248 Para 19; I.R. Coelho
case Para 149
797
Union of India vs. Madras Bar Asson. (2010) 11 SCC 1 Para 108
798
Madras Bar Asson. vs. UOI (2014) 10 SCC 1 Pars 136 and 137
793
992
Law
Commission
in
its
14th
Report
criticised
the
993
This
1981
994
Eminent
constitutional expert
Seervai
The Law
affects
independence of judiciary
and
is
not
In the context of
995
Its
scheme
retains
the
said
primacy
of
judiciary
in
appointment of judges.
19.13
Law
At the
primacy
of
judiciary
as
declared
by
this
Court
Para 505, Punchhi, J.; Paras 210,214, Pandian, J.; Paras 361 to 376, Kuldip Singh, J. in Second Judges
case
996
997
of judiciary.
Constitution.
The
of
judicial
independence
and
if
Executive
has
Such
998
Examining
independence of judiciary810.
810
By way of illustration : P. Sambamurthy vs. State of A.P. [(1994) 3 SCC 1]; Amrik Singh Lyallpuri vs.
UOI (2011) 6 SCC 535; Union of India vs. Madras Bar Asson. (2010) 11 SCC 1; Madras Bar Asson. vs.
999
Thus, taking
As already mentioned,
role
of
the
judiciary
as
an
important
impartial
1000
As
1001
Lanka,
1002
judicial appointment body. In 5 of the countries
without commissions (Canada, Australia, New
Zealand, Bangladesh and United States of
America), the decision is taken by the Executive
without any formal process of consultation with
the judiciary, while in 1 (Germany), the
appointment process is conducted by the
Parliament, and later confirmed by the President.
c. In 8 countries (France, Israel, Italy, Kenya,
Nigeria, Pakistan, South Africa and UK) with
bodies for judicial appointments, independent
members have a mandated role in the selection
process through representation on the said
bodies.
In 4 countries where independent
members do not play a formal role in the
appointment process (Canada, USA, Australia and
New Zealand), the appointing authority (body or
person) consults independent members at various
stages of the appointment process for their
feedback on the selection or recommendation of a
prospective
candidate.
In
3
countries
(Bangladesh, Germany and Sri Lanka) no
documented
process
of
consultation
with
independent members is provided for.
20.2
Bharti
case,
Indira
Gandhi
case
and
1003
of
judiciary.
Composition
of
Judicial
Nariman
also
submitted
that
the
impugned
affecting
certain
legislators.
He
submitted
that
(Paras 9.6 and 9.7 of the Report dated 26.9.2001 as included in Vol. II of the Report of the NCRWC,
2002)
1004
1005
15. In some societies, the appointment
of judges, by, with the consent of, or
after consultation with a Judicial Services
Commission has been seen as a means
of ensuring that those chosen judges are
appropriate for the purpose. Where a
Judicial Services Commission is adopted,
it should include representatives of the
higher Judiciary and the independent
legal profession as a means of ensuring
that judicial competence, integrity and
independence are maintained.
Note - NOT OUTSIDERS, not representatives of the
EXECUTIVE: because this is not helpful in the
interests of maintaining the INDEPENDENCE OF THE
JUDICIARY. Text of Beijing Principles are
annexed as Exhibit-II.
The then Law Minister had stated in Parliament,
when these measures were first introduced, that he
had consulted named persons including myself and as to what I said is accurately recorded in the
Minutes of the Meeting prepared by the office of
the Law Minister. This is what the minutes record:
21.
own
816
and
personality816.
Models
of
other
1006
The
Thus,
contention
of
working
of
other
appointment
of
judges
has
As already
always
been
Pre-dominant
Such primacy
1007
The Chief
This
The Chief
1008
There is no bar to an
expert
society
feedback
constitutional
from
the
functionaries
civil
involved.
through
Thus,
there
the
is
These
for
veto
by
two
members
of
collegium
in
As already
Similarly, requirement of
1009
817
P. Sambamurthy vs. State of A.P. (1987) 1 SCC 362 Paras 3 and 4, striking down Article 371D(5),
Amrik Singh Lyallpuri vs. UOI (2011) 6 SCC 535 Para 15 17, striking down Section 347D of the Delhi
Municipal Corporation Act, 1957 (66 of 1957)
1010
F.
23.
judiciary
as
contemplated
under
the
unamended
124B)
and
providing
for
composition
of
the
1011
matters.
Section
authorises
the
by
itself.
Section
enables
the
Central
1012
Even if the
24.
1013
25.
as unconstitutional.
.....J.
[ ADARSH KUMAR GOEL ]
NEW DELHI
OCTOBER 16, 2015
1014
APPENDIX
(I)
1015
(II)
(1)
This Act may be called the Constitution
(Ninety-ninth Amendment) Act, 2014.
(2)
It shall come into force on such date as
the Central Government may, by notification in
the Official Gazette, appoint.
2.
(c)
in the second proviso, for the words
Provided further that, the words Provided
that shall be substituted.
3.
After article 124 of the Constitution,
following articles shall be inserted, namely:
the
of
India,
(b
two other senior Judges of the
Supreme Court next to the Chief Justice of
India Members, ex officio;
(c)
the Union Minister in charge of Law
and JusticeMember, ex officio;
(d)
two
eminent
persons
to
be
nominated by the committee consisting of
the Prime Minister, the Chief Justice of
India and the Leader of Opposition in the
House of the People or where there is no
such Leader of Opposition, then, the
1016
Leader of single largest Opposition Party in
the House of the People Members:
Provided that one of the eminent person
shall be nominated from amongst the
persons belonging to the Scheduled
Castes, the Scheduled Tribes, Other
Backward Classes, Minorities or Women:
Provided further that an eminent person
shall be nominated for a period of three
years and shall not be eligible for
renomination.
(2)
No act or proceedings of the
National
Judicial
Appointments
Commission shall be questioned or be
invalidated merely on the ground of the
existence of any vacancy or defect in the
constitution of the Commission.
124B.
It shall be the duty of the National
Judicial Appointments Commission to
(a)
recommend
persons
for
appointment as Chief Justice of India,
Judges of the Supreme Court, Chief
Justices of High Courts and other Judges of
High Courts;
(b)
recommend transfer of Chief Justices
and other Judges of High Courts from one
High Court to any other High Court; and
(c)
ensure
that
the
person
recommended is of ability and integrity.
124C. Parliament may, by law, regulate the
procedure for the appointment of Chief Justice of
India and other Judges of the Supreme Court and
Chief Justices and other Judges of High Courts
and empower the Commission to lay down by
regulations the procedure for the discharge of its
functions, the manner of selection of persons for
appointment and such other matters as may be
considered necessary by it..
4.
In article 127 of the Constitution, in clause (1),
for the words the Chief Justice of India may, with the
previous consent of the President, the words the
National Judicial Appointments Commission on a
reference made to it by the Chief Justice of India, may
with the previous consent of the President shall be
substituted.
1017
5.
In article 128 of the Constitution, for the words
the Chief Justice of India, the words the National
Judicial
Appointments
Commission
shall
be
substituted.
6.
In article 217 of the Constitution, in clause (1),
for the portion beginning with the words after
consultation, and ending with the words the High
Court, the words, figures and letter on the
recommendation of the National Judicial Appointments
Commission referred to in article 124A shall be
substituted.
7.
In article 222 of the Constitution, in clause (1),
for the words after consultation with the Chief Justice
of India, the words, figures and letter on the
recommendation of the National Judicial Appointments
Commission referred to in article 124A shall be
substituted.
8.
9.
In article 224A of the Constitution, for the words
the Chief Justice of a High Court for any State may at
any time, with the previous consent of the President,
the words the National Judicial Appointments
Commission on a reference made to it by the Chief
Justice of a High Court for any State, may with the
previous consent of the President shall be
substituted.
10. In article 231 of the Constitution, in clause (2),
sub-clause (a) shall be omitted.
(II)
1018
An Act to regulate the procedure to be followed by
the National Judicial Appointments Commission for
recommending persons for appointment as the
Chief Justice of India and other Judges of the
Supreme Court and Chief Justices and other Judges
of High Courts and for their transfers and for
matters connected therewith or incidental thereto.
Be it enacted by Parliament in the Sixty-fifth Year of
the Republic of India as follows:
1.
2.
3.
4.
1019
vacancy by reason of death or resignation of a
Judge of the Supreme Court or of a High Court,
make a reference to the Commission for making its
recommendations to fill up such vacancy.
5.
6.
1020
Constitution and forward such names to the Chief
Justice of the concerned High Court for its views.
(4) Before making any nomination under
sub-section (2) or giving its views under sub-section
(3), the Chief Justice of the concerned High Court
shall consult two senior-most Judges of that High
Court and such other Judges and eminent
advocates of that High Court as may be specified
by regulations.
(5) After receiving views and nomination under
sub-sections (2) and (3), the Commission may
recommend for appointment the person who is
found suitable on the basis of ability, merit and any
other criteria of suitability as may be specified by
regulations.
(6) The Commission shall not recommend a person
for appointment under this section if any two
members of the Commission do not agree for such
recommendation.
(7) The Commission shall elicit in writing the views
of the Governor and the Chief Minister of the State
concerned before making such recommendation in
such manner as may be specified by regulations.
(8) The Commission may, by regulations, specify
such other procedure and conditions for selection
and appointment of a Chief Justice of a High Court
and a Judge of a High Court as it may consider
necessary.
7.
8.
1021
(2) The terms and other conditions of service of
officers and other employees of the Commission
appointed under sub-section (1) shall be such as
may be prescribed.
(3) The Convenor of the Commission shall be the
Secretary to the Government of India in the
Department of Justice.
9.
10.
11.
12.
1022
(a) the criteria of suitability with respect to
appointment of a Judge of the Supreme Court under
sub-section (2) of section 5;
(b) other procedure and conditions for selection
and appointment of a Judge of the Supreme Court
under sub-section (3) of section 5;
(c) the criteria of suitability with respect to
appointment of a Judge of the High Court under
sub-section (3) of section 6;
(d) other Judges and eminent advocates who may
be consulted by the Chief Justice under sub-section
(4) of section 6;
(e) the manner of eliciting views of the Governor
and the Chief Minister under sub-section (7) of
section 6;
(f) other procedure and conditions for selection
and appointment of a Judge of the High Court under
sub-section (8) of section 6;
(g) the procedure for transfer of Chief Justices and
other Judges from one High Court to any other High
Court under section 9;
(h) the procedure to be followed by the
Commission in the discharge of its functions under
sub-section (1) of section 10;
(i) the rules of procedure in regard to the
transaction of business at the meetings of
Commission, including the quorum at its meeting,
under sub-section (2) of section 10;
(j) any other matter which is required to be, or may
be, specified by regulations or in respect of which
provision is to be made by regulations.
13.
1023
without prejudice to the validity of anything
previously done under that rule or regulation.
14.
(III)
1024
3. After review of the relevant constitutional
provisions, the pronouncements of the Supreme
Court and consultations with eminent Jurists, it is
felt that a broad based National Judicial
Appointments Commission should be established
for making recommendations for appointment of
Judges of the Supreme Court and High Courts. The
said Commission would provide a meaningful role
to the judiciary, the executive and eminent persons
to present their view points and make the
participants accountable, while also introducing
transparency in the selection process.
4. The Constitution (One Hundred and Twenty-first
Amendment) Bill, 2014 is an enabling constitutional
amendment for amending relevant provisions of
the Constitution and for setting up a National
Judicial Appointments Commission. The proposed
Bill seeks to insert new articles 124A, 124B and
124C after article 124 of the Constitution. The said
Bill also provides for the composition and the
functions of the proposed National Judicial
Appointments Commission. Further, it provides that
Parliament may, by law, regulate the procedure for
appointment of Judges and empower the National
Judicial Appointments Commission to lay down
procedure by regulation for the discharge of its
functions, manner of selection of persons for
appointment and such other matters as may be
considered necessary.
5. The proposed Bill seeks to broad base the
method of appointment of Judges in the Supreme
Court and High Courts, enables participation of
judiciary, executive and eminent persons and
ensures greater transparency, accountability and
objectivity in the appointment of the Judges in the
Supreme Court and High Court.
ITEM NO.1A
COURT NO.4
SECTION X,PIL,XVIA
S U P R E M E C O U R T O F
RECORD OF PROCEEDINGS
Writ Petition(s)(Civil)
No(s).
I N D I A
13/2015
Petitioner(s)
VERSUS
UNION OF INDIA
WITH
W.P.(C) No. 23/2015
W.P.(C) No. 70/2015
W.P.(C) No. 83/2015
T.P.(C) No. 391/2015
W.P.(C) No. 108/2015
W.P.(C) No. 124/2015
W.P.(C) No. 14/2015
W.P.(C) No. 18/2015
W.P.(C) No. 24/2015
W.P.(C) No. 209/2015
W.P.(C) No.309/2015
W.P.(C) No. 310/2015
W.P.(C) No.323/2015
T.P.(C) No.971/2015
W.P.(C) No.341/2015
Respondent(s)
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
for
For Petitioner(s)
In WP 23/2015
For Petitioner(s)
In WP 70/2015
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Ms.
1026
Ms. Savita Singh, Adv.
For Petitioner(s)
In WP 83/2015
For Petitioner(s)
In WP 108/2015
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Ms.
Mr.
For Petitioner(s)
in WP 124/2015
For Petitioner(s)
in WP 14/2015
For Petitioner(s)
in WP 18/2015
For Petitioner(s)
in WP 24/2015
For Petitioner(s)
in WP 209/2015
For Petitioner(s)
in WP(C) 309/2015
For Petitioner(s)
in WP 310/2015
For Petitioner(s)
In WP 323/2015
For Petitioner(s)
In WP 341/2015
For Petitioner(s)
Ms. Prachi Bajpai, Adv.
in TP(C) No.971/2015
For Respondent(s)
India
1027
(UOI)
and for
petitioner(s)
In TP 391/2015
Mr.
Mr.
Ms.
Mr.
Ms.
Mr.
Ms.
Dr.
Ms.
Ms.
Ms.
Mr.
Mr.
Ms.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
for
for State of
Rajasthan
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
for
IA 10/2015
for State of MP
Mr.
Mr.
Ms.
Ms.
Mr.
for
for State of
Maharashtra
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
1028
Mr. Anip Sachthey, Adv.
Mr. Saakaar Sardana, Adv.
Ms. K. Enatoli Sema, Adv.
Mr. Edward Belho, Adv.
Mr. Amit Kumar Singh, Adv.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
1029
Mr. Suryanarayana Singh, AAG
Ms. Pragati Neekhra,AOR
Mr. Indra Pratap Singh, Adv.
Mr. Prakash Kumar Singh,AOR
Mr. Arun Monga, Adv.
Ms. Kudrat Sandho, Adv.
for Mr. Tushar Bakshi, AOR
Mr. M.Yogesh Kanna, Adv.
Mr. Jayant Patel, Adv.
Dr. Rajeev Dhawan, Sr. Adv.
Mr.
Mr.
Mr.
Ms.
Ms.
for
the
Constitution
(Ninety-ninth
Amendment)
Act,
1030
Judicial
Appointments
unconstitutional
and
Commission
void;
the
Act,
system
2014,
of
is
declared
appointment
of
the
High
Courts;
and
transfer
of
Chief
Justices
and
and
to
consider
introduction
of
appropriate
(Renuka Sadana)
Court Master